summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/60983-0.txt8542
-rw-r--r--old/60983-0.zipbin139837 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60983-h.zipbin202049 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60983-h/60983-h.htm11725
-rw-r--r--old/60983-h/images/cover.jpgbin44955 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60983-h/images/dots.jpgbin765 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60983-h/images/tp.jpgbin5847 -> 0 bytes
10 files changed, 17 insertions, 20267 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..7297f44
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #60983 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/60983)
diff --git a/old/60983-0.txt b/old/60983-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index c31c36d..0000000
--- a/old/60983-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8542 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook, The Queen of Farrandale, by Clara Louise
-Burnham
-
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-
-Title: The Queen of Farrandale
- A Novel
-
-
-Author: Clara Louise Burnham
-
-
-
-Release Date: December 20, 2019 [eBook #60983]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-
-***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE QUEEN OF FARRANDALE***
-
-
-E-text prepared by the Online Distributed Proofreading Team
-(http://www.pgdp.net) from page images generously made available by
-Internet Archive (https://archive.org)
-
-
-
-Note: Images of the original pages are available through
- Internet Archive. See
- https://archive.org/details/queenoffarrandal00burn
-
-
-
-
-
-THE QUEEN OF FARRANDALE
-
-A Novel
-
-by
-
-CLARA LOUISE BURNHAM
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-
-
-Boston and New York
-Houghton Mifflin Company
-The Riverside Press Cambridge
-1923
-
-Copyright, 1923, by Clara Louise Burnham
-
-All Rights Reserved
-
-The Riverside Press
-Cambridge · Massachusetts
-Printed in the U.S.A.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- I. THE NE’ER-DO-WELL 3
-
- II. FOR CAROL 10
-
- III. AN INTRODUCTION 26
-
- IV. A BOBBED HEAD 39
-
- V. MRS. LUMBARD 53
-
- VI. VISITING THE SICK 68
-
- VII. AT ROSS GRAHAM’S 77
-
- VIII. A TELEGRAM 92
-
- IX. THE NEW READER 103
-
- X. JOHN OGDEN ARRIVES 114
-
- XI. A MUTINOUS ACTOR 125
-
- XII. THE CONSOLE 135
-
- XIII. MILLICENT DUANE 150
-
- XIV. ALICE 161
-
- XV. APPLE BLOSSOMS 174
-
- XVI. MISS FRINK MAKES A CALL 187
-
- XVII. ADÈLE 197
-
- XVIII. THE RECITAL 210
-
- XIX. JOHN OGDEN 223
-
- XX. A PARTING INTERVIEW 233
-
- XXI. PAVING THE WAY 244
-
- XXII. ADJUSTMENTS 258
-
- XXIII. MILLICENT 273
-
- XXIV. A SHOCK 287
-
- XXV. JOURNEY’S END 300
-
-
-
-
-THE QUEEN OF FARRANDALE
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-THE NE’ER-DO-WELL
-
-
-“I’ve never had any luck,” said Hugh Sinclair, lifting a stein of beer
-and emptying it in one steady draught.
-
-The fashionably dressed man, with graying hair on his temples who sat
-opposite him at the table, left his own foaming mug untouched as he
-watched the handsome, rough-looking boy of twenty-four with a half smile.
-
-“Nor my father before me,” added Hugh, as he set down the empty stein.
-“No silver spoons in the mouths of our family when they are born.”
-
-“Your father was a pretty fine man,” remarked the other.
-
-“Oh, yes, I suppose so,” said the boy carelessly. “I remember, Mr. Ogden,
-that you and he were a sort of pals. I suppose it was on his account that
-you looked me up to-day. I’m sorry I haven’t any better hospitality to
-show you than a near-beer joint. These hot dogs aren’t so bad, though.
-Try ’em.”
-
-The young fellow drove his fork into the food on his plate and his
-companion followed his example, while a brazen automatic piano in the
-corner crashed out “The Virginia Blues.”
-
-John Ogden began to eat. “I love that clever human who cursed the man
-that put the din into dinner, and took the rest out of restaurant,” he
-said.
-
-“M’h’m,” agreed Hugh with his mouth full.
-
-“Who are left in your family?” asked Ogden. “The last time I saw you was
-twelve years ago, and do you know why I remember the date?”
-
-Hugh looked up. “Can’t imagine. Something about father, I suppose.”
-
-“No, about your sister Carol.”
-
-“Good old Carol?” said the boy with surprise.
-
-“Yes. How much more time have you before you must go back to the store?”
-
-Hugh looked at his wrist watch. Its dilapidated leather bracelet matched
-the carelessness of its owner’s general appearance. “Half an hour.”
-
-“Then let us eat quickly and get to some quiet spot.”
-
-They found it in a hotel lobby on the way to Hugh’s place of business,
-and in transit John Ogden took further mental note of his companion’s
-shabbiness. Not only were his clothes in need of brushing, but he had
-not shaved to-day; his shoes were dusty and by industry the boy finished
-several cigarettes before, in the hotel lobby, they found a couple of
-neighboring chairs, and he lighted another.
-
-“Hard luck to tote you around this way, Mr. Ogden, but all I’ve got is a
-hall bedroom in a hash house.”
-
-“You talk a lot about luck, don’t you?” remarked the older man. “You
-don’t look as if you had ever gone after it very hard.”
-
-“Oh, yes,” responded Hugh; “I’ve batted around considerable after jobs.”
-
-“You don’t keep them very long, eh?”
-
-“No, and the devil can take them for all me. I’ve never had anything
-worth keeping since I got back from France. I care for nobody and nobody
-cares for me. That’s about the size of it, and most of the other fellows
-are the same way. My friends are all Bolshevists.”
-
-“Oh, come now,” said the older man, regarding the frank young
-ne’er-do-well with some disgust, “that isn’t worthy of your father’s son.”
-
-“Perhaps not; but what do you care?” turning upon his well-dressed,
-well-groomed companion; nettled by the shade of contempt in his tone. “My
-father’s dead and that’s the end of him.”
-
-“I was going to tell you why I care,” said Ogden, meeting the inimical
-look in the exceedingly handsome blue eyes bent upon him. He paused a
-minute, then added, “I am glad I stopped over and hunted you up. You
-remind me of her.”
-
-“Oh, yes,” said Hugh listlessly, “Carol. You said something about Carol.”
-
-“I did,” returned the other quietly. “Twelve years ago to-day I asked her
-to be my wife.”
-
-“_You_—Carol?” The boy’s voice was so incredulous that Ogden smiled.
-
-“Yes; I wasn’t always forty-two, you know. I was thirty then, and she was
-eighteen.”
-
-“That was the reason you hung around father, then?”
-
-“One of the reasons, yes,” said Ogden slowly. “She was a sober little
-head for eighteen, and it was largely because for years she had had to be
-a mother to her little brother.”
-
-The tone and manner in which this was said caused Hugh to remove his
-cigarette for a thoughtful moment. “Good old Carol,” he said; then,
-restoring the cigarette, he added, “I wish to thunder she had married
-you. That guy Morrison carried her off to Colorado. She hated to leave me
-like the devil. She wrote me every day while I was over there.”
-
-“Don’t light another cigarette, Hugh,” exclaimed the other in
-irrepressible impatience. “Don’t you know you never will hold a position
-if you’re one of these coffin-tack slaves?”
-
-Hugh flared up. The flare showed in his beautiful eyes and darkened
-them to violet. Who was this glass of fashion to dictate to a decent
-Bolshevist like himself!
-
-“And don’t I tell you I don’t give a damn how many dinky positions I
-lose?” he retorted.
-
-Ogden put a soothing hand on the boy’s big arm and was nervously shaken
-off. “I’m sorry, old man. Don’t take it that way. Of course you’re free,
-white, and twenty-one; but I can’t help taking an interest in you.”
-
-“Better cut it. I thank you, of course, for looking me up”—Hugh rose—“but
-I’ve got to trot along now. Good luck to you.”
-
-John Ogden rose, too. “It won’t be good luck for me unless I see you
-again. I’m staying at this hotel. Come to dinner with me to-night.”
-
-“Oh, no. Thank you just the same, but I’ve no togs decent to dine in
-a place like this.” The boy was somewhat touched by the older man’s
-invitation and manner, and he smiled grudgingly, revealing perfect teeth
-and more than ever causing Ogden a twinge of memory. “I can dress for a
-dinner of Reds in some cellar. That’s my size.”
-
-“Wait a minute, Hugh. Listen. This is my anniversary. I never could love
-another girl after Carol. I’ve gone lonely for twelve years for her sake.
-If she could have felt differently I should have been your big brother
-all this time. Won’t you dine with me to-night? This is always a hard day
-for me.”
-
-Hugh looked down on his immaculate companion curiously. How could a man,
-with hair graying around the temples and growing thin on the crown,
-nurse memories of love? It seemed absurd. But the face regarding him so
-steadily was a strong one. An idea suddenly occurred to the boy.
-
-“Were you in the big shindy?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“What were you?”
-
-“Major of infantry.”
-
-“Get any bumps?”
-
-“Yes, I achieved a little limp. Didn’t you notice it?”
-
-“I hated the officers,” remarked Hugh.
-
-“Will you come to-night?”
-
-There was only a trifle more of hesitation before the boy answered:
-“Well—I’ll come.”
-
-Ogden slapped him on the back and he moved off with long, deliberate
-strides. The older man looked after him. The boy’s splendid build and the
-grace with which his head was set on those firm shoulders attracted many
-a glance wherever he appeared.
-
-The man sighed. He was familiar with the type of disillusioned
-returned members of the A.E.F., who went out surrounded by the incense
-of hero-worship, and came back to the shock of finding themselves
-negligible.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-FOR CAROL
-
-
-At the appointed hour Hugh came. He had made the concession of blacking
-his shoes, and shaving, and the unkempt hair of the noon hour, though
-obviously still in need of the barber, had been brushed until its dark
-auburn waves lay thickly in place.
-
-John Ogden had secured a table for two in a retired corner and ordered a
-dinner, the first couple of courses of which seemed to cheer the gloom of
-his guest.
-
-“I suppose I ought to call you Major,” said the boy.
-
-“Not if it does violence to your feelings. I am plain John Ogden again,
-you know. I would like to forget the war.”
-
-“Same here,” returned Hugh, swallowing a mighty mouthful of red snapper.
-
-When the meat course was well under way, Ogden began his investigation
-again.
-
-“You haven’t told me much about yourself,” he said. “It seems as
-if you must have relatives in town. Why should you be living in a
-boarding-house? It’s too bad. I thought I remembered connections of your
-father’s.”
-
-“There were some odd cousins of his about when I was a kid,” said Hugh,
-“but they have disappeared. I wouldn’t live with ’em on a bet, anyway.”
-
-“Then there was some one else,” persisted the host. “Your father had a
-very wealthy aunt, I remember.”
-
-The filet was so extremely good that under its influence Hugh smiled at
-this reminiscence. “Oh, that old dame,” he remarked. “Yes, she’s still in
-the ring. You couldn’t kill her with an axe. She must be a hundred and
-fifty by this time; but she doesn’t live here, you know.”
-
-“I thought she did.”
-
-“No, old Sukey lives in Farrandale”—naming a rural city some hundred
-miles distant from the metropolis.
-
-John Ogden admired beauty in man, woman, or child, and the light of
-contemptuous amusement which now played over the face of his guest so
-relieved its habitual sullenness that the host allowed himself the
-pleasure of staring for a silent space. He was very conscious of the
-glances bent upon Hugh from other tables, but the boy himself was
-entirely engrossed in the best dinner he had enjoyed for many a moon.
-
-“There was some quarrel, I remember,” said Ogden; “some trouble between
-her and your father.”
-
-“Well, slightly,” returned Hugh. “She didn’t have any children, so my
-father, being her nephew, she set out to run him. Dad had a pretty stiff
-upper lip, and she claimed he ruined her life by disobeying her in his
-marriage, and in his business, and in the place he chose to live, and so
-on _ad infinitum_.”
-
-“So she let him die without forgiving him.”
-
-“Let him die! She’d have made him die if she could.”
-
-“And she ignores the existence of you and Carol.”
-
-“Well, rather.”
-
-“It is all very vague in my remembrance because I didn’t notice anything
-much but Carol in those days. So”—the speaker paused again—“you are very
-much alone in the world, Hugh.”
-
-“Yes,” said the boy carelessly. “What’s the difference? I don’t want any
-relatives bothering.”
-
-When the meat course was finished, he took out a package of cigarettes.
-“Have a tack on me?” he said, and his host accepted one, but offered his
-guest a cigar which the boy refused with a curt shake of the head.
-
-“Of course, if I could have Carol, I’d like it,” he went on. “Carol’s
-never a nuisance. It would be good for me, too. I know that. If the
-Volstead Act hadn’t been sneaked in on us, I know perfectly well I
-wouldn’t last long. I haven’t any way of making hootch and no money to
-buy it, so I still cumber the ground.”
-
-“I don’t like to hear a young fellow talk like that,” said John Ogden,
-and he was not so unconscious of the servant class as to feel easy under
-the waiter’s entertainment.
-
-“A young fellow doesn’t like to talk that way either,” retorted Hugh,
-“but what is there in it? What’s the use of anything? Of course, I’ve
-thought of the movies.”
-
-“What?”
-
-“Thought of going into the movies.” Hugh did not lower his voice, and the
-waiter was indefatigable in his attentions.
-
-“I’m a looker,” went on the boy impersonally, as he attacked the salad.
-“Wallie Reid and Valentino—any of those guys wouldn’t have anything on me
-if I chose to go in for it.”
-
-“Why don’t you, then?” John Ogden thought he might as well share the
-waiter’s entertainment.
-
-“Oh, it’s too much bother, and the director yells at you, and they put
-that yellow stuff all over you when you know you’re yellow enough
-already.”
-
-The boy laughed, and sending out a cloud of smoke from his Grecian nose
-again attacked his crab-meat.
-
-After they had finished the ices and while they were drinking their
-coffee, Ogden succeeded in driving off the reluctant waiter.
-
-“I’m interested in that inexorable grand-aunt of yours,” he said. “What
-is her name?”
-
-“Susanna Frink,” returned Hugh, “affectionately known in the bosom of the
-family as ‘Old Sukey the Freak.’”
-
-His host sat up and leaned forward. “Not possible! Susanna Frink your
-aunt?”
-
-“’Tisn’t my fault,” said Hugh, raising the smooth dark eyebrows his host
-had been admiring.
-
-“But I know her,” said Ogden. “There’s a masterful old lady for you!”
-
-“You bet your life,” agreed Hugh. “I’ve always believed she must be a
-descendant of that old galoot—I mean Canute, that commanded the proud
-wave—thus far and no farther!”
-
-“Well, I never knew that Susanna Frink was Mr. Sinclair’s aunt. He never
-said much about her to me, but Carol used to laugh about a family
-fortune that was so near and yet so far. Miss Frink is a personage, Hugh.
-I’ve had business dealings with her, and she prides herself on being a
-lady of the old school. She told me so herself. All alone in the world,
-and feels it, I know, for all her proud front.”
-
-“False front probably,” put in Hugh.
-
-“Perhaps.” Ogden smiled. “Anyway, it is dark—”
-
-“What did I tell you!”
-
-“And faultlessly waved, and she is straight as an arrow and slender, and
-she drives about in her victoria with the bay horses in the fashion of
-fifty years ago, scorning automobiles with her whole soul. Her bonnet
-ties under her chin, and her eyeglasses are attached to a black ribbon.
-She has personality plus. You ought to meet her.”
-
-“Meet her!” Hugh leaned forward with a scowl of incredulous disgust.
-“Wrinkled old harridan in a black wig! What should I want to meet her
-for?”
-
-Ogden studied him thoughtfully—“You don’t resemble your father. Neither
-did Carol. You must have had a beautiful mother.”
-
-“We did.” Hugh felt in an inside pocket and took out a small rubbed
-morocco photograph case. Opening it, he handed it to his friend.
-
-Color came into the latter’s face as he looked at it. “Carol!” he
-exclaimed.
-
-“No. Mother. What do you think of old Sukey for trying to lay father off
-that peach?”
-
-“I’d give a thousand dollars for this picture,” said Ogden, upon which
-Hugh took it from him without ceremony and returned it to his inside
-pocket.
-
-“It was Carol’s,” he said. “She gave it to me to take over there. I guess
-it was a mascot, for I pulled through some tight places.”
-
-John Ogden continued to gaze at him for sheer pleasure in the way his
-lips curved over the faultless teeth in an occasional smile, bringing
-back his romance with the gentle girl, who liked him, but not well enough—
-
-“Well,” said Hugh, rising, “I mustn’t take any more of your time, Mr.
-Ogden. I had forgotten there were dinners like that in the world, and I
-thank you, I’m sure, for bothering yourself.” He held out his hand, but
-his host took him by the sleeve.
-
-“Don’t be in a hurry, old man,” he said. “The party isn’t over yet. Have
-you any best girl you want to go to see?”
-
-“Divil a girl. I called up one that I’d met one evening, and asked if I
-could drop in, and she said, ‘Certainly,’ and went on to ask what we
-were going to do—what were we going to see? ‘Good-night,’ said I, and
-hung up with a click. My first and last offense.”
-
-John Ogden laughed. “Sit down, then, if there is no meeting of the Reds
-to-night.”
-
-Hugh laughed and dropped back into his chair.
-
-“I’ve had an idea,” said his friend. “You liked the dinner. How would you
-like to have one like that every night?”
-
-“Foolish question number 13,” responded Hugh.
-
-“I know a way you can get it.”
-
-“Well”—the boy regarded his dignified companion curiously—“so do I; but
-Bolshevism and safe-cracking aren’t the same thing.”
-
-“A sufficient number of good dinners cure Bolshevism, I’ve noticed,” said
-Ogden. “I have hopes of you if you will do what I say.”
-
-“Shoot,” remarked Hugh, still gazing at him imperturbably.
-
-“You have had some thought of being an actor. I’m offering you a part.”
-
-“I didn’t know what business you were in, Mr. Ogden. Are you a producer?”
-
-“No; I’m in the wool business, and I’ll give you some to pull over your
-Aunt Susanna’s eyes.”
-
-He smiled, and Hugh shook his head.
-
-“I suppose you know what you are talking about.”
-
-“The question is how much stamina have you, Hugh? Could you, for
-instance, stop your cigarettes? I believe that is the eighth you’re on
-now.”
-
-“I can do anything I want to, of course,” said the young fellow coolly,
-“but I don’t believe you can make me want to do that.”
-
-“Are you so in love with your present way of living?” asked Ogden dryly.
-“Your hall bedroom wouldn’t seem to indicate a very valuable business
-position.”
-
-“I haven’t any position. I’ve got a job, packing boxes in the basement of
-a department store.”
-
-“She owns the biggest department store in Farrandale.”
-
-“Who?”
-
-“Your Aunt Susanna.”
-
-“What in thunder do I care what she owns?”
-
-“Because, if you have any sporting blood, you can own it some day.”
-
-Hugh leaned back in his chair. “Well, you know how to get around Volstead
-all right. I’d like a shot myself.”
-
-“I won’t hint any longer. I’m willing to bet a thousand dollars that you
-can make Susanna Frink change her will in your favor.”
-
-Hugh gave a bored smile and did not change his easy position. “Sorry
-circumstances prevent my taking you up.”
-
-“You can pay me when you get the money.” Ogden was leaning forward in his
-chair and smiling, and Hugh turned his head to face him.
-
-“Well, I’ll say Carol made an escape,” he remarked with such unction that
-his companion’s smile became a laugh.
-
-“Here’s the idea,” he said. “Your six feet of good looks nearly sent you
-into the movies. Now there’s a stage in Farrandale where you can vault
-right into a star part without having to go through the drudgery of
-atmosphere work.”
-
-He paused and Hugh stared at him, no enthusiasm in his pensive eyes.
-
-“You get yourself some good clothes—Miss Frink’s leery of the needy;
-she’s had a diet of them for fifty years—”
-
-“I haven’t any money,” growled Hugh.
-
-“I have. Don’t interrupt me. You must be very scrupulous about your
-personal appearance. You shave every day. Your shoes are always blacked.”
-Hugh looked down. “You go every Sunday to the same church Miss Frink
-does, and you apply for a position in the Ross Graham department store.
-Miss Frink is Ross; likewise she is Graham. I supply them with blankets
-and I am on sufficiently good terms with the old lady.”
-
-“Supposing I don’t get the position—and then again supposing I do,”
-contemptuously. “What of it?”
-
-“Here, here, boy, brace up. Did you leave all your fighting blood in
-France? You will get the position, for I shall make it plain that be it
-ever so humble, there’s no job so good for your purposes as one in Ross
-Graham’s.”
-
-“_You’ll_ make it plain. Say, do you think you’re writing a play?”
-
-“Why, my dear boy, you’re going to carry a letter of introduction from
-me that will explain to Miss Frink that you are a young man whose
-connections have large dry-goods interests, and, as you wish to learn the
-workings of an up-to-date, perfectly equipped department store, I have
-advised you to examine the Ross Graham establishment as an example of
-thoroughly good management and success. Your desire is to begin at the
-bottom and learn the business from A to Z.”
-
-“Oh, still pack boxes in a basement,” remarked Hugh, but a light of
-curiosity began to shine in his eyes.
-
-“I know Miss Frink; I know what she likes. She hates dawdlers; she hates
-failures. She herself is an example of a successful business woman. She
-didn’t inherit money. I have heard that a tea-room and a peculiarly
-delicious candy started her fortune fifty years ago. She is in the early
-seventies now, not a hundred and fifty as you estimated;—and what are the
-seventies in these days? Just the youth of old age.”
-
-“Are you kidding?” returned Hugh.
-
-“I never was more in earnest.”
-
-The boy grunted. “Why, the very name of Sinclair would give Sukey
-hydrophobia.”
-
-“That is why you can’t use it,” returned his mentor promptly. “What was
-your mother’s maiden name?”
-
-“Draper, and I suppose that would be anathema, too.”
-
-“Perhaps. She has a wonderful memory.”
-
-“My middle name is Stanwood.”
-
-“That would do. Then the initial on your clothing would be all right.”
-
-Hugh’s attention was caught. John Ogden noted that his guest was letting
-his cigarette go out.
-
-He waited a moment to allow cerebration to go on.
-
-The boy finally met his eyes again. “You seem to mean all this business,”
-he said.
-
-“Money talks,” returned Ogden sententiously.
-
-“You really want to put up money on this fool idea?”
-
-“It will only be a fool idea if you’re a fool.”
-
-“Well, probably I am.” The boy’s broad shoulders relapsed against the
-back of his chair.
-
-His companion frowned and sat forward more tensely in his own.
-
-“You are Miss Frink’s legitimate heir,” he said, in a low voice, “but,
-believe me, there is no hope of her dying intestate. Are you going to
-continue tamely taking one cheap job after another, being a disgrace to
-the finest sister a boy ever had, listening to the disgruntled talk of a
-lot of grouchy fellows until you become as spineless as they are”—
-
-“Say, now,” Hugh sat up, crimsoning.
-
-“Keep still. Are you going on living in a cloud of cheap tobacco smoke,
-in a hall bedroom on a back street, with no ambition for anything better—”
-
-“Look here—”
-
-“No one stands still,” declared John Ogden curtly. “You’re going down
-if you’re not going up. You, with your splendid physique, allowing your
-backbone to slump like boiled macaroni. Aren’t you man enough to take a
-brace and go to Farrandale and shove that pussy-footing secretary of your
-aunt’s out of the place that should be yours?”
-
-Hugh regarded the suddenly fiery speaker with open lips.
-
-“He expects to be her heir; everybody knows he does. He has Miss
-Frink under his influence so that the whole household are afraid
-of him. There she lives in this great house, with her servants and
-this secretary—Grimshaw, his name is. He has wormed himself into her
-confidence until she scarcely makes a move without him, though she
-doesn’t realize it herself. Will you stay here and let him have it all
-his own way?”
-
-The speaker scowled into the dark eyes with the deep, pensive corners
-that were giving him their full attention.
-
-“As soon as you told me you were Miss Frink’s nephew, I saw what you
-could do; and for the very same reason that you felt you could succeed in
-the movies. Isn’t it Shakespeare who said: ‘She is a woman, and therefore
-to be won’? They’re not a bit different at seventy from what they are at
-seventeen when they get hold of a man like you.”
-
-Hugh still gaped, and was silent.
-
-“Of course, there must be something inside your head as well as out.
-You’ll have to make self-denials and sacrifices; but who doesn’t who gets
-anywhere?”
-
-“You want me to go to Farrandale under an assumed name,” said Hugh
-slowly. “I know what Carol would say. She would say I was living a lie.”
-
-“Then I should remind your sweet sister that Stanwood is your own name,
-and that you are going on an honorable mission—a rescue party of one:
-rescuing yourself from hookworm, and your aunt from the influence of a
-smooth-tongued hypocrite.”
-
-“Hookworm, is it?” said Hugh, frowning, those curving lips taking a set
-line.
-
-“Describes it to a T,” returned Ogden promptly. “Now to-morrow morning,
-give up your job. I’ll stay over another day, and we’ll fit you out and
-plan details.”
-
-Hugh put out his hand impulsively, and the older man grasped it.
-
-“Mr. Ogden, why do you take all this trouble?”
-
-John Ogden smiled. “I’m a sport,” he returned. “I’m enough of a gambler
-for this.”
-
-“I do thank you,” said the boy. “I’ve never made good in my life—”
-
-His companion could see that the strong teeth set together to hold the
-lips firm.
-
-“Let’s do this, then,” Ogden returned in a low voice. “Let’s do it—for
-Carol.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-AN INTRODUCTION
-
-
-The town of Farrandale was _en gala_. It was the annual day of rejoicing
-in its own success and prosperity. Everybody was happy except Miss
-Frink’s horses. The new coachman had drawn the check reins too tight.
-They didn’t like the streamers of bunting; they had objected to the
-band; and just as Miss Frink, always the queen of the occasion, rose in
-her carriage to say a few words to her fellow townsmen, a corner of a
-temporary platform near them gave way, and the celebrated bays, Rex and
-Regina, did what for some minutes they had been nervously contemplating:
-they bolted. The coachman’s efforts irritated them still more. Miss Frink
-was thrown violently against the side of her chariot, and in the mad,
-crashing gallop that ensued she saw her end in the sharp curve of the
-railroad they were heading for, and the advance of an oncoming express
-train. Some one else saw it, too, and, springing from the side of the
-road, caught the bridle and was dragged until one of the horses fell down
-entangled in the reins the coachman had dropped when he jumped. The
-shouting crowd leaping after the runaway found a very much-shaken queen
-of the fête, and an unconscious man lying in the road with a gash in his
-head, his hair matted with blood. The express train crashed by. It was
-a flyer that ignored even the thriving little city of Farrandale. Never
-was Miss Frink’s indomitable spirit more regnant than in the present
-catastrophe. Somebody picked up the dazed coachman, who proved to be
-intact and able to help disentangle the fallen Rex and get him to his
-feet; while others lifted the unconscious hero. Motors came flying to the
-scene. In one was Miss Frink’s secretary, Leonard Grimshaw, and a pretty
-young woman with pure white hair. The latter fell upon Miss Frink with
-horrified exclamations; while the secretary also rushed to the victoria
-and stood beside it.
-
-“Oh, had you only allowed me to drive with you, dear lady!” he mourned.
-
-“Yes, probably the horses wouldn’t have run away,” returned Miss Frink
-irritably. She readjusted her fallen eyeglasses. “Adèle, kindly leave my
-bonnet alone.”
-
-“But it is on the side, dear Aunt Susanna.”
-
-Miss Frink looked past them to the unconscious burden being lifted from
-the ground.
-
-“Has any one sent for the ambulance?” exclaimed the secretary nervously.
-“Oh, how shocking, dear Miss Frink! What might have happened! It makes my
-blood run cold.”
-
-“It must run cold if you think I’m going to send that man off in an
-ambulance,” announced Miss Frink. “Here, lift him into your car, Grim,
-and Adèle, you go for Dr. Morton and bring him to the house.”
-
-“The house, Miss Frink?” asked the secretary. “Don’t you mean the
-hospital, dear lady?”
-
-“No, I do not,” snapped the “dear lady.”
-
-One of the gathering crowd came up with a dusty suitcase. “This must be
-his,” he said, and the secretary accepted it, gloomily.
-
-Adèle Lumbard gave one look at the unconscious face of the rescuer as he
-was lifted into the waiting car and Miss Frink took the place beside him,
-then she jumped into an eagerly offered motor and sped away.
-
-Miss Frink leaned out and addressed the shaken coachman.
-
-“Get the horses home somehow, Foley.” Then to the increasing crowd: “It
-is my wish that you go on with the programme. I am not hurt in the least,
-and later Mr. Grimshaw or Mrs. Lumbard will represent me.”
-
-She steadied the form of the injured man beside her while her secretary
-drove toward the house on the outskirts of the town. His brow was
-exceedingly dark. He was afraid the cut on the stranger’s head would
-stain the upholstery of the car. Once he turned toward his employer and
-made a last effort.
-
-“You know they give them the very best care at the hospital,” he
-suggested.
-
-“Leonard Grimshaw, I am a lady of the old school,” returned Miss Frink.
-“Everybody was not rushed off to a hospital in my young days. I probably
-wouldn’t be here if it was not for this young man, and I am going to
-supervise personally every bone in his body. Drive carefully. We’ll get
-there as soon as Dr. Morton does.”
-
-Her secretary resigned himself, and gave his attention to avoiding the
-bumps as a matter of self-preservation.
-
-Miss Frink was attired in her best in honor of the state occasion. Her
-bonnet of black maline was decorated with white roses, and the maline
-lace-edged strings were tied under her chin. Her handsome dress and wrap
-were of black satin. Her hair, though streaked with silver, still gave
-the impression of being dark, and it was crimped in the even waves which
-had framed her face for forty years. The face itself, though lined, was
-still firm in texture, and her dark, alert eyes were bright. If she ever
-wore spectacles, it must have been in the privacy of her own room. The
-eyeglasses on their slender black ribbon were as inseparable from her
-appearance as a feature of her face.
-
-She looked through them now at the unconscious form beside her, and her
-spontaneous thought was: “He is too handsome! I hope I haven’t killed
-him!”
-
-The stranger’s long legs were stretched out in the spacious car, and,
-as his shoulders slid, Miss Frink put her arm around them the better to
-steady him, and looked anxiously at the matted hair, relieved to see that
-it seemed to have stanched the wound.
-
-“Grim,” she called, “it seems to have stopped bleeding.”
-
-“I hope so,” was the reply, fears for that upholstery soothed. He turned
-about enough to behold the amazing sight of his employer holding in her
-embrace the stalwart and fallen figure.
-
-“Did you ever see such a beauty, Grim?” Miss Frink’s eyes were fixed on
-the face on her breast. “What a mercy he wasn’t disfigured!”
-
-The secretary’s nostrils dilated. “It won’t matter much, if it’s
-concussion of the brain,” he remarked curtly.
-
-“Grim! Don’t!” exclaimed the lady; and at the same moment the stranger’s
-eyelids flickered and the lashes she had been admiring lifted. The hero
-blinked and looked up, dazed, into the face bending over him. About her
-lips flickered a small smile of intense relief.
-
-In a weak voice Hugh spoke: “Have you got a cigarette?”
-
-“Grim, he wants a cigarette,” said Miss Frink, her voice wavering. “Have
-you got one?”
-
-“Miss Frink,” exclaimed the secretary, justly shocked. “You ought to
-know—”
-
-“Yes, I suppose so, but you see when the cat’s away, how do I know what
-you play? It would be convenient if you happened to—”
-
-“Oh, the devil,” said Hugh, as he tried to move.
-
-“What is it? What hurts?” asked Miss Frink anxiously.
-
-“I don’t know, my shoulder, I guess. What’s doing, anyway?” inquired the
-sufferer feebly, beginning to realize his satin environment.
-
-“You caught the horses and were dragged. Don’t you remember? You saved my
-life.”
-
-Slowly Hugh cerebrated while his pensive eyes gazed up into the dark ones.
-
-“And I’m so thankful to hear you speak, I could weep if I ever did, but I
-don’t indulge.”
-
-John Ogden came floating back into the dazed, aching head, and all that
-had preceded his coming here.
-
-“What did he call you just now?” asked Hugh with feeble incredulity.
-
-“Miss Frink. I’m Miss Frink,”—with energy, “and I don’t want to die, and
-you saved my life.”
-
-At this Hugh moved his head a little in the encircling satin, and he made
-an inarticulate sound. It was feeble, but it was trying to be a laugh,
-and Miss Frink appreciated the beauty of it.
-
-“Yes, it is sort of funny saving an old woman, isn’t it, instead of a
-lovely young girl as it would be in the story-books?”
-
-“I was thinking—” said Hugh. “Are you—Susanna?”
-
-“Why, yes. How did you know it?”
-
-“Because I have a letter of introduction to you—that’s why I laughed.”
-
-“I should think you might,” dryly. “You are certainly introduced.—Grim,”
-sharply, “what are you doing!” The secretary’s feelings were such that
-he had increased his speed and jounced over a rough spot that made Hugh
-wince.
-
-“Better not talk,” said Miss Frink. “We’re nearly there.”
-
-Dr. Morton was waiting for them. Adèle Lumbard had told him that Aunt
-Susanna had a young Greek god in captivity, but that he needed some
-restoring.
-
-It proved that the cut in Hugh’s head required a few stitches, and
-that his left arm was broken. Miss Frink still insisting that her home
-should be Hugh’s only hospital, he found himself finally installed in a
-handsome, spacious room with a competent and peremptory nurse.
-
-On Miss Frink’s first visit to his bedside, where he lay with but one of
-the blue eyes peering out from his bandages, and his swathed arm resting
-on a pillow, he protested.
-
-“Miss Frink, it’s all absurd,” he said. “I don’t need a nurse any more
-than a toad needs a tail. I can take care of myself perfectly. I have my
-right hand. If you’ll just send up some chow once in a while—”
-
-“Chow,” interrupted Miss Frink thoughtfully. “You were in the war, of
-course.”
-
-“Of course,” said Hugh, smiling at her tone, but with teeth set owing to
-an assortment of twinges.
-
-“You must have been wonderful!”
-
-“Oh, I was. Ask Pershing. Say, Miss Frink, I don’t like to be all this
-unnecessary expense to you.”
-
-Miss Frink continued to look down at him reflectively. As John Ogden had
-said, she liked prosperous folk and had little patience with derelicts.
-Had she seen Hugh a few days ago shuffling along on his way to his job,
-unshaven, shabby, and careless, she certainly would not have looked at
-him twice, or if she had done so would have dilated disgusted nostrils at
-the odor of his cigarette; but John Ogden had sent his protégé forth from
-the hands of a good tailor and barber; and, had he known the disaster
-which befell that fine new suit, would have rubbed his hands in triumph.
-
-“Don’t fret about expense,” said Miss Frink. “If it were not for you, I
-shouldn’t sign any more checks; and, speaking of checks, where is yours
-for your trunk? We must send for it.”
-
-“It’s there in my pocketbook with my letter of introduction.”
-
-Miss Frink, taking this as permission, found the pocketbook. She looked
-at the marking thereon. “Hugh Stanwood,” she read aloud. “That is odd,”
-she said. “Stanwood is one of our family names.” She looked toward the
-bed with a little twitch of her lips. “Perhaps we are related.”
-
-“Who knows?” returned Hugh, who was longing for a cigarette.
-
-“May I read this letter of introduction?”
-
-“It is yours,” he answered.
-
-Miss Frink read it attentively. “John Ogden,” she said aloud as she
-reached the signature. “I congratulate you on your friend. I respect John
-Ogden very much.”
-
-“So he does you,” returned Hugh feebly, turning his bandaged head with a
-weary movement that his hostess was quick to notice.
-
-He was wishing he had never seen John Ogden, and that he was back, a
-free Bolshevist without the headache, packing boxes with both hands in a
-basement, to pay for his hall bedroom and hot dogs.
-
-Miss Frink, who had sent the nurse out of the room when she entered,
-went back to the bedside, and opened a package she had brought in with
-her. Hugh’s one violet eye rolled toward her listlessly. It suddenly
-brightened. Miss Frink had never looked so shame-faced in her life.
-
-“You see, I went out and bought them myself, and not having the least
-idea what you liked I told the man to give me a variety.” The handsome
-box she opened held a number of packages of cigarettes, all of a
-different brand, and the lover-like smile Hugh gave her as his eager
-right hand shot out made color come up in the guilty face.
-
-“Perhaps the nurse won’t let you, I don’t know,” she said
-hurriedly—“here, let me strike the match for you, it is awful to have
-only one hand!”
-
-The cigarette was lighted, Miss Frink called the nurse, and fled to the
-study where her secretary was busily sorting papers at his desk. He was
-a smooth-shaven man in his late thirties, immaculate in appearance, his
-retreating hair giving him a very high forehead, and his small mouth with
-its full lips seeming an appropriate gateway for his voice and speech
-which were unfortunately effeminate.
-
-“Grim,” said Miss Frink upon her sudden entrance, “Mr. Stanwood has been
-put in the White Room and the nurse is with him—Hello, Adèle, I didn’t
-see you.”
-
-Mrs. Lumbard rose from the floor where she had been sitting Turkish
-fashion near the book-shelves.
-
-“I was looking for that ‘Life of Mozart,’ Aunt Susanna. I thought the
-‘Lives of the Musicians’ were on this lowest shelf.”
-
-“No, upper. Take the ladder. Grim, I want you to go up to Mr. Stanwood’s
-room and get his suit of clothes, and pack them in a box and send them to
-his tailor with an order to duplicate the suit at once. Explain that he
-has been in an accident, and that the clothes and bill are to be sent to
-me. Here’s his trunk check. Get that, too. Adèle, why are you here? You
-know I wanted you to go back to the festivities.”
-
-“I did, Aunt Susanna,” said the young woman with conscious rectitude. “I
-listened to the speeches and applauded, and answered a thousand questions
-about you. Why, you’re perfectly wonderful, Aunt Susanna. Any other woman
-would be lying in bed in a darkened room with a bandage around her head.”
-
-“One bandage in the family is sufficient,” said Miss Frink, with a little
-excited laugh. “That poor boy upstairs looks as if he had been through
-the wars. And he did”—she turned acutely toward her secretary—“he did go
-through the war.”
-
-Grimshaw lifted his high forehead in an injured manner. “If that is aimed
-at me, Miss Frink, I will remind you once again of my helpless mother and
-sister.”
-
-“Oh, yes, yes,” said Miss Frink impatiently, “I know. Scuttle along,
-Grim, and do the errand. I believe I’ll jump into your car and just show
-myself at the supper at the City Hall.”
-
-“Oh, you’re wonderful, Aunt Susanna!” exclaimed Mrs. Lumbard, clasping
-her pretty hands. “If you want me to, I’ll—”
-
-“I don’t. I know how it would bore you. I’ll see that coachman first. I
-must get rid of him. I knew the checks weren’t right.”
-
-She swept out of the room as suddenly as she had entered it, and the two
-left standing there looked at each other, their expressions changing from
-the solicitude they had worn to gravity.
-
-“If the gods hadn’t intervened,” said Adèle softly, “to-night we should
-have been—”
-
-“Sh!” warned the secretary.
-
-“Of course, there would be some charities,” she went on, her brown eyes
-shining, “but you and I, you and I—”
-
-“Hush!” warned the secretary again. “We can’t be thankful enough that
-dear Miss Frink’s life was saved.”
-
-Mrs. Lumbard laughed low. “You’ve said it, Leonard. I don’t think we can.”
-
-“Adèle!”
-
-“Yes, I know.” She still laughed softly.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-A BOBBED HEAD
-
-
-As Leonard Grimshaw’s hair gradually deserted him, he brushed it up in a
-more and more aggressive tuft; and as he entered the White Room now he
-reminded Hugh of a cockatoo, with his crest and his slender, sharp nose
-and shell-rimmed spectacles.
-
-“Excuse the intrusion,” he said in his most dignified and ladylike
-manner, and, as he gazed at the one-eyed warrior, his nostrils dilated.
-Cigarette smoke was curling above the immaculateness of the bed. “I come
-at Miss Frink’s behest to get your suit of clothes,” he added coldly.
-
-Hugh removed his cigarette. “What you going to do with it?” he asked in a
-rather hollow voice. “Any needy scarecrows in Farrandale?”
-
-The secretary did not like the stranger’s nonchalant manner and he
-declined to smile.
-
-“I am to send it to your tailor to be duplicated. Miss Frink proposes to
-pay for it.”
-
-“She’ll have to if anybody does,” remarked Hugh feebly. “I’m broke.
-Awfully good of you, Mr.—Mr.—”
-
-“Grimshaw. I am Miss Frink’s private secretary and man of affairs.”
-
-“Pompous little birdie,” thought Hugh, and he regarded his visitor
-closely with his one eye, remembering John Ogden’s reference to the
-pussy-footing secretary who was to be Miss Frink’s heir.
-
-The nurse brought the suit to the bedside for Hugh to empty the
-pockets. There was the photograph in its worn leather case, a card,
-a handkerchief, some keys, a knife, but the suit being new had not
-accumulated the usual papers and old letters. There was a spotless
-pocketbook or billfold, and Hugh smiled ruefully at sight of it. He knew
-its contents.
-
-“All right,” he said, and left the lot in the nurse’s hands.
-
-The secretary continued to stare disapprovingly at the smoke-wreathed
-bed. As he accepted the dilapidated suit from the nurse, he spoke again:
-
-“I feel I should tell you, Mr. Stanwood, that tobacco is very offensive
-to Miss Frink, especially in the form of cigarettes. Of course, you have
-put us under great obligation” (Hugh noted the “us”), “but I must warn
-you that we cannot allow the atmosphere of the house to be vitiated and
-made disagreeable for Miss Frink.”
-
-Hugh smiled faintly toward the speaker. “Fine of you to look out for
-her,” he said. “Might shut the transom, nurse.”
-
-The secretary’s full lips drew together and he glared at this
-self-possession. Insolence, he called it. Of course, the man was injured,
-but, in consideration of such hospitality as was being shown him, he
-might at least act promptly upon such information.
-
-Leonard returned to Mrs. Lumbard flushed, and with the little crack in
-his voice that came with excitement.
-
-“Lying there, smoking like a young nabob,” he reported. “I told him Miss
-Frink’s horror of tobacco, and he merely asked the nurse to close the
-transom. Such nerve!”
-
-“Yes,” returned Adèle, interested, “we surely knew already that he had
-nerve: and isn’t he a beauty?”
-
-“Oh, certainly,” returned the other, throwing down the clothes on a table
-with a vigor that suggested a wish that the owner was occupying them.
-“Head all bandaged but one eye, arm bundled up, a general wreck.”
-
-“Let him smoke, then, poor thing, while Aunt Susanna is off showing
-Farrandale what she’s made of. It will be his last for one while.”
-
-It was, indeed, Hugh’s last indulgence because a high fever took
-possession of the young adventurer that night, and for a few days Miss
-Frink’s physician was a busy man. She paid scant attention to her other
-interests until the boy was sane again; and, although she kept to the
-usual hours in her study, the nurse was instructed to report to her at
-short intervals.
-
-“It does seem, Miss Frink, as if we ought to send for his Aunt Sukey,”
-said this attractive young woman on one occasion. “He calls for her
-incessantly.”
-
-Miss Frink drew her features together in the sudden grimace which sent
-her eyeglasses off her nose.
-
-“How are we going to do that? You looked through that little trunk of
-his, I suppose, as I told you?”
-
-“Yes. There wasn’t a scrap of paper in there, and this is all that was in
-his pockets.”
-
-The nurse produced the photograph case and a business card.
-
-Miss Frink examined them. “Yes, there’s John Ogden’s card. I could send
-for him, but I don’t care to have him see just what I managed to do to
-his protégé in a few hours. Unless the boy’s in danger, I won’t send, as
-yet.” Miss Frink looked long at the photograph.
-
-“Might be his sister,” she said. “There’s a resemblance. I hope it isn’t
-a best girl. He’s too young to be hampered.”
-
-Leonard Grimshaw looked over her shoulder at the picture. His employer
-glanced at him with a humorous twist of her thin lips.
-
-“You’ve kept free, eh, Grim?”
-
-“I had interests which came first,” responded the secretary, with the
-reproving tone which he reserved for implications that he had time for
-any thought separate from Miss Frink’s affairs.
-
-That lady returned the old morocco case and the card to the nurse.
-
-“Keep careful watch,” she said, “and ask Dr. Morton to report to me at
-his next visit. I wish to send for Mr. Ogden if there is occasion for
-anxiety.”
-
-The nurse left the room, and the secretary turned adoring eyes upon his
-employer.
-
-“If you ever thought of yourself, Miss Frink, you would see Dr. Morton on
-your own account. After the shock you have endured, and the heroism with
-which you returned to the excitement of the banquet, it stands to reason
-that your nerves should have a tonic.”
-
-“Fiddlesticks, Grim. I’m all right. All the tonic I need is to know that
-I haven’t killed that boy upstairs.”
-
-“Don’t worry about him,” said the secretary, looking severely through
-his dark-rimmed spectacles. “Other husky men have survived a broken arm
-and a bumped head, and I dare say he will. I feel that I ought to warn
-you that he is a person of no delicacy.”
-
-Miss Frink regarded the speaker with narrowed eyes.
-
-“I rather suspected that,” she said slowly, “by the way he grabbed my
-horses’ heads.”
-
-The secretary flushed, but continued indomitably: “Physical bravery
-is often allied with a thick-skinned mentality. I think for your own
-protection you should know what I found when I went to the White Room to
-get his suit.” He paused dramatically.
-
-Miss Frink winked off her glasses again and returned the spectacled gaze
-with deep interest. “He was kissing the nurse, perhaps,” she said. “She
-is a sweet thing.”
-
-“Miss Frink!” The exclamation was scandalized as her secretary regarded
-his lady of the old school with real amazement. “No. He was not kissing
-the nurse, but he was doing what would affect your comfort far more. He
-was smoking cigarettes.”
-
-Miss Frink surprised her companion still further by laughing.
-
-“Didn’t you hear him ask me for one in the motor? Now, I say he was
-clever, with only one arm and one eye, and laid low in bed, to manage to
-get cigarettes.”
-
-Grimshaw stared. “It must have been Dr. Morton,” he said after a pause;
-“but the point is that, when I told him you detested them, he didn’t
-stop.”
-
-“He smiled, perhaps?” Miss Frink did, herself.
-
-“I don’t remember; but I wasn’t going to stand for that, you may be sure,
-and I told him we couldn’t have the atmosphere of this house—your house,
-vitiated.”
-
-“Vitiated,” repeated Miss Frink musingly, “Fine word, Vitiated.”
-
-“Growing childish, upon my soul,” thought the secretary. “The first
-break!”
-
-“The point is,” he declared with dignity, “the significant point is, that
-he did not stop smoking. He asked the nurse to close the transom.”
-
-“Poor boy, he needn’t have done that,” said Miss Frink; “and, by the way,
-Dr. Morton didn’t give him the cigarettes.”
-
-“I suppose he got around the nurse, then.”
-
-“No. She isn’t guilty either; and, Grim”—Miss Frink paused and put back
-her eyeglasses through which she regarded the faithful one steadily—“I
-am entirely prepared to go around wearing a gas-mask if necessary. I
-might be needing one now for brimstone if it wasn’t for that boy, and he
-is going to have any plaything it occurs to him to want. Now, let’s get
-at these letters.”
-
-Her secretary blinked, and put one hand to his temporarily whirling head,
-while with the other he automatically gathered up the mail.
-
- * * * * *
-
-When, toward the close of that eventful gala day at Farrandale, Miss
-Frink had courageously returned to the scene of the festivities, two
-girls witnessed the burst of applause which greeted her as she stepped
-from her secretary’s motor.
-
-One of them, a typical flapper, her hair and her skirt equally bobbed,
-gazed balefully at the apparition of the lady of the old school as she
-bowed in response to the plaudits of her townspeople. The other, a
-gentle-looking, blonde girl, smiled unconsciously at the black satin
-figure, as she joined in the applause.
-
-The eyes of the flapper snapped. “You shan’t do it, Millicent,” she said,
-pulling her friend’s clapping hands apart.
-
-“I must,” laughed Millicent. “I’m a loyal Ross-Grahamite.”
-
-They were sitting in that part of the grandstand which had not
-embarrassed Rex and Regina by falling.
-
-“You can’t be loyal to her and to me, too. She fired me yesterday.”
-
-“Oh, Damaris,” said the blonde girl sympathetically. “What happened?”
-
-“This,” said Damaris indicating her dark short locks.
-
-“Just because you had your hair bobbed? But you ought to have known. She
-won’t allow any clerk in the store with bobbed hair.”
-
-“It’s a wonder she doesn’t insist that all the men let theirs grow in a
-braid,” said Damaris scornfully. “Powdered hair and a queue would just
-suit her, I’ll bet.”
-
-“I’m very sorry you lost the position,” said Millicent. “You really liked
-reading to her.”
-
-“Well, yes, in a way. I liked the salary; but it cramped my style awfully
-to go near the woman. I was always deadly afraid I’d say something that
-wasn’t in the book, and I used to repeat ‘prunes and prisms’ all the way
-from my house to her gate to get ready. I’ll never look at a prune again,
-nor go near a prism.”
-
-“Wasn’t she agreeable to work for? I never spoke to her, but she comes
-through the store quite often to look things over, and I think she’s
-wonderful. You can feel her power—something like Queen Elizabeth. Just
-think of her grit coming back here this afternoon. Everybody says she had
-a miraculous escape. It must have been an awful shock.”
-
-“I take a little comfort out of that,” remarked Damaris coolly. “You may
-be sure it was the man that was nearly killed. She’s indestructible, all
-right.”
-
-The girls glanced down at the seat of honor where Miss Frink was
-enthroned during the last speech of the afternoon, preluding adjournment
-of the leading citizens to the banquet.
-
-“How did you get the position, Damaris?”
-
-“Through my unbearable cousin, Leonard Grimshaw. He’s her secretary.”
-
-“Well, you’re an ungrateful rascal!” laughed Millicent. “I’ve seen Mr.
-Grimshaw often in the store”—the speaker caught her breath and turned
-grave. “He calls for grandpa’s rent, too.”
-
-“That nose of his,” said Damaris, “got its shape entirely from poking
-into other people’s affairs.”
-
-“Who is the pretty lady with white hair who is with him so often?”
-
-“Adèle Lumbard, a _divorcée_; no relation of Miss Frink’s, but calls
-her ‘Aunt.’ Think of the lady of the old school having to house a
-_divorcée_! It seems that Mrs. Lumbard’s grandmother was Miss Frink’s
-best friend, the only person, I guess, she ever loved in her life. So,
-when this girl’s marriage turned out unhappily, I rather think Miss Frink
-guessed the fault wasn’t all on one side, and I’m just sure Miss Frink
-took Mrs. Lumbard in as an offering to her friend who died long ago. I’m
-just sure of it because it’s so plain the old woman doesn’t love her any
-more than she does anybody else; only I think she wants to know where
-Adèle is, evenings.”
-
-“Why, Damaris! How imaginative you are. Why doesn’t Mrs. Lumbard read to
-her, then?”
-
-“Yes, why doesn’t she? Just because Adèle’s reading is one of the 157
-varieties of things Miss Frink doesn’t like.”
-
-“And she liked yours,” said Millicent, her gentle voice sympathetic again.
-
-“Yes; Leonard got her to try me, and though she didn’t throw me any
-bouquets she engaged me; but she informed me yesterday when we went to
-the mat, that my skirts had always distressed her by being so short,
-and now my hair settled it.” The speaker shook her fluffy mane. “I met
-Leonard when I went into the house, and he looked me over with his
-owl-eyes, and said: ‘You little fool, you’ve done for yourself now.’ And
-I had, you see.”
-
-“Is he always so affectionate?”
-
-“Yes, as affectionate as a snapping turtle; but Mother looks up to him as
-a great man because he’s closest to Miss Frink of anybody, and everybody
-believes he’ll be her heir.”
-
-“Will he help you again?”
-
-Damaris shrugged her shoulders. “I suppose not. Why don’t you and I open
-a Beauty Parlor?”
-
-“One reason is that we haven’t any money.”
-
-“Would you if we had?”
-
-Millicent shook her head. “I can’t take any chances, Damaris, you know
-that. My best plan is not to bob my hair and stick close to Ross-Graham.
-Grandfather’s pension is so small, and our house is old and we have to
-keep it in repair, and that costs. Mr. Grimshaw says our rent is so small
-he can’t do anything; but not a day passes that we don’t remember to be
-thankful for the ground being big enough for Grandpa’s garden. We’re very
-happy.”
-
-Damaris looked curiously into the hazel eyes regarding her, so full of
-the warmth of sincerity.
-
-“You’d be a wonderful partner, Millicent. Even at school I used to feel
-there was a sort of—well, a sort of perfume around where you were.”
-
-Millicent laughed. “Damaris, is that a compliment?”
-
-“Well, sweetness, anyway. You’d get around the customers every time.
-You’d really like them. I would, too, if I could make ’em look pretty.
-I’d like to have Miss Frink come in! Wouldn’t I do her up! Gosh, what
-she’d look like when she got out of the chair. Leonard, too. Wouldn’t
-I like to give Leonard scalp massage!” The speaker made a threatening
-gesture.
-
-“Damaris!”
-
-“Don’t swear, dear. Say, you haven’t told me how snappy I look. ‘Chick’s’
-the word, isn’t it?”
-
-Millicent looked at the dark, sparkling face. “Yes, but I wish you hadn’t
-done it, dear.”
-
-“Well,” Damaris sighed. “I can’t put it back. Mother wept, but I bet I’ll
-get something just as good. Mother felt it was so refined to go to that
-grand house every day and get Miss Frink to sleep.”
-
-“To sleep?”
-
-“Yes, I read to her after lunch every day, and I always left her asleep.
-That was my job.”
-
-Applause for the speech sounded, and Miss Frink rose.
-
-“There she goes,” said Millicent as they watched the tall black satin
-figure rise and take the arm of the Mayor. “Wonderful! She’s wonderful!”
-
-“Yes,” said Damaris. “They say the man that stopped the runaway was
-awfully hurt. He may be dead by this time, but what cares she? She’s back
-on her job, Queen of Farrandale.”
-
-“But she took him to her own home,” said Millicent.
-
-“Yes,” Damaris smiled. “In Leonard’s car, they say. I’ll bet he writhed.
-Good enough for him. I hope—”
-
-“No, you don’t. Now, stop, Damaris. Let us get your mother, and both of
-you come home with me to supper.”
-
-“Well, that would be awfully nice, Millicent,” returned the girl more
-gently. “You smell sweeter than usual.” The bobbed head was somewhat
-lowered. “You can comfort Mother if anybody can.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-MRS. LUMBARD
-
-
-Susanna Frink’s life had included little of the softer emotions. Of
-course, acquaintances and strangers had been voluble behind her back with
-suggestions as to what she ought to do. A woman, especially a rich woman,
-should have ties. Even the dignified, handsome, old-fashioned house
-she lived in had not been her family homestead, and it was declared an
-absurd purchase for a single woman when she moved into it nearly twenty
-years ago. The grounds, with their fine old trees, pleased her. The high
-iron fence, with the elaborate gates opening upon the driveway, pleased
-her. In the days of her restaurant—tea-house they would call it now—and
-candy-making, she had looked upon this house as fulfilling every idea
-she had ever had of elegance, and, when it fell to the possession of a
-globe-trotting bachelor who had no use for it, she bought it at a bargain
-as was her successful habit.
-
-Those early business days had been shared by another girl, gay Alice
-Ray, and to this partner of her joys and sorrows Susanna gave her heart.
-It almost broke when Allen Morehouse married Alice and carried her
-off to the Far West. The two corresponded for years, but gradually the
-epistolary bond dissolved. Miss Frink grew more and more absorbed in
-business, and the courageous, cheery chum of her girlhood came seldom
-to her mind until one day she received a letter signed “Adèle Lumbard.”
-It enclosed a picture of Alice Ray similar to one in Miss Frink’s
-possession, and the writer claimed to be Alice’s granddaughter. She
-stated that she was alone in the world having been divorced after an
-unhappy marriage, and, not knowing which way to turn, had thought of the
-friend her grandmother had loved so devotedly, and wondered if for the
-sake of auld lang syne Miss Frink would be willing to see her and give
-her advice as to what to do.
-
-Divorced! Susanna Frink’s eyebrows drew together. The lady of the
-old school had no patience with divorce. But here was Alice Ray’s
-granddaughter. Susanna looked at the picture, a smiling picture that
-through all the ups and downs of her life had stood on her dresser: an
-enlargement of it hung on her wall. There was no other picture in the
-room. Memories stirred. She had no sense of outgoing warmth toward the
-writer of the letter; but a divorce was a scandalous thing. What had the
-girl done? Worse still, what was she likely to do if left to herself?
-
-Miss Frink had no private charities. She gave through her secretary
-to the worthy organizations whose business it was to look after such
-matters, and troubled herself no further about them. Her secretary took
-care that the frequent letters of appeal should never reach her, but when
-he read Mrs. Lumbard’s, and saw the photograph, he knew that this did not
-come under the usual head; and so Miss Frink was now looking into Alice
-Ray’s sweet eyes, and the smile which seemed to express confidence that
-her good pal Susanna would not fail her.
-
-Miss Frink sent for Adèle Lumbard, and that young woman’s heart bounded
-with relief and hope. She knew all about Miss Frink—indeed, so closely
-had she kept apprised of her reputation for cold shrewdness that she had
-grave doubts as to the reception of her letter, and the curt lines of
-invitation rejoiced her. The old photograph was returned to her without
-comment.
-
-When she reached the big house, it was no surprise to have a maid show
-her to her room and tell her that Miss Frink would see her in the
-drawing-room in an hour.
-
-A sensitive soul would have been chilled by such a reception. Adèle
-Lumbard’s soul was not sensitive, but her body was, and she wholly
-approved of the linen in her bathroom and on her bed, fine in texture and
-all monogrammed. She liked the _chaise longue_ and the luxurious chairs.
-Her windows looked out on heavy-leafed maples and graceful birches rising
-from a perfectly kept lawn. A pergola and a fountain were charmingly
-placed.
-
-“If she’ll only take a fancy to me!” thought Adèle.
-
-Those piercing eyes of Miss Frink’s studied the pretty woman who entered
-the room at the appointed time. Perhaps there had been stirrings of hope
-that the newcomer might bring reminders of the one being she had loved
-with all her heart. If so, the hope died. Adèle’s dark eyes and ivory
-skin surmounted by the fluffy, snowy hair were striking, but as unlike
-the cheery brown and rose of sweet Alice Ray as it was possible to
-imagine.
-
-Miss Frink’s cold dry hand gave the plump smooth one a brief shake.
-
-“Be seated, Mrs. Lumbard!”
-
-“Oh, must you say that!” was the impulsive response. “Do call me Adèle
-for Grandmother’s sake.”
-
-“I am sorry you got a divorce. I am a woman of the old school,” was the
-uncompromising reply.
-
-“You wouldn’t wish me to live with a bad man?” The dark eyes opened with
-childlike appeal.
-
-“No; but you needn’t have divorced him.”
-
-“If I didn’t, he would always be pestering me.”
-
-“You talk like a Southerner.”
-
-“Yes. Didn’t Grandmother tell you her son went South and married there?”
-
-“Perhaps. I don’t remember. How old are you?”
-
-“Twenty-eight. You’re looking at my hair. In a single night, Aunt
-Susanna—Oh, excuse me,” with apparently sudden shyness, “Grandmother
-always spoke of you to us all as our Aunt Susanna. We were taught to love
-your picture.”
-
-Miss Frink felt slightly pitiful toward that “single night” statement and
-she kept the thought of her Alice in mind.
-
-“I don’t like harrowing details,” she said curtly, “so I won’t ask for
-them.”
-
-“Thank you so much”—with a pretty gesture of outgoing hands—“I do so
-loathe going over it.”
-
-“No wonder. I’m glad to see you don’t paint your face or dye your hair.”
-
-The dark eyebrows lifted in surprise. “That’s the way I was raised, Aunt
-Susanna,” was the meek reply.
-
-“Well, you’d better stay on here a while,” said Miss Frink at last, “and
-we’ll think what it will be best for you to do. Let us see. How long ago
-did Alice—did your grandmother die?”
-
-The dark eyes looked off in thought. “I was a little girl. It must be
-about fifteen years now.”
-
-Miss Frink nodded.
-
-“What an old Tartar!” thought Adèle that night as she went to bed; but
-she had landed, as she expressed it to herself, and possession was nine
-points of the law. She hugged herself for her cleverness in eschewing
-rosy cheeks and having nothing on her hands but the slender wedding ring.
-
-In the careful study she had made of Miss Frink and her surroundings
-before coming here, she had learned about Leonard Grimshaw. The rumor was
-that, although Miss Frink had not really adopted him, he was the closest
-factor in her life; and when Adèle met him at dinner that first evening,
-and found that he was not a guest, but living in the house, she realized
-still further his importance. Realized also that he might resent her
-claims, and so she set herself to win his regard; while he, hearing her
-call Miss Frink “Aunt Susanna” unrebuked, understood that she was to be
-accepted.
-
-They quickly formed a tacit alliance. Adèle’s efforts to get on intimate
-terms with the Queen of Farrandale were steadily repulsed, but her pride
-was not hurt as she observed that Miss Frink treated everybody with the
-same brusqueness. She discerned that the one sentiment of her hostess’s
-life was still a living memory. The two pictures Miss Susanna kept near
-her proved it, and one day, a week after Adèle’s arrival, when the lawyer
-came and was closeted alone with Miss Frink for an hour, Mrs. Lumbard
-felt jubilantly certain that the visit was for the purpose of inserting
-her own name in the old lady’s will.
-
-Adèle longed to become necessary in some way to her hostess. It was
-absurd for Leonard’s young cousin to be coming every day to read to
-her. She made an excuse to read something aloud one day, but Miss Frink
-interrupted her.
-
-“I am blunt, Adèle. I don’t have time for beating about the bush, and
-your reading makes me nervous. It’s all vowels.”
-
-“I’m sorry, Aunt Susanna,” returned the young woman meekly. “I do so wish
-I could do something for you—the little while I’m here.” The guest was
-always referring to the brevity of her visit, but weeks were slipping by.
-“Do you care for music?”
-
-“Yes, moderately,” said Miss Frink carelessly. “There’s a Steinway grand
-down in the drawing-room. I don’t know when it has been touched.”
-
-“I noticed that and was so tempted, but I didn’t want to play without
-your permission.”
-
-“Oh, go ahead any evening. I don’t want a racket in the daytime.”
-
-So that very evening Adèle, in the simple black georgette gown which made
-her white throat and arms dazzling, sat down at the piano in the empty
-drawing-room and had the triumph of seeing Miss Frink come through the
-portières in evident surprise, and sit down with folded hands to listen
-to the finished runs that were purling across the neglected keys.
-
-It was two weeks after Adèle’s arrival that Rex and Regina ran away;
-and, in the excitement of Hugh’s illness, Mrs. Lumbard had sufficient
-adroitness not to risk irritating Miss Frink’s rasped nerves. The piano
-was closed and she effaced herself as much as possible.
-
-The secretary’s exasperation at the intrusion of the young hero beneath
-their roof amused her. He confided to her the paralyzing proof of Miss
-Frink’s indulgence in the matter of the cigarettes.
-
-“Oh, if she would only go around the family!” sighed Adèle.
-
-Grimshaw gave her one look of surprise, then shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“That would certainly be the shortest way out of the house for you,” he
-said dryly.
-
-Adèle colored. “You know very well you’d like it, too.”
-
-“If I did, that would be a very different matter. I’m disgusted with the
-women of to-day.”
-
-The secretary was sitting at his desk, and Mrs. Lumbard was in the usual
-pose of hunting for a book which she always adopted in her visits to
-the study lest the lady of the old school should come in upon their
-interview. Grimshaw had a sort of fascination for her inasmuch as his
-position was certainly the one nearest the throne, and he had a large and
-undisputed authority in Miss Frink’s affairs. Adèle’s closest watch had
-never been able to discern any evidence of personal attachment in Miss
-Frink for her secretary, and he certainly had no cause of jealousy for
-Adèle on that score. This fact, more than her physical attractiveness,
-caused him to accept her friendly overtures and even to relieve himself
-occasionally in an exasperated burst of confidence.
-
-For the first five years of his employment by Miss Frink he had been
-youthfully docile, attentive, and devoted to learning her business
-affairs. At the end of that period she invited him for convenience to
-reside in her house, and from that time on he had been playing for the
-large stake which everybody believed he would win.
-
-He learned her likes and dislikes, never allowed his devotion to lapse
-into servility, and, with apparent unconsciousness of catering to her,
-kept early hours, read a great deal, and played with her endless games of
-double solitaire.
-
-She sometimes suggested that he seek a wider social life, but to such
-hints he always replied, with a demure dignity in amusing contrast to
-her brusque strength, that his manner of life suited him excellently,
-but that if she wished to entertain he was at her service. Miss Frink at
-times thought remotely that she should like to entertain. She had taken
-much interest in perfecting the details of her home, inside and out;
-but, when she came up against the question of setting a definite date and
-issuing invitations, she was stirred with the same apprehensions a fish
-might be supposed to undergo if asked to take a stroll around the garden.
-She spoke of the matter sometimes, and her secretary bowed gravely and
-assured her that he was quite ready to take her orders; but the fish
-always turned away from such considerations and dived a little deeper
-into the congenial discussion of her business matters.
-
-Leonard Grimshaw thought very highly of himself in the present, and had
-many secret plans for an important and powerful future.
-
-He looked now scornfully at Adèle standing by the bookcase with her
-self-convicted blush.
-
-“I am disgusted with the women of to-day,” he said.
-
-“Why shouldn’t we smoke as well as you?” asked Adèle.
-
-“I don’t,” he returned finally, his eyes fixed on the papers on his desk.
-“You try it once here, and you’ll find it will be a few degrees worse
-than Damaris bobbing her hair.”
-
-“Poor youngster,” said Adèle. “I must say, Aunt Susanna—”
-
-“Well, what?” said Miss Frink, suddenly coming into the room, “Aunt
-Susanna what?”—she went to the desk and threw down some papers. “File
-those, Grim. Speak, and let the worst be known, Adèle.”
-
-The secretary certainly admired his colleague as he rose to his feet.
-Without altering her pose, Adèle’s voice melted into the meek and
-childlike tone of her habit.
-
-“I was speaking of what a marvel it is that you have had no reaction
-from the excitement of that dreadful day. That is what it is to be a
-thoroughbred, Aunt Susanna.”
-
-“Thorough-nothing,” snorted the lady. “What was the use of my lying down
-and rolling over because I wasn’t hurt?”
-
-“And Rex is all right again, isn’t he?” said Adèle.
-
-“Yes, he’s got over his scratch, and the new coachman does you credit,
-Grim. He has decent ideas about a check rein. Order the horses for me at
-three. Dr. Morton says it will not hurt Mr. Stanwood to go for a short
-drive.”
-
-Miss Frink hurried out of the room, and the two she left in it stared
-at each other. Adèle smothered a laugh behind a pretty hand, but the
-secretary had forgotten her smooth diplomacy in his annoyance.
-
-“I wonder if she is going with him. The nurse is quite enough,” he said,
-as if to himself.
-
-“I wish she’d ask me to go,” said Adèle. “I haven’t had a glimpse of him
-since I saw him lifted out of the road.”
-
-“Nor she, much,” said Grimshaw. “She has had the nurse make frequent
-reports, but she hasn’t been in the sick-room at all. Why should she be
-bothered?”
-
-“No reason, of course. She is not exactly a mush of love and sympathy.
-What I was really going to say, Leonard, was that I don’t see how a young
-attractive man like you entombs himself away from his kind the way you
-do, and must have done for years.”
-
-Grimshaw raised his eyebrows as one accepting his due, and brushed back
-his thin crest of hair, with a careless hand.
-
-“I work pretty hard,” he said.
-
-Adèle looked apprehensively toward the door, then back at him.
-
-“Is it always like this?” she breathed in a hushed voice.
-
-“Like what?”
-
-“Days all alike. Evenings all alike.” Adèle clenched her hands. “Nobody
-coming, nobody going. Why haven’t you dried up and blown away!”
-
-Grimshaw regarded her. She had undoubtedly become somewhat of a
-safety-valve for his feelings, since the day when Miss Frink brought a
-foreign body into the ordered régime of the big silent house, but he
-could do without her. He would rather do without everybody. His eyes
-behind the owl spectacles had a slight inimical gleam.
-
-“Why do you stay if you don’t like it?” he returned.
-
-The young woman straightened up resentfully.
-
-“For the same reason you do,” she retorted.
-
-“That is a very silly remark,” he said coldly. “A business man stays by
-his business interests.”
-
-She regarded him in silence, and her stiff posture relaxed. He was
-powerful and she was powerless. She had put herself in his power many
-times. He could undo her with Miss Frink any hour.
-
-“I’m alone in the world, Leonard,” she said, suddenly becoming
-self-pitying. “I’m so glad to have found a friend in you. Don’t desert
-me. I’d love Aunt Susanna if she would let me.”
-
-“Better not try it on,” returned the secretary dryly, and again seated
-himself at his desk.
-
-“But I’m human!” she exclaimed, suddenly appealing, “and I’m young. Can’t
-we ever have any fun? Aren’t there any trusties in this prison?”
-
-“Adèle!” He looked up suddenly and his voice cracked. “Keep these ideas
-to yourself, if you please. This is no prison. You can go free any day.”
-
-She caught her breath. She longed to tell him he was a cautious prig;
-but for the first time she felt afraid of him. He had confided in her
-somewhat in his irritation at the stranger upstairs, but that idea was no
-longer a novelty, and now she felt that he was safely withdrawing into
-his shell.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-VISITING THE SICK
-
-
-As her secretary had said, it was Miss Frink’s policy to keep away from
-the White Room. Experts, the doctor and the nurse, had charge of it.
-Why should she hover about like a fussy old hen, getting in the way and
-causing confusion? She had her business to attend to, and there was no
-reason why her life should not go on as systematically as before.
-
-So she argued. Nevertheless, this was more easily said than done. She
-had been shocked out of her rut, and so long as that stalwart figure in
-bed in the White Room remained recumbent, she knew she could not really
-settle into her usual state of mind.
-
-Miss Damon, the nurse, came to her three times a day with reports, and
-they were the interesting moments of the day to her. This noon she
-awaited the visit with unusual eagerness; and she hailed the young woman
-with a cheerful greeting.
-
-“Dr. Morton says Mr. Stanwood may go for a drive this afternoon,” she
-said.
-
-“Yes; he is sitting up by the window now, Miss Frink. I thought perhaps
-you would like to come in and visit him. He is rather low-spirited, you
-see.”
-
-“Is he? Is he?” responded Miss Frink tensely. “What do you think he
-wants?”
-
-“Oh, just to get well, I suppose. Convalescence is the hardest part after
-such a fever as he has had.”
-
-“Well, I’ll come,” said Miss Frink, straightening herself valiantly, and
-she followed to the White Room, where in an armchair by the window sat
-a young man with long, pensive eyes. He was wearing, besides a gloomy
-expression, a small mustache and short beard carefully trimmed. A soft
-blanket was folded about his shoulders and another spread over the feet
-that rested on a cushioned stool.
-
-Miss Frink’s startled eyes drew from the nurse the explanation that Dr.
-Morton had not wished the patient to be shaved as yet, and there was no
-change of expression in the pale, handsome face as Hugh looked up at her
-approach.
-
-“Are you willing to shake hands with the old thing that got you into this
-mess?” inquired the visitor, and Hugh took her offered hand.
-
-“I see they let you look out of both eyes now.” She seated herself near
-him.
-
-“Yes, that scratch is all right,” he responded.
-
-“Miss Damon thought I would be a cheerful visitor; but I suppose I’ll
-never look cheerful to you. Now I just want to know if there is anything
-more we can do for you than is being done.” Miss Frink’s emphatic tone
-had its usual businesslike ring. “Don’t you want to smoke?”
-
-At this Hugh’s mustache did curve upward a little, showing a line of
-gleaming teeth.
-
-“You don’t like it,” he returned.
-
-“Who said so? Anyway, you’ll teach me.”
-
-Hugh’s smile widened. “She is a good old sport,” he reflected.
-
-“I don’t want that now,” he said, grave again.
-
-“Well, is there anything on your mind?” pursued Miss Frink. The nurse had
-left the room. Her taciturn patient had never said an unnecessary word to
-her. Perhaps his hostess would have more success.
-
-“Now, your Aunt Sukey,” went on Miss Frink in a gentler tone than could
-have been expected from her. “Don’t be surprised that we know about your
-Aunt Sukey; for you called for her incessantly in your delirium, and I
-assure you if you would like to see her it will give me all the pleasure
-in the world to send for her and have her stay as long as you like.”
-
-The effect of this offer astonished the speaker. Color slowly flowed up
-all over the pale face, and Hugh grinned.
-
-“Did I really call for her? Priceless! No, no, Miss Frink. You’re a
-trump, but I don’t want her sent for.”
-
-“Not on good terms, then, I judge from the way you take it.”
-
-“No, we’re not. You’ve hit the nail on the head. I imagine that’s your
-way.” Still coloring, he met the solicitous eyes bent upon him as Miss
-Frink grimaced her glasses off.
-
-“Perhaps she is opposing a love affair. Don’t mind an old woman’s plain
-speaking; but, of course, we saw the sweet face in your photograph, and
-it doesn’t seem as if there could be anything wrong with that girl. I
-like the quaint way she does her hair. I’m a lady of the old school, and
-it’s refreshing to see a coiffure like that in this day of bobbed idiots.
-Did Aunt Sukey oppose her?”
-
-“With tooth and nail,” replied Hugh. “You are a mind reader.”
-
-“Well—dear boy”—Miss Frink hesitated—“I want to do anything in this world
-I can for you. Are you sure I can’t do anything in this matter?”
-
-“It’s a little late,” said Hugh.
-
-“Never too late to mend,” returned Miss Frink stoutly and hopefully. She
-regarded the beauty of her companion, considering him in the rôle of a
-lover. “You look just as if you were ready to sing ‘Faust,’” she said. “I
-shall call her Marguerite until you tell me all about it.”
-
-Miss Frink little suspected that she had set fire to a train of thought
-which hardened her companion against her, and accented the repugnance to
-the part he was playing; a repugnance which had dominated him ever since
-the breaking of his fever.
-
-Many times he had definitely made up his mind that, the minute sufficient
-strength returned, he would disappear from Farrandale and repay John
-Ogden every cent of his investment if it took years to accomplish it.
-Two things deterred him: one, his last interview with Ogden in which the
-latter reminded him of his lack of initiative and self-control—in other
-words, his spinelessness. That stung his pride. “Remember,” said John
-Ogden, “of the unspoken word you are master. The spoken word is master of
-you.” The other incentive to continuing the rôle in which he had made
-such a triumphant début was Miss Frink’s secretary. Hugh was a youth of
-intense likes and dislikes very quickly formed. In spite of himself he
-liked his brusque, angular hostess. To be sure, saving any one’s life
-creates an interest in the rescued, but it was not only that. Hugh liked
-the sporting quality of his great-aunt. He liked the way she had done her
-duty by him and not fussed around the sick-room. She was a good fellow,
-and he didn’t like her to be under the influence, perhaps domination, of
-the spectacled cockatoo who was also, in his own estimation, cock of the
-walk. If Miss Frink had kept away from the White Room, Leonard Grimshaw
-had not done so. He came in frequently with a masterful air and the
-seriousness with which he took himself, and his patronizing manner to
-patient and nurse grated on the convalescent.
-
-“I’ll be darned if I’ll leave Aunt Sukey to him,” was the conclusion Hugh
-invariably reached after one of his visits.
-
-“There is something on my mind, Miss Frink,” said Hugh, now, “and that is
-Mr. Ogden. I’m sure he is wondering why he doesn’t hear from me.”
-
-“I’ll write him at once,” said Miss Frink. “It shall go out this
-afternoon. We’ll mail it together.”
-
-The patient’s long eyes rolled toward her listlessly.
-
-“Yes. You’re going for a drive with me. Dr. Morton says you may.”
-
-“H’m,” returned Hugh. “Not until I get a little more starch in my legs, I
-guess. I can barely get to this chair from the bed.”
-
-“Oh, of course the butler and the coachman will carry you over the
-stairs.”
-
-“Thanks, no. I prefer not to be handled like a rag doll.”
-
-“What have you got that blanket on for?” demanded Miss Frink, suddenly
-becoming conscious of the patient’s garb.
-
-“Why—” John Ogden in his preparations for his protégé had not had the
-foresight to prepare for inaction on his part. “I—I haven’t any bathrobe
-with me.”
-
-Here the door opened and Leonard Grimshaw walked in. It entertained Hugh
-to note the abasement of the uplifted crest as the secretary saw his
-employer.
-
-“I beg pardon. I didn’t know you were here, Miss Frink.”
-
-“Whether you knew it or not, you might have knocked,” she retorted. “Look
-here, Grim, Mr. Stanwood doesn’t wish to drive to-day, so I am going now
-instead of later.”
-
-“Now, Miss Frink?” deferentially. “Luncheon will be served in fifteen
-minutes.”
-
-“Now,” repeated Miss Frink. “There is an errand I wish to do. Order the
-horses at once, please.”
-
-The secretary bowed in silence and withdrew.
-
-“Bully for you, old girl. You know your own mind,” thought Hugh, and at
-that moment the nurse appeared with a tempting tray. The patient regarded
-it with a little less apathy than usual. The last few minutes had been an
-appetizer.
-
-Miss Frink rose. “Eat all you can, my boy. I shall let you see my letter
-to Mr. Ogden before I mail it.”
-
-“Do you know his address?”
-
-“Certainly; Ross Graham buys of him. To tell the truth, I should have
-written him long before this if it hadn’t been I was ashamed to have him
-know the reception I gave his friend.”
-
-Hugh smiled faintly. Age must have ripened Aunt Sukey. She was certainly
-a good sort. Grimshaw couldn’t put it over her whatever Mr. Ogden might
-think. Hugh still smiled as he thought of the depressed crest, and the
-deference of that voice so full of unction.
-
-The secretary shook his head as he departed on his errand. To postpone
-luncheon—why, it was nearly as unheard of as to connive at cigarettes!
-
-“She’s breaking—breaking,” he reflected. “It’s the beginning of the end.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-AT ROSS GRAHAM’S
-
-
-The horses were at the door, likewise the secretary. He had encountered
-Mrs. Lumbard in the hall, and informed her that the luncheon gong would
-not sound at present.
-
-She lifted her shoulders. “Curfew shall not ring to-night! Why the
-_bouleversement_?”
-
-“Miss Frink wishes to do an errand.”
-
-“It must be a marvelous one that won’t wait.”
-
-The crest was lifted high. “She behaves very strangely,” was the
-dignified reply. “She is”—Grimshaw tapped his temple—“somewhat changed
-since her shock. It betrays itself in many ways. My deeply beloved and
-respected Miss Frink!” He shook his head.
-
-Adèle gazed at him curiously, with little whimsical twitches at the
-corners of her lips. “We can’t expect anything else at her age,” she
-replied, in the low tone that he had used.
-
-The subject of their remarks now appeared at the head of the stairs,
-dressed for her drive. She looked a little annoyed to see the couple
-waiting below together.
-
-“Well, well,” she said testily. “I am not going on a journey. You look as
-if you were waiting to bid me a long farewell.”
-
-“Would you like me to go with you?” asked Mrs. Lumbard. “I can get my hat
-very quickly.”
-
-As Miss Frink reached the foot of the stairs, she returned the young
-woman’s eager gaze coolly. “I am not in the least shy of asking your
-company when I want you, Adèle,” she returned, pulling on her gloves.
-“Any last wishes, Grim?”
-
-“I am simply waiting to put you in your carriage, dear lady,” he
-returned, injured dignity again to the fore.
-
-“All right,” brusquely. “Order lunch to be served in three quarters of
-an hour; and, Adèle, Mr. Stanwood doesn’t feel ready to come downstairs
-yet, but he’s sitting up, and you might open the piano again. There is no
-objection to your playing if you feel like it. He might like it—in the
-distance.”
-
-Mrs. Lumbard lingered until the secretary had his employer safely
-ensconced and the glistening horses had driven away. She watched him
-come up the path, and then went out on the wide veranda behind the white
-columns to meet him.
-
-“Grim by name and grim by nature,” she said, laughing. “You look
-funereal.”
-
-“Don’t make silly jokes,” he snapped. “I should think you had had a snub
-to last you for one while.”
-
-“Wasn’t it right between the eyes?” she returned cheerfully.
-
-“Everything that dear Miss Frink says is straight from the shoulder
-always,” said her secretary.
-
-“I thought you were going to say straight from the heart. No wonder you
-call her ‘dear.’ So ingratiating, so affectionate.”
-
-“That is enough of that,” said Leonard curtly. “I am here to protect Miss
-Frink—even from her poor relations.”
-
-Mrs. Lumbard crimsoned to the roots of her white hair. “That is a nasty,
-insulting thing to say.” The brown eyes scintillated. “The sacred lunch
-hour is postponed. I may play in the daytime. If you are here to protect
-Miss Frink, you would better let her relatives take care of themselves,
-and turn your attention to the crippled Greek god she has been visiting
-the last hour. Don’t you know, as well as I do, that she has gone on
-some errand for him? Perhaps not cigarettes this time, but for something
-he wants, and wouldn’t you be glad if I could have gone with her and
-found out what it was? You won’t get anywhere by insulting me, Leonard
-Grimshaw.”
-
-“There, there, Adèle.” The secretary was coloring, too. He disliked
-hearing put into words the thoughts that had been grumbling in the back
-of his head; but Mrs. Lumbard flashed past him and into the house,
-and, hurrying to open the piano, in a minute the crashing chords of a
-Rachmaninoff Prelude were sounding through the house. Every time those
-strong white hands came down, it was with a force which might have been
-shaking the cockatoo crest.
-
-In the White Room the convalescent’s pensive eyes widened. “Who can that
-be?” he asked the nurse.
-
-“I’m sure I’ve no idea, Mr. Stanwood. It sounds like a man. Perhaps it is
-Mr. Grimshaw.”
-
-“Say, if it is, he’s some good, after all. Only that’s a punk thing he’s
-playing. That stuff’ll do when you’re dead. Would you mind going down and
-asking him if he knows anything from ‘The Syncopated Playfellows’?”
-
-“I shall be glad to, Mr. Stanwood.” And Miss Damon went downstairs and
-stood outside the entrance to the drawing-room until the last dignified
-chord was dying away, then she entered.
-
-“Why, Mrs. Lumbard!” she exclaimed in surprise; “we thought it was a man.”
-
-“I wish I was,” said Adèle vindictively, “and that I was just going to
-fight a duel, and had the choice of weapons. I’d choose horsewhips and I
-guarantee I’d get there first.”
-
-Miss Damon’s demure little mouth smiled leniently. “Mr. Stanwood sent
-me down. He was very pleased to hear music, and we thought it might be
-Mr. Grimshaw; and Mr. Stanwood wanted me to ask him if he could play
-something from ‘The Syncopated Playfellows.’”
-
-Adèle’s eyes grew their widest. “Goodness, he’s human then if he did come
-from Olympus!” The eyes brightened. “To think of having a live one in the
-house! It’s the jazziest kind of jazz, Miss Damon. I might just as well
-meet Miss Frink at the door with a string of profanity. Will you stand at
-the window and watch for the carriage while I loosen up?”
-
-She plunged at once into the audacious rhythm and jerking melody
-requested, and it was not long before Leonard Grimshaw’s pointed nose
-and amazed spectacles appeared between the heavy satin portières.
-Adèle flashed defiance at him and pounded on her complicated way. The
-secretary felt beating symptoms in his feet, but he still glared.
-
-The barbaric strains came to a close.
-
-“I’m surprised,” he said.
-
-“You look it,” retorted the musician.
-
-Miss Damon glided from the room and upstairs. She found enthusiasm in the
-pale face of her patient.
-
-“Thank you. Grimshaw isn’t so dusty, after all. Why, he’s a wizard.”
-
-“It wasn’t Mr. Grimshaw. It was a Mrs. Lumbard, a niece of Miss Frink’s,
-who lives here.”
-
-“Lives here? I wonder why she hasn’t played before.”
-
-“Oh, Miss Fink wouldn’t allow the piano opened while you were ill, Mr.
-Stanwood.”
-
-“Say”—Hugh looked out the window thoughtfully—“she’s been awfully white
-to me. Miss or Mrs. Lumbard did you say?” looking back at the nurse.
-
-“Mrs. She’s a widow with white hair. Quite pretty.”
-
-“H’m! She’d better have her hair dyed if she’s going to play like that.
-It’s a wonder it doesn’t turn red and curl of its own accord.”
-
-Meanwhile Miss Frink had directed her liveried coachman to drive to Ross
-Graham Company’s. Rex and Regina would probably have gone there if left
-to themselves, so often did they traverse the road. Holding their heads
-high, their silver harness jingling, they, like their mistress, seemed to
-be scorning the parvenu motors among which they threaded their way.
-
-Arrived at the store, Miss Frink told the new coachman where to wait—it
-was a nuisance to have to break in new servants, to have to initiate a
-novice into her established customs. She supposed the man who had held
-that position for so many years could not help dying; nevertheless, if
-he had not done so Rex and Regina would never have run away with her;
-and, as she left the victoria with this reflection, another consideration
-followed close on its heels. She would never have known Hugh Stanwood. A
-softened expression grew around her thin lips.
-
-Yes, she would probably have received him into the store to please John
-Ogden, but she would never have taken any notice of him. The clerks in
-the big establishment held just the same place in her consideration as
-the lights, or the modern fixtures for carrying cash.
-
-She entered the store and was met by a deferential floorwalker.
-
-“How do, Mr. Ramsay. Where are the men’s dressing-gowns or bathrobes or
-smoking-jackets, or whatever you call ’em?”
-
-“Why, that’s quite flattering, Miss Frink. I didn’t know that you trusted
-the manager to plan a department out of your knowledge.”
-
-“That is because you don’t know me, then. I make certain that a person is
-competent, and after that I don’t tie any strings to him; but this is the
-first time in my life I ever bought anything for a man. I hope you’ve got
-something decent.”
-
-“Now, look here, Miss Frink”—they were walking toward the back of the
-store, and every unoccupied clerk was casting furtive glances at the
-eagle-eyed proprietor—“that’s heresy, you know. New York might come over
-here and take a few lessons from our stock.”
-
-Miss Frink’s lips twitched. It was her usual manner of smiling.
-
-“Glad to hear it. Now, prove it.”
-
-They reached the section desired, and Mr. Ramsay nodded to a blonde girl
-busy with her cash book.
-
-“Dressing-gowns, Miss Duane”—then he bowed and moved away.
-
-Miss Frink’s bright gaze fixed on the clerk. “Haven’t I seen you
-somewhere else?” she demanded.
-
-“Yes, Madam,” returned the girl. “I am in the glove section, but Miss
-Aubrey has gone out to lunch, so I’m over here.”
-
-“Do you know anything about the stock?”
-
-Millicent colored under this abruptness, but she smiled.
-
-“Not very much, but I can show you what we have.”
-
-Miss Frink liked her tone and manner.
-
-“Human intelligence, eh?—Do you know who I am?” with sudden consideration
-that perhaps this sweetness was for the occasion.
-
-“Yes, indeed, Miss Frink. We all know you. I have fitted you to gloves.”
-
-The lady of the old school still regarded the blonde head with its simple
-twist of hair carried back from a low broad forehead. “I was sure I had
-seen you. Are you always patient with people that snap you up?”
-
-“Oh, yes. I might lose my job if I wasn’t.” The girl laughed a little.
-
-The wholesomeness of her, with her color coming and going, pleased her
-customer, but above all the charm of her low-pitched voice attracted Miss
-Frink.
-
-“Well, let’s get at it, then,” she said. “I want a dressing-gown for a
-man who is recovering from a severe accident and beginning to sit up.”
-
-Millicent approached a series of hangers, Miss Frink close on her heels.
-
-“What size does he wear?”
-
-“Heaven knows, but he’s built on the quantity plan.”
-
-“Takes a large size, then.”
-
-“That’s the idea.”
-
-“How about this?” Millicent drew out a garment covered with Persian
-figures.
-
-“Take it away, child. I don’t want a Sheik pattern.”
-
-The girl tried next a soft blue wool wrapper with cord and tassels.
-
-“Nor a baby bunting,” snapped Miss Frink. “I tell you he’s a he-man.”
-
-Millicent could feel the tears of amusement pressing to her eyes, but she
-was quite frightened at the same time. The customer towered so above her
-and now began pulling over the gowns with her own hands.
-
-“Look here, haven’t you got something handsome?” demanded Miss Frink at
-last.
-
-“Oh, I’m sure we have what any one has,” stammered Millicent. “I thought
-if it was for a sick person, something soft—”
-
-“Well, he isn’t going to be sick all his life, I hope.”
-
-Millicent hurried to some drawers at one side, and opening one drew
-forth a dressing-gown of heavy black satin on which were printed small
-wine-colored flowers. Each one burst into brightness with one crimson
-petal, giving an effect of jewels. The rich cord and tassels showed
-threads of crimson.
-
-Miss Frink’s expression was one she had probably not worn since she
-was confronted by her first wax doll with real hair. She grimaced her
-eyeglasses off.
-
-“Well, I think better of Ross Graham,” she said, after an eager pause.
-
-“It is very rich,” remarked the saleslady, demurely.
-
-“Not too rich for his blood, I guess,” said Miss Frink, handling the
-lustrous fabric and putting back her eyeglasses.
-
-“Do you suppose it’s big enough?”
-
-“It is a large size.”
-
-“Do you think he’d feel like a Christmas tree in it?”
-
-“Is he a young man?” asked Millicent.
-
-“Oh, yes. He’s got a mustache and beard now,” said Miss Frink, appearing
-to think aloud as she caressed the satin musingly. “Of course that makes
-him look older, and his beard is quite red. Much redder than his hair
-and, of course, _crimson_—but that will be off in a few days—” She
-paused, continuing to consider, and Millicent’s soothing voice fell upon
-her perturbed thought.
-
-“You see the lining is very nice. They have taken that dark tint in the
-flowers and matched it, so there is nothing too gay about it, I should
-think.”
-
-Her hazel eyes met Miss Frink’s and her smile was winning. “Of course,
-you know best, but it seems to me this is a dressing-gown for Prince
-Charming.”
-
-Miss Frink grimaced her eyeglasses off.
-
-“For whom did you say?” quickly.
-
-Millicent blushed. Miss Frink liked to see her do it.
-
-“Oh, that’s just nonsense, but you know, the hero of all the fairy tales?”
-
-“Don’t know one of them.”
-
-“Well, Prince Charming is always the hero,” laughed Millicent. Miss Frink
-in her present torn mental condition was not frightening. “I think this
-dressing-gown looks good enough for him.”
-
-“Very well.” Miss Frink took a long breath and replaced her glasses.
-“I’ll take it.”
-
-“Do you wish it sent?” Millicent was again the demure saleslady.
-
-“No. Just wrap it up.”
-
-“There are mules that go with it,” suggested the girl. She turned back to
-the drawer and brought out the glinting satin slippers.
-
-The corners of Miss Frink’s lips drew down. “What fool things for a man!”
-she remarked.
-
-“I don’t see why,” said Millicent, perceiving that the customer wished
-urging. “They’re very comfortable, and when he wears the gown he must
-have some sort of slippers.”
-
-Miss Frink started. “I don’t believe he has any,” she mused. “Put them
-in,” she added, and sighed again.
-
-“You’re a very good saleswoman,” she said at last. “Probably hungry this
-minute. I am.”
-
-“Oh, that’s no matter for me. Did—” the girl paused, the box in her hand.
-“Did you want the price marks taken off?”
-
-“Well, well! You have got more than human intelligence. Of course I do.
-How much are they, by the way?”
-
-Millicent said nothing, for her customer seized the articles and examined
-the marks.
-
-“Well”—straightening up—“Prince Charming thinks pretty well of himself,
-doesn’t he? All right, let the hide go with the hoofs, put the mules in.”
-
-While the box was being wrapped, Miss Frink looked so closely at
-Millicent that her ready color came again.
-
-“What did Ramsay say your name was?”
-
-“Duane. Millicent Duane.”
-
-“I never have time to beat about the bush. How would you like to come and
-read to me an hour every day? I’ve lost my reader and I like your voice.”
-
-“Oh, Miss Frink”—the girl’s hands clasped together unconsciously. “I know
-Damaris. She was so sorry to have offended you. Her hair will grow again
-very soon—”
-
-“Well, her common sense won’t,” returned Miss Frink impatiently. “When a
-thing is past with me it’s past. I have no post mortems. Think it over,
-Miss Duane.”
-
-“But I can’t afford to lose my job, Miss Frink,” said the girl with
-soft eagerness. “They would never let me go for an hour a day, and my
-grandfather has just a small pension; we have to be very careful.”
-
-That voice. That wholesome face. That delicately clean shining hair. Miss
-Frink smiled a little at the ingenuous lack of consciousness of the power
-of money.
-
-“That would be my care,” she said. “Think it over.”
-
-“Oh, of course, I should like it,” said Millicent, still with eagerness,
-“if it was right for me. It would give me so much more time with Grandpa.
-But there is Damaris! I can’t bear to think of hurting her feelings.”
-
-“Stuff and nonsense,” said Miss Frink. “Business is business. You’ll hear
-from me again.”
-
-A boy was called to carry the box and the purchaser departed leaving
-Millicent flushed, and happy, and apprehensive.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-A TELEGRAM
-
-
-As Miss Frink was leaving the store the floorwalker intercepted her. He
-had in his hands a letter.
-
-“I wonder if you can throw any light on this, Miss Frink. A letter that
-came several days ago to Mr. Hugh Stanwood in care of the store. We have
-no employee of that—”
-
-“No, but you will have,” interrupted Miss Frink, almost snatching the
-letter. “Hugh Stanwood is the man who hindered the rendezvous my horses
-were trying to keep with that express train a few weeks ago.”
-
-“You don’t say so. The young hero who put us all under such obligation?”
-
-“Me, anyway. I’m in no hurry to play the harp. Yes, he was on his way to
-Ross Graham’s when he stubbed his toe, poor boy.”
-
-Mr. Ramsay bowed. “I’ve heard that you are caring for him royally. I’m
-sure we shall be very glad to welcome him into our ranks if it is your
-wish.”
-
-“Well, we’ll let him catch his breath first, anyway. He’s doing well and,
-believe me, I couldn’t sleep nights if he wasn’t. I’ve just been getting
-him a dressing-gown; you don’t sell dressing-gowns for your health here,
-do you?”
-
-The floorwalker smiled deferentially. “Do you find us exorbitant?”
-
-“Do I! I’ll have to pay for this on the installment plan.”
-
-“Ha, ha! Very good. Very good, indeed. Glad we had something that pleased
-you. Good-afternoon, Miss Frink.”
-
-On the way home the lady gazed at the letter she was carrying.
-
-“John Ogden has beat me to it,” she reflected. At certain moments the
-lady of the old school found a relief to her feelings in slang. “Saber
-cuts of Saxon speech,” Mark Twain called it, and Miss Frink liked saber
-cuts. She hadn’t time to beat about the bush.
-
-Leaving her box below stairs where her secretary and Mrs. Lumbard could
-if they wished whet their curiosity on its shape and the Ross-Graham
-label, she went in to lunch with her bonnet on.
-
-The others of her family dutifully took their places. Adèle’s ivory tints
-were somewhat flushed. She knew from Miss Damon that she had scored a
-triumph with her invisible audience, and it was a certainty that that
-meant credit with Miss Frink. She cast an occasional unforgiving glance
-at the secretary who kept to his usual safe programme of speaking when he
-was spoken to.
-
-Miss Frink addressed him now. “Here is a letter from John Ogden to our
-patient,” she said.
-
-Adèle’s brown eyes suddenly glanced up, startled. Still, there were
-probably hundreds of John Ogdens in the world.
-
-“Yes. I do feel mortified not to have written him as soon as I received
-his letter of introduction. He will think I’m a savage when he learns why
-he hasn’t heard from his young friend.” The speaker regarded the letter
-beside her plate. “He addressed it in care of the store. Mr. Stanwood was
-headed for Ross Graham’s, you know; and they had no more idea _there_ who
-Hugh Stanwood was than the man in the moon.”
-
-“That is a little embarrassing,” returned Grimshaw circumspectly. “Is
-there anything I can do about it?”
-
-“No,” returned Miss Frink good-naturedly, “since you didn’t stand over me
-and make me answer that letter.”
-
-“You never showed me the letter of introduction,” said the secretary, “or
-I might have ventured—”
-
-“Oh, you would have ventured,” returned Miss Frink, “though I don’t
-think, Grim, that your slogan is ‘Nothing venture, nothing have.’”
-
-“My duty is to protect you, dear lady,” declared Leonard, unsmiling.
-
-“Oh, I know that, and you’re a good boy,” said Miss Frink carelessly. She
-set down her tea-cup. “Well, I’ll go upstairs and take my medicine. I
-hope both the boy and Mr. Ogden will forgive me. Will you both excuse me,
-please?”
-
-She left the room. Adèle longed to comment on the interesting-looking box
-she had passed in the hall, but she was still too angry with Grimshaw to
-address him.
-
-“Miss Frink is in remarkably good spirits,” he observed; and because
-Adèle knew she could irritate him, she responded:
-
-“Yes. She must have succeeded in finding something very fine for her
-protégé.”
-
-“It is going rather far to call that young person her protégé,” said the
-secretary stiffly.
-
-Adèle shrugged her shoulders. “Personally I think it is a mild name for
-him.”
-
-“She will give him the employment he seeks, doubtless, when he is about
-again,” remarked Leonard.
-
-“Unless she just passes over half her kingdom to him,” said Adèle. “You
-have been seeing him. Is he really such a beauty as he seemed that first
-day?”
-
-“Remarkable,” answered the secretary dryly, “with a flaming red beard and
-mustache.”
-
-“Horrors!” ejaculated Adèle. Then: “Poor thing, I suppose he couldn’t be
-shaved.”
-
-The secretary pushed his chair back from the table. “Only a most common
-person could have demanded the music you played for him.”
-
-Adèle grimaced. “Go on. I know what you want to say—And only the
-commonest sort of person could have played it. Go on. Have courage, the
-courage of your convictions.”
-
-“I think Miss Frink will be the best person to comment on your actions,
-in this as in all other matters while you are a guest in her house.”
-
-The two exchanged a dueling glance. Again Adèle experienced that fear of
-her antagonist which she sometimes experienced. She didn’t dare to allow
-him to dislike her.
-
-“Oh, what’s the use, Leonard,” she said with a sudden change of tone and
-manner, and she held out her hand.
-
-He drew back. “Persons shake hands when they are about to fight,” he
-said. “I hope there is nothing of that sort in the air.”
-
-Adèle dropped her hand. “I should hope not,” she returned, trying to hold
-him with her soft brown glance; but he was impervious and left the room.
-
-Miss Frink, armed with her box, went to the White Room and knocked on the
-door. As the nurse opened it, her grave little mouth was smiling.
-
-“We’ve nearly cured Mr. Stanwood while you have been gone,” she said
-cheerfully. “I’ve heard that music was being used a good deal now to heal
-the sick; and here we have an example.”
-
-Hugh was smiling, too, above his blanket wrappings. “Some pianist you
-have here,” he said.
-
-“Oh, did you like that?” asked Miss Frink. “Mrs. Lumbard played, then.”
-
-“By George, it was all I could do to stay in the chair,” said Hugh.
-
-“Well, now I’m glad to hear that,” said Miss Frink. “Music is one thing
-we can give you. I’m glad you’re in a good mood, too, for I’m just a
-little bit more ashamed than I ever thought I should be again.” She
-dropped her box on a chair, and, advancing, held out the letter. “From
-Mr. Ogden,” she continued, “and I don’t know how old it is, and I’m real
-sorry I’m too old to blush.” She noted that the invalid’s hands were
-enveloped in the blanket. “Would you like me to read it to you?”
-
-“No, oh, no,” returned Hugh hastily, thrusting out a hand for the letter.
-“I can read it all right.”
-
-The caller crossed to a window and sat down; and as Hugh opened his
-letter Miss Frink noticed that he was not too old to blush.
-
- DEAR HUGH (he read)
-
- I am nonplussed at not hearing from you. A little more and I
- will have to institute a search; for as you know I left orders
- for your mail to be forwarded to me, and a letter has come from
- your sister. I am being heroic not to open it, and I don’t dare
- forward it until I know surely where you are. The earth seems
- to have opened and swallowed you up. Please send me a wire as
- soon as you get this.
-
- Yours sincerely
-
- JOHN OGDEN
-
-“Say, Miss Frink”—Hugh’s brow was troubled as he folded the letter. “I
-ought to send a wire to Ogden. He has been the best sort of a friend to
-me and—and sending me with that letter of—of introduction to you—he can’t
-understand not hearing from me—whether I got the job or—or anything
-you—you understand.”
-
-Long before the stammering speech was over, Miss Frink was beside Hugh’s
-chair. “Don’t you worry another minute,” she said. “I’ll send a wire at
-once explaining everything, and Mr. Ogden will know I am the only villain
-in the plot.”
-
-“Plot,” thought Hugh, his heart beating with repugnance to the situation.
-
-There was a knock on the door. It was a maid announcing the barber. “Oh,
-yes, Miss Frink,” said Miss Damon. “While you were gone Dr. Morton called
-up and said he was sending the barber.”
-
-“Let him come up,” said Miss Frink, “and don’t let him cut your head off,
-boy, because I want you to hear the telegram I’ll be sending John Ogden.”
-
-She proceeded downstairs to her study and dashed in with the novel
-excitability she had displayed ever since the runaway. The shell-rimmed
-spectacles glanced up and the secretary rose. His dignity of manner was
-exceptional to-day.
-
-“Grim, I wish to send a wire. I don’t want to send it over the phone nor
-by a servant. I want you please to take it down for me.”
-
-The secretary inclined his head in silence.
-
-An hour later John Ogden in his office read the following:
-
- Have been very remiss not to tell you that your friend Mr.
- Stanwood on day of arrival stopped my runaway, saved my life,
- broke his arm and head, very ill for a time at my house. Doing
- well now. If you wish to come to see him happy to entertain you
- long as you can stay. He called constantly in delirium for Aunt
- Sukey, but will not let me send for her. Advise me and forgive
- my carelessness.
-
- SUSANNA FRINK
-
-John Ogden stared at this communication for a full minute with an
-incredulous gaze before he emitted a peal of laughter that brought tears
-to his eyes, and an office boy from the next room.
-
-He sent a prompt reply:
-
- Thank you. Will be with you next Thursday.
-
-When Miss Frink returned to the White Room, she found the invalid
-transformed from the rôle of Faust, to that of some famous movie hero of
-the present day. He was in bed again too tired and worried to smile at
-her.
-
-“I guess a nap will be the next thing, Miss Frink, and then perhaps Mrs.
-Lumbard will give us some more music,” said Miss Damon.
-
-“Very well,” returned the lady briskly. “Here’s what I sent to Ogden.”
-She stood by the bedside and read the telegram. At the mention of Aunt
-Sukey, Hugh started to laugh. He was afraid to let himself go. He felt
-capable of a fit of schoolgirl hysterics.
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Miss Frink stoutly; “it shall be just as Mr. Ogden
-says, not as you say, about sending for her. I know you, and your
-modesty about making trouble. Next time he gets up, Miss Damon, put this
-on your patient.” Miss Frink opened the waiting box and took out her
-gorgeous gift. She unfolded it before Hugh’s dazzled eyes, and Miss Damon
-exclaimed her admiration.
-
-“You see Ross Graham isn’t such a country store, Mr. Stanwood,” declared
-Miss Frink.
-
-Hugh whistled. “You called me modest,” he said. “Is it your idea that I
-shall ever wear that?”
-
-“The clerk called it a dressing-gown for Prince Charming,” said Miss
-Frink triumphantly, “and here are the slippers, Mr. Stanwood. Of course,
-they’ll fit you because they haven’t any heels. I think the girl said
-they were called donkeys.”
-
-“Queer,” remarked Hugh, “when donkey’s heels are their long suit.” But
-because his hostess was holding the satin near his hand and evidently
-wished it, he felt the rich fabric admiringly, again wishing himself back
-in that familiar basement, packing boxes, honestly.
-
-“So music means a great deal to you, Mr. Stanwood,” said Miss Frink,
-regarding the patient thoughtfully.
-
-“I don’t like that Mr. Stanwood from you,” he returned restlessly. “Hugh
-is my name, and I’d like you to use it.”
-
-“Of course I shall, then, boy,” returned his hostess promptly. “You like
-music, Hugh?”
-
-“Well,” put in the nurse with a little laugh, “if you had seen his eyes
-when Mrs. Lumbard was playing!”
-
-“H’m,” grunted Miss Frink. “Well, that’s easy. Now go to sleep, Prince
-Charming, and later this afternoon you shall have another concert.”
-
-Hugh stifled a groan and held out his pale right hand. “You know I thank
-you, Miss Frink, for all your kindness.”
-
-“Ho,” returned that lady, taking the hand in her dry grasp, and quickly
-dropping it. “If I should begin thanking _you_, when do you suppose I
-should stop talking?”
-
-She swept out of the room and Hugh closed his eyes.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-THE NEW READER
-
-
-The Queen of Farrandale had long passed the time for waiting patiently
-for anything she wished for, so it was the very next day that Millicent
-Duane came to the big house for a trial reading.
-
-She gave such perfect satisfaction that it was scarcely five minutes
-after she began that a delicate snore began to proceed from Miss
-Frink’s slender nose. Millicent regarded the recumbent figure in some
-embarrassment, and stopped reading.
-
-Miss Frink’s eyes opened at once. “Well, well, child, what are you
-waiting for?” she asked testily. “Got a big word?”
-
-Millicent, crimsoning to the tips of her ears, began again to read. She
-was afraid to stop, although the snoring began again almost immediately,
-and read on and on in the novel of the day. Although Miss Frink was a
-lady of the old school, she proposed to know what was going on in the
-world at the present time, and she always bought the book which received
-the best reviews, though Millicent came to wonder how she made anything
-of it in the hashed condition in which it penetrated her consciousness.
-
-At last, when the lady was positively fast asleep, Millicent closed the
-book, took her hat and wrap in her hand, and went noiselessly out into
-the hall and down the stairs.
-
-Mrs. Lumbard met her at the foot, and the young girl accosted her.
-
-“This is Mrs. Lumbard, isn’t it?” she said shyly. “I am Millicent Duane.
-Miss Frink didn’t tell me what to do if she went to sleep.”
-
-“You guessed right,” returned the other. “There is nothing to do but
-leave her until she has her nap out. You have evidently qualified.” Mrs.
-Lumbard laughed; it was not a pleasant laugh Millicent thought. “I tried
-to read to her, but she wouldn’t have me. Won’t you sit down a minute, or
-are you too busy?”
-
-Millicent hesitated, but seated herself near the other in the spacious
-hall with its broad fireplace. “I am not busy at all,” she said, “and it
-seems so strange after being a whole year in the store.”
-
-“I suppose you mean the Ross-Graham establishment. That is _the_ store in
-Farrandale, is it not?”
-
-“Yes, indeed, and I suppose it is the finest one anywhere,” returned
-Millicent seriously.
-
-Adèle gazed upon her earnest face with its youthful color and nimbus of
-blonde hair.
-
-“Have you known Miss Frink long?”
-
-“Oh, we all know her by sight, but I never spoke to her until yesterday
-when she came in to buy a dressing-gown, and I happened that day to have
-been put on the dressing-gowns. Wasn’t I lucky?—for this came of it.”
-
-Millicent’s happy smile revealed a dimple. Mrs. Lumbard’s eyes
-scrutinized her.
-
-“I’ll warrant she bought a handsome one,” she said.
-
-“Oh, gorgeous. The handsomest one we had. I told her it was fit for
-Prince Charming.” The young girl gave a little laugh.
-
-“Well, one would do that for the man who had saved one’s life,” remarked
-Adèle.
-
-The guest’s lips formed a round O. “Does he still live here?” she asked,
-“and is he getting well?”
-
-Mrs. Lumbard shrugged her shoulders. “I hear so, but I’ve never seen him.”
-
-Millicent looked about her in some awe. “I suppose in such a great place
-as this, people might not meet for days. Grandfather and I live in a
-little cubby-house”—the admiring eyes came back to Mrs. Lumbard’s brown,
-curious stare—“but it has a big yard and we love it.”
-
-The older woman leaned back and shrugged her shoulders again. At this
-juncture Miss Frink appeared on the stairs.
-
-Millicent saw her, and, springing up, met her where the brass jardinières
-filled with ferns grew at the foot of the wide descent.
-
-“I didn’t know what to do about leaving, Miss Frink. I saw you were
-resting so well.”
-
-The hostess, with a sharp glance at Adèle’s luxurious posture, laid a
-kind hand on the girl’s shoulder as she returned the sweet, eager look.
-
-“You did quite right,” she replied. “Leave me when you see I am dead to
-the world, and then—you may go right home.”
-
-“Right home,” repeated the girl, a little falteringly.
-
-“Yes,” said Miss Frink pleasantly. “When you leave me, go right home. You
-read well.”
-
-“Thank you,” said Millicent. “I hadn’t thought to ask you.
-Good-afternoon, Miss Frink. Good-afternoon, Mrs. Lumbard.”
-
-Her cheeks were hot as she hurried into her hat and jacket and out the
-door. When she reached home, her heart was still quickening with a vague
-sense of having done wrong. The pretty white-haired lady’s eyes and
-laugh were curious and cold. Miss Frink had been displeased that she had
-stayed and talked with her. Perhaps she ought not to have told about the
-dressing-gown.
-
-Old Colonel Duane was bending his white head and smooth-shaven face over
-the little green sprouts in a garden plot when his granddaughter flung
-open the gate and rushed to him.
-
-He raised himself slowly and looked around at her flushed cheeks. She
-pushed her hand through his arm and clutched it.
-
-“Well, how did you get along, Milly? Does it beat fitting on gloves?”
-
-“I’m so mortified, Grandpa,” was the rather breathless reply. “I had to
-be sent home.”
-
-“Oh, come, now! You can stay home if that’s the case. Is Miss Frink an
-old pepper-pot as folks say?”
-
-“No, no; she was kind to me, and I read her to sleep, which is what she
-wants; but I wasn’t sure what to do then, so when I met Mrs. Lumbard in
-the reception hall downstairs she asked me to sit down and I did. You
-remember my telling you about the white-haired lady who looks like a
-beauty of the French Court with big brown eyes? Well—there’s something
-queer—I don’t like her—and you know the Prince Charming dressing-gown I
-told you Miss Frink bought of me? Well, I told Mrs. Lumbard about it and
-she hadn’t known it.” Big tears began to form and run down the girl’s
-cheeks. “You know how we tell each other everything and show each other
-everything? Well, _they_ don’t, for she didn’t know it, and she said it
-was for that man who stopped the runaway, and he’s still there and she
-has never seen him, and—and Miss Frink suddenly came downstairs, and said
-hereafter I was to go right home when I left her. Oh”—Millicent raised
-her handkerchief to her burning cheek—“very pleasantly she said it, but
-what will she think when she hears that I told about the dressing-gown?
-She’ll think I’m a common gossipy girl.” The tears flowed fast. “It’s
-worse than Damaris bobbing her hair. Perhaps I’ll get word to-morrow
-morning not to come, and I’ve given up Ross Graham’s—” The speaker’s
-voice encountered a large obstruction in her throat and stopped suddenly,
-while she mopped her eyes.
-
-Her grandfather patted the hand clutching his arm and gave a comforting
-little laugh.
-
-“Don’t make a mountain out of a molehill, child. I judge Miss Frink
-doesn’t care much for the French beauty. She didn’t like finding you
-together.”
-
-“Do you think it might be that? Why, she is her niece.”
-
-“Yes, but I’ve heard of such phenomena as lack of devotion between aunt
-and—grand-niece, isn’t it?”
-
-“Yes—I believe so, but how funny that you know, Grandpa!” Millicent
-sniffed and mopped.
-
-“What I don’t know about what goes on in Farrandale has never been known
-by anybody. I’m an easy mark for every one who has anything to tell.
-Always doddering around the house or the estate,” waving his hand about
-the fifty feet of yard, “if people can’t find anybody else to unburden
-themselves to, there is always old Silas Duane.”
-
-“You’re so charming, Grandpa,” exclaimed the girl, clasping his arm
-tighter than before and trying to check her tears, “that’s why they come;
-and if you told _me_ everything you hear, I shouldn’t be such a greenie
-and lose my job.”
-
-“You won’t lose your job. You succeeded, and that’s what Miss Frink
-wants. No failures need apply.”
-
-“But, Grandpa”—Millicent swallowed a sob—“did you know that the man, the
-hero, was still at Miss Frink’s?”
-
-“Surely I did. Leonard Grimshaw was here day before yesterday. He has
-troubles of his own.” Colonel Duane laughed.
-
-“Does Mr. Grimshaw confide in you?” Millicent asked it with some awe.
-“Now I know that you don’t tell me _anything_.”
-
-“Yes, so long as I always have the rent ready, Grimshaw is quite
-talkative. This Mr. Stanwood is somewhat of a thorn in his flesh
-evidently. He says it is because a sick person in the house upsets
-everything, and it is a nervous strain on Miss Frink; but I imagine her
-personal interest in the young man is a little disturbing.”
-
-“Is he a young man?”
-
-“Yes; according to Grimshaw a young nobody from nowhere, who was on his
-way to look for a job at Ross Graham’s.”
-
-Millicent’s pretty eyes, apparently none the worse for their salt bath,
-looked reflective. “He may have _been_ a nobody, but any one who Miss
-Frink believes saved her life becomes somebody right away.” The girl
-paused. “I see now why she seemed pleased to have me say it was fit for
-Prince Charming. Oh, that hateful old dressing-gown! If only Mrs. Lumbard
-didn’t say anything to Miss Frink about it after I came away! Grandpa, I
-can’t bear to do that the first thing.”
-
-The girl buried her eyes against the arm she was holding. “Miss Frink
-doesn’t know that I didn’t know she had a young man in her house, and I
-calling him Prince Charming. Mrs. Lumbard has never seen him. Miss Frink
-doesn’t know that I have a grandfather who never tells me anything when I
-tell him every thing.”
-
-Colonel Duane smiled and patted her. “Just go on telling me everything,
-and don’t tell it to anybody else. You laugh at me when you catch me
-talking to myself; but I’m like that man who had the same habit, and said
-he did it because he liked to talk to a sensible man, and liked to hear a
-sensible man talk.”
-
-Then, as Millicent did not lift her head, he went on. “I’ll give you
-another quotation: a comforting one. It was our own Mr. Emerson who said:
-‘Don’t talk. What you are thunders so loud above what you say, that I
-can’t hear you.’ Now, Miss Frink is, I suppose, as shrewd a woman as ever
-lived; and something that you _are_ has thundered so loud above all that
-dressing-gown business that you needn’t lose any sleep to-night or quake
-in your little shoes to-morrow when you go back to her.”
-
-Millicent breathed a long sigh and straightened up.
-
-“Then I think I’ll go in and make a salad for supper,” she replied. “It’s
-such fun to have time—and it—it seems so ungrateful—”
-
-“Tut-tut,” warned her grandfather; and just then Damaris came in at the
-gate.
-
-“I heard you began reading to her to-day,” she said eagerly and without
-preface. “You look sort of pale. Did she scare you to death?”
-
-“No. She went right to sleep. How could you hear about it, Damaris? I was
-coming to tell you.”
-
-“Dr. Morton had to come to see Mother, and he told us. He told us all
-about that Mr. Stanwood, too. He’s nearly well. Dr. Morton says he’s so
-handsome all the girls in town will mob him; and there you will be right
-on the inside. Some people’s luck!”
-
-“Oh, don’t—I don’t want to see him,” said Millicent, so genuinely aghast
-that the girl with the bobbed hair laughed.
-
-“Why, perhaps you’ll see that dressing-gown. He must have been the one
-she was buying it for.”
-
-“Damaris, did I tell you about that dressing-gown?” The girl’s tone was
-tragic.
-
-“Why, of course—you were telling me only last night the way you met Miss
-Frink.”
-
-Millicent caught her breath. “Never speak of it again, Damaris.”
-
-“How exciting!” The flapper’s eyes sparkled. “What’s up?”
-
-“Nothing. Nothing at all.” Millicent’s usual serenity had entirely
-vanished. “It’s dangerous to have to do with powerful people, that’s all.
-I was so safe in the glove section and my customers liked me”—another sob
-caught in the speaker’s throat. “Everything is your fault, Grandpa, if
-your eyes hadn’t been injured in the Cuban War I shouldn’t have begun to
-read aloud when I was knee-high to a grasshopper and I shouldn’t read so
-well—and you never tell me anything, and—Damaris, I lay awake last night
-thinking that if I did leave the gloves, you ought to have my place. What
-could we do with your hair!”
-
-Damaris shook it ruefully.
-
-“Let’s go in the house and see what we can do with ribbons and an
-invisible net—and I’ll ask Miss Frink—if I ever see her again.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-JOHN OGDEN ARRIVES
-
-
-As the heavy door closed behind Millicent, Mrs. Lumbard straightened
-up. How could Miss Frink reasonably criticize her for civility to the
-young girl, although the mandate just expressed revealed an objection?
-“Disagreeable old thing!” reflected Adèle, while her face expressed only
-deferential attention.
-
-She expected to see her hostess disappear as usual in the direction
-of the study; but instead, Miss Frink, eyeing her steadily, came and
-took the chair Millicent had vacated, and began at once to speak: “The
-presence of a sick person in the house throws out the general routine,”
-she said. “I have really been very anxious until now about Mr. Stanwood;
-but he is coming out all right and now I can give my mind to your
-affairs. You said your idea in coming here was to get me to help you
-decide what to do. I presume you have been studying on your problem. Have
-you come to any conclusion?”
-
-Mrs. Lumbard blinked under the unexpected attack, and for a minute
-could not find the right words to reply to the entirely impersonal and
-businesslike regard bent upon her.
-
-“You are young,” went on Miss Frink. “You are an expert musician. My
-house is a very dull place for you to live.” Adèle wondered if Leonard
-had quoted her. “You must have been revolving some plans in your mind. I
-can give my full attention to you now. Speak on.”
-
-Oh, how hard it was to speak under that cool gaze; since she could not
-say, “Yes, this house is a regular morgue, but my luxurious bed and your
-perfect cook reconcile me to staying here.” There was nothing in Miss
-Frink’s manner to suggest that she had any idea that this guest might
-make an indefinite stay.
-
-Mrs. Lumbard’s face maintained its deferential look and her voice took
-the childlike tone she could use at will. “A spineless tone,” Miss Frink
-dubbed it mentally. She rebuked herself for not liking Adèle, but the
-latter’s love of idle luxury “thundered above” her inefficient meekness,
-and not all of Susanna’s still green memory of her Alice could antidote
-her distaste for the young woman’s lack of energy.
-
-“To tell the truth,” said Adèle slowly, “it has been so wonderful to be
-in a safe, quiet harbor that I have given up to the refreshment of it
-for this little while, and just enjoyed your sweet hospitality. I think
-I have been unconsciously waiting for just such a moment as this, when
-your experience and wise thought could direct me—”
-
-“No, no, child, don’t talk that way. A woman of your age shouldn’t need
-directing—”
-
-Miss Frink paused, for a servant entered the hall, and went past them to
-the door.
-
-As he opened it John Ogden entered, a suitcase in his hand. At sight of
-his hostess he paused in announcing himself.
-
-“Well, Miss Frink,” he exclaimed, as the servant took the suitcase, “I
-counted on your not minding a surprise party, for I found it was possible
-to come at once.”
-
-The two women rose, and Adèle saw that the mistress of the house could be
-cordial if she wished to.
-
-Scarcely had Ogden dropped Miss Frink’s hand when he realized her
-companion. “Why, Mrs. Reece,” he said, in a changed tone, “what a
-surprise to find you here—away from your sunny South,” he added hastily,
-fearing his amazement betrayed more than he wished.
-
-Adèle, coloring to the tips of her ears, shook hands with him and
-murmured something which Miss Frink’s brusque tone interrupted.
-
-“Stebbins,” she said to the servant, “Mr. Ogden will have the green room.
-Show him to it, and when he is ready take him to Mr. Stanwood at once.
-Mr. Ogden, you are more than welcome, and I know you will do Mr. Stanwood
-a world of good. I will see you a little later.”
-
-When the guest had vanished up the stairs, Miss Frink resumed her seat
-and her companion sank into hers, as pale as she had been scarlet.
-
-“I suppose you can explain,” said Miss Frink.
-
-“Mr.—Mr. Ogden never met me after my second marriage,” said Adèle faintly.
-
-“The first one died, I hope.”
-
-“I suppose you know why you are so rough, Aunt Susanna.” Adèle was
-evidently controlling tears.
-
-“Well, you know how I feel. I like the sod kind better than grass. Never
-mind my bluntness, child. That’s neither here nor there. Mr. Reece left
-you something?”
-
-“His life insurance, yes.”
-
-“Then it was all gone, I suppose, when you decided to try again, and drew
-a blank in the matrimonial market.”
-
-“Yes—almost,” faltered Adèle.
-
-“Then, did the unpleasant ceremony you were forced to go through
-afterward result in your getting any alimony?”
-
-“A—a very little.”
-
-Miss Frink’s lips twitched in her peculiar smile. “And you still had some
-life insurance from number one. You’re a fast worker, Adèle.”
-
-At this the tears came.
-
-“Now, don’t cry,” said Miss Frink impatiently. “You can do that later. I
-was wondering if you would care for a position in Ross Graham’s. I took
-Miss Duane away from the gloves, and I told them not to fill the place at
-once.”
-
-The young widow’s angry breath caught in her throat, but she stammered
-meekly:
-
-“And go on—living here?”
-
-“Oh, you wouldn’t be willing to do that, would you?” said Miss Frink
-reasonably.
-
-“Would you want Miss Frink’s niece to be selling gloves in her store?”
-
-“Ho!” exclaimed the other with a short laugh. “Miss Frink herself sold
-candy and cake and waited on table and was glad when she got a tip, and
-everybody in town knows it.”
-
-Adèle’s cheeks burned again. “It would be foolish not to utilize my
-music,” she said. “Since you have no pride in the matter, no doubt there
-are movie theaters in Farrandale, and I can perhaps play in one.”
-
-The young woman got the reaction she was trying for.
-
-“No, you can’t,” returned Miss Frink promptly. “That’s where I draw the
-line. Let the men do that.”
-
-Mrs. Lumbard rose. “Please excuse me,” she said faintly. It was the
-psychological moment. She had put Miss Frink in the wrong. Let her
-reflect a little. She knew the conscientious fairness under that rough
-husk. “I feel ill, Aunt Susanna,” she faltered. “I should like to lie
-down for a while.”
-
-Her handkerchief to her eyes she passed up the broad staircase, Miss
-Frink looking after her, and feeling baffled.
-
-“Yes, you’d like to lie down the rest of your life,” she declared
-mentally. It was too bad that Alice Ray could not have given the legacy
-of her splendid backbone to her descendants. “It’s tiresome, too,” added
-Miss Frink to herself. “I meant her to play to the boy about now; but I
-suppose she’s got to snivel just so long.”
-
-There being no tears behind Mrs. Lumbard’s handkerchief, she was herself
-when in the dim large hall above she met Mr. Ogden and the butler coming
-out of the green room.
-
-“You can go,” she said hurriedly to the latter. “Mr. Ogden and I are old
-friends, Stebbins. I will show him Mr. Stanwood’s room.”
-
-The man bowed and departed.
-
-“Mr. Ogden, I’m not Mrs. Reece—that is, you know, not any more.” She gave
-a nervous little laugh. “I’m—I’m Mrs. Lumbard now.”
-
-Ogden bowed. “I’ll remember. Such matters are very quickly arranged,
-these days. I’m sorry not to have been up-to-date.”
-
-She forced another little laugh at this.
-
-“You know Aunt Susanna is a lady of the old school and she
-detests—er—second marriages, and things like that—divorces and
-everything. You understand.”
-
-“Your aunt!” exclaimed Ogden in amazement. “Well, I am indeed ’way, ’way
-behind the times. I had no idea Miss Frink had a niece and, and—”
-
-“Least of all, me, I suppose,” put in Adèle, laughing again.
-
-“Your little girl, is she here?”
-
-“Oh, never mind about the baby either, Mr. Ogden, please. You see, Aunt
-Susanna is so peculiar, and we’ve always been strangers. I haven’t even
-told her about the baby. I didn’t want to annoy her by bringing a child
-here. Just don’t know anything, please, except that I’m Mrs. Lumbard now,
-and you met me in Atlanta, and never say a word about what I was doing,
-because she would faint away at a mention of the stage, and I don’t want
-to offend her.”
-
-“I understand perfectly.” Ogden bowed gravely. He thought he did.
-
-At this moment Leonard Grimshaw, always silent-footed as a cat, appeared
-in the dimness of the hall, coming from his room. Adèle had no means of
-knowing whether he had heard any of their talk, but was alertly conscious
-that he must notice the intimacy of their position as they stood
-conversing in hushed tones like a pair of conspirators.
-
-“Oh, it’s Mr. Grimshaw,” she said lightly. “Perhaps you know—”
-
-“Indeed, I do,” said Ogden, and the two men approached and shook hands.
-
-“We expected you Thursday,” said the secretary, with a formal bow.
-
-“And I hope Miss Frink will forgive my impatience. She says she will.”
-
-“Mr. Ogden and I were so surprised to see each other,” said Adèle. “We
-met in Atlanta through our interest in music. You came in the nick
-of time, Leonard. Stebbins was just going to take Mr. Ogden to Mr.
-Stanwood’s room and I intercepted him. Now you will do it.”
-
-The secretary bowed again. “If that is Miss Frink’s wish.”
-
-“Both Miss Frink’s and mine,” said Ogden pleasantly. “I understand the
-boy has provided a good deal of excitement in this corner of the world.”
-
-“One can’t help being ill,” said Grimshaw stiffly, “but it is astonishing
-how that sort of thing permeates a house and changes its routine.”
-
-Ogden’s fist doubled as he followed his guide, but he made no reply. The
-secretary as usual forgot to knock at the door of the White Room, and
-throwing open the door ushered in the guest.
-
-Miss Damon had gone downstairs, and there sat the convalescent in the big
-chair by the window. Ogden gasped. The secretary stared.
-
-Freshly shaved, the rich folds of the dressing-gown about him, his feet
-in the glinting mules on the footrest, his handsome head leaning against
-the white upholstery of the armchair, he formed a picture which filled
-one of his guests with enthusiasm, and the other with fury.
-
-“Is this the Rajah of Nankagorah!” cried Ogden.
-
-Hugh’s heart leaped with a combination of joy and rage. It was ages since
-he had seen a soul who knew him, and here was the reason. He wanted to
-hug him. He wanted to choke him.
-
-He kicked away the stool, pulled himself to his feet and showed his teeth
-in a snarling sort of smile. “Damn you, Ogden!” he said.
-
-John Ogden laughed and, striding forward, threw an arm around the
-satin-clad shoulders.
-
-“Which is the safe hand? Which arm was it?” he asked.
-
-“They’re both safe to do for you one of these days,” returned Hugh,
-clutching his friend.
-
-The secretary waited for no more. The apparition of Miss Frink’s
-extravagance and its stunning effect roused a fever of resentment in him.
-He went out and closed the door. He continued to stand outside it for a
-minute, but the old house was well built and the voices within were low.
-He moved away and downstairs, and was just in time to see Miss Frink
-going out the front door, attired in wrap and hat.
-
-“Dear lady, aren’t you coming into the study?”
-
-“Some time,” she replied lightly. “I made a purchase by ’phone this
-morning and I want to look at it before it is sent up. Have you seen Mr.
-Ogden?”
-
-“Yes, I’ve just taken him to Mr. Stanwood’s room.”
-
-“I suppose the boy was delighted to see him.”
-
-“I don’t know. He swore like a trooper,” replied the secretary with a
-righteous, long-suffering lift of his crest.
-
-The lady of the old school looked pensive, and smiled.
-
-“Can the boy swear? What a naughty boy!” she said. “I imagine he looks
-handsomer than ever when he is excited.”
-
-Grimshaw’s full lips tightened as he escorted her out to the carriage.
-
-“Breaking. Breaking fast,” he thought, and he made up his mind to be on
-the lookout for the bill for that dressing-gown. As a matter of fact, he
-never did see it. In some way Miss Frink managed to extract that from the
-usual routine.
-
-“What is she up to now?” he muttered, watching the spirited bays jingling
-up the street at the pace they took when their owner was in a hurry. An
-awful certainty possessed him that the occupant of the White Room—the
-resplendent young Rajah who looked handsome when he swore—had something
-to do with their celerity.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-A MUTINOUS ACTOR
-
-
-John Ogden waited long enough to shake his fist toward the closed door
-before he turned back to regard Hugh, who, with features refined by
-illness, perfectly groomed, and grandly arrayed, seemed to him a new
-person. The gloomy expression in the eyes, however, warned him.
-
-“Sit down again, Hugh,” he forced the tall fellow back into the white
-easy-chair, “and let me speak first.”
-
-Hugh sat down perforce, but with a belligerent expression. “No, sir. I’m
-going to do all the speaking,” he said. “You got me into this and you’ve
-got to get me out.”
-
-“Now, now, boy”—Ogden drew the nearest chair forward and dropped into it.
-“I expected I might find you a bit morbid—”
-
-“Morbid!” explosively. “Me with a nurse! Me being stuffed four times a
-day with the delicacies of the season! Me dressed up like a Christmas
-doll! I don’t need anything but a wrap of tissue paper and a sprig of
-holly to be ready for delivery; and me a liar all the time—”
-
-“Look here, Hugh”—John Ogden faced the indignation in the dark eyes.
-“Did you notice my escort as I came in? And is he on such intimate terms
-with you that he bolts into your room without ceremony?”
-
-“We’re on no terms at all. I despise the little cockatoo and he hates me—”
-
-“He has reason,” put in Ogden with a nod.
-
-“I’d like to know why. I haven’t done anything to him.”
-
-“Oh, yes, you have.” John Ogden spoke slowly.
-
-“What, I’d like to know?”
-
-“You’ve delayed the settling of the estate—unwarrantably,
-and—indefinitely.”
-
-Hugh stared, and then broke forth hotly. “Oh, look here, that’s a darned
-mean thing to say!”
-
-“I think he’s a darned mean little man,” returned Ogden calmly. “Now
-we’ve got to look this ground all over, if I’m to get you out of here.
-How comes on Sukey the Freak?”
-
-Hugh’s face flushed. “She’s a wonder, and a sport,” he answered. “If she
-wasn’t so infernally grateful to me for breaking my arm, she’d be all
-right.”
-
-“Well, I think the Queen of Farrandale likes her job pretty well. You
-probably did help her to keep it, you know.”
-
-“Oh, well, I’m sick of hearing about it,” said Hugh restlessly, “and
-if she knew who I am I could stand all this pampering better; but
-it’s degrading to be waited on, and stuffed, and having to accept
-presents when—when I’m deceiving her; and I warn you”—he began speaking
-faster—“I’m not going to stand it, and I just waited to see you. Miss
-Damon, the nurse, is a good scout, but I hate the sight of her. I want to
-be let alone. My arm is all right”—he moved it about—“a little weak, but
-here’s my right all the time.”
-
-“But you went off your head, my dear boy, and shouted for Aunt Sukey till
-you brought tears from a bronze image.” Ogden didn’t dare to laugh. “It
-rests with me to bring her here right now.”
-
-“Yes, and you think that’s very funny, I suppose.”
-
-“I think that such a début as you made in the rôle I planned for you
-was little short of miraculous; and to give it up and leave it would be
-flying in the face of Providence.”
-
-“I don’t care whose face I fly in. I’m strong enough to move out of here,
-and I’m going.”
-
-Ogden regarded him thoughtfully from the thatch of auburn waves down to
-his jeweled satin feet.
-
-“If a film-producer should come in here now, you would never be allowed
-to learn the department-store business,” he said. “I’ll wager that Miss
-Frink is having a romance—rather late in life, I admit, but it goes all
-the deeper.”
-
-Hugh shook his head gravely. “Don’t make any fun of her. Whatever she did
-to my father, she has been wonderful to me. I’ll be ashamed to face her
-when the truth comes out.”
-
-“By that time you won’t, boy. Grimshaw is so jealous of you that it shows
-your work is well begun.”
-
-“Ugh! The meanness of it,” said Hugh repugnantly. “She is so frank and
-honest that it’s disgusting to be plotting against her. Grimshaw has got
-it all over me. He’s in his own cockatoo colors when all’s said and done;
-but I”—the speaker lifted a fold of his rich robe and dropped it with a
-groan.
-
-“I’m pleased that you like Miss Frink so much,” said Ogden, ignoring
-this. “Everything will come out all right. Everybody confined to a
-sick-room gets morbid.” The speaker looked about the spacious apartment,
-and through a door ajar had a glimpse of the silver and tile of the
-bathroom. “Isn’t the house charming?”
-
-“I don’t know,” replied Hugh curtly. “I know when I once get out of it
-I’ll never see it again.”
-
-Ogden smiled. “My actor is more temperamental than an opera star,” he
-mused aloud. “Promise me one thing, boy; I think you owe me that much.
-Promise me you won’t take any step without forewarning me.”
-
-“Of course I owe it to you,” said Hugh bitterly. “I owe everybody. I’ve
-been the most appalling expense both to you and Miss Frink, it makes me
-sick to think of it when I don’t know how I can ever get even.”
-
-“You’ll get even with me by just doing what I say,” returned the other
-forcefully. “Of course, I haven’t seen you and Miss Frink together yet,
-but I’m certain you have been and are being a wonderful event in her
-life. She has been the loneliest woman I ever knew except on her business
-side. Look at this perfectly appointed house. I never heard of any
-entertaining here, nor even a passing guest. It took somebody with the
-nerve to come in and go right to bed and stay.”
-
-Hugh drew a long breath, and felt that he should never like John Ogden
-again. He might be a ne’er-do-well himself, but at least he had a sense
-of honor.
-
-“But, by the way, I found the record broken to-day,” went on Ogden.
-“I was much surprised to find Miss Frink had a niece, and that she is
-staying here: a Mrs. Reece—or I think she said it was Lumbard or some
-such name, now.”
-
-“Yes, I shall have to divide the fortune with one person.”
-
-John Ogden laughed cheerfully. The statement came so tragically from
-between clenched teeth. “Have you met her?” he continued.
-
-“No; but I heard her play yesterday. She’s a wizard, even if she has got
-white hair as the nurse told me.”
-
-Ogden gave his head a quick shake. “Don’t be misled by that white hair.
-I’ve met her several times in the South; and she is just about the last
-person on earth that I should expect to turn out to be Miss Frink’s
-niece. In fact”—the speaker paused reflectively—“I must say I can’t help
-doubting the fact.”
-
-“Oh, yes. I suppose you think she’s an impostor like me.”
-
-“Not like you, at any rate.”
-
-“Any one as strictly honorable as Miss Frink makes an easy prey,”
-declared Hugh severely, “but it would be a little hard to get away with
-the false declaration by a woman that she is her niece.”
-
-“A niece more incredible than a nephew, you think?” said Ogden cheerfully.
-
-This persistent light-heartedness was met with a scowl.
-
-“You and I can’t hope to look at this matter alike, Mr. Ogden. You see
-something amusing in hoodwinking one of the finest, most straightforward
-women who ever lived in the world—”
-
-“Bully! Bully! Bully!” ejaculated the other. “Better than I could have
-hoped. Now, hold your horses, boy, you’ve proved you know how, and you’re
-going to be smiling at me instead of scowling a little later.”
-
-“She’s killing me with kindness,” burst forth the convalescent
-obstreperously. “She means well; but, thunder, how bored I am!”
-
-“This is the end of it,” replied Ogden. “We’ll get rid of the nurse. I
-can stay a few days and give you what assistance you need, and in a very
-short time you will be an independent citizen and have the run of the
-house.”
-
-“The run of the house”—scornfully. “Like a tame cat. I suppose you think
-I’ll be shut in, nights.”
-
-A knock on the door was followed by the entrance of the nurse with a tray
-whose contents made John Ogden hungry. Hugh regarded it gloomily. The
-ignominious fact was that his appetite waxed daily.
-
-“Miss Damon, this is my friend, Mr. Ogden, come on from New York to get
-me out of here.”
-
-The nurse smiled and went on deftly arranging the tray. “He will do that
-very easily now, Mr. Stanwood. In fact, I don’t think I’m needed any
-longer, and I’ve had a summons to-day to a very sick woman, and I am
-hoping Miss Frink will let me go at once. She seemed so unwilling for me
-to leave.”
-
-“Yes, indeed. Yes, yes,” exclaimed her patient eagerly. “There’s nothing
-for you to stay for. It’s utter nonsense. Of course, you shall leave.
-I’ll insist upon it.”
-
-“And I can stay a little while,” said Ogden, “and give Mr. Si—Stanwood
-any assistance he needs.”
-
-“Miss Frink is out just now, but I think I’ll be packing up my things and
-be all ready when she comes.”
-
-“By all means,” said Hugh, and Miss Damon vanished into a dressing-room.
-
-“You said you had a letter from Carol.”
-
-“Yes.” Ogden took it from his pocket. “Don’t let your broth get cold. The
-letter has waited this long. A few minutes more won’t mean anything.”
-
-“Oh, hers are always short. Let me have it.”
-
-Hugh opened the letter and glanced over it frowningly. “Poor little
-Carol!” he exclaimed; then he read aloud to an absorbed listener:
-
- DEAR HUGH,
-
- The end has come for Alfred. I am sure you will not be
- surprised to hear it. I have known for months it must come
- and have braced myself to bear it. I am glad he always let me
- know the inside of his affairs, and, from the time his illness
- started, I set myself to learn the business so I could take his
- place. Alfred’s partner, Mr. Ferry, I never wholly liked and
- trusted. I do not feel sure of his loyalty, and for the sake of
- my children I feel I must guard every step of my business way.
- I do not say this to trouble you, or make you feel you must
- come to me. You could not help me by coming, and it is a long,
- expensive journey. I promise to tell you if I see any definite
- cause for anxiety. Don’t worry about me, dear. I am well and so
- are both the children; but let me hear from you soon.
-
- Your loving sister
-
- CAROL
-
-Hugh looked up. John Ogden’s eyes were shining.
-
-“There’s only one Carol,” he said.
-
-“I’m a nice support for a sister to lean on,” said Hugh bitterly. “And
-this letter is two weeks old.”
-
-“I will attend to that with a wire,” said Ogden.
-
-“You’ll tell her not to write to me, I suppose,” said Hugh with a sneer.
-
-“No, I’ll tell her to write in my care, as you are recovering from a
-slight illness.”
-
-“I told you, in the first place, what Carol would think of this whole
-performance.”
-
-“I shall convert her,” declared Ogden. “I shall write to her to-night.
-Eat your luncheon, Hugh, and go on trusting in me.”
-
-“Ho! Trusting!” muttered Hugh.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-THE CONSOLE
-
-
-John Ogden continued to reassure his protégé, telling him that he would
-be right behind him if there was anything he could do at any time for
-Carol, and Hugh was fast clearing the dainty tray when, replying to a
-knock at his door, Miss Frink walked in.
-
-Hugh noticed at once that she was wearing that triumphant expression
-which portended some contribution to his well-being; and, indeed, she was
-at once followed by the bearer of a handsome piece of furniture which
-proved to be the latest artistic shape, and most expensive wood, that can
-encase a musical machine.
-
-“Music is good for him, Mr. Ogden,” she explained when the polished
-beauty was set against the wall and the man had left. “Hugh is very fond
-of music, and I wanted him to be able to have it whenever he wished, and
-choose his own pieces.”
-
-“Oh, Miss Frink!” exclaimed Hugh, not joyfully, rather with an accent of
-despair.
-
-“Yes, I know,” she responded, opening the door of the record depository.
-“He doesn’t want me to get him anything; but for my own sake I ought to
-have one of these in the house.”
-
-“That is a corker, Miss Frink,” said Ogden, coming forward to make an
-admiring examination of the Console.
-
-“You pick out something for him,” said Miss Frink. “Where’s Miss Damon?”
-
-“I’m here.” The nurse appeared from the dressing-room and removed Hugh’s
-tray while Ogden put an opera selection on the machine and started it to
-playing.
-
-They all listened in silence to the Pilgrims’ Chorus, and Miss Frink
-watched Hugh’s face, noting that none of that stimulation which the nurse
-had described as the effect of music appeared upon it.
-
-“Turn it off,” she said brusquely. “He doesn’t like that piece. We’ll try
-another.”
-
-“Why, yes, I do,” said Hugh when quiet again reigned. “You make me feel
-deucedly ungrateful.”
-
-“Don’t bother to be grateful, boy,” said Miss Frink imperturbably. “I
-want you to have what you like. I let the clerk pick out these records
-and they’re here on trial. Back goes Wagner. Perhaps you’re like the man
-who heard ‘Tannhäuser’ and said he thought Wagner had better have stuck
-to his sleeping-cars.”
-
-“I’ll tell you, Miss Frink,” said Miss Damon in her demure voice. “You
-have the catalogue there, and I think, if you would let Mrs. Lumbard come
-up and make some selections—she seems to understand Mr. Stanwood’s taste—”
-
-“Bright thought!” exclaimed Miss Frink. “Miss Damon, go over to her room
-and get her, will you?”
-
-No sooner said than done; and, as soon as the nurse had disappeared, Hugh
-spoke: “Miss Damon has to leave this afternoon, Miss Frink.”
-
-That lady faced him with a slight frown. “I don’t know about her having
-to,” she returned.
-
-“Yes, a very sick woman has sent for her,” said Hugh. His voice suddenly
-burst from his control, “And I can’t stand it any longer!”
-
-“I didn’t know you didn’t like her.”
-
-“You know I do like her,” returned Hugh roughly, “but you know I’ve been
-trying to get you to let her go for a week.”
-
-“And if you will allow me,” said Ogden, with his most charming and cheery
-manner, “I will stay a few days and chaperon Hugh over the stairs a few
-times, enough to give you confidence—he seems to have it plus—”
-
-Miss Frink gave her rare laugh. “That boy is a joke, Mr. Ogden. He spends
-his days counting my pennies, I do believe. He sees me bankrupt. All
-right, you stay and Miss Damon shall go.” And here the nurse and Adèle
-came into the room.
-
-The latter stared greedily at the object of her curiosity. Flushed with
-his recent resentment, and robed in the small crimson jewels glinting
-against their lustrous black background, he sat there, and she devoured
-him with her eyes.
-
-“Mr. Stanwood, this is—” began Miss Frink, when Hugh, pushing on the arms
-of his throne, sprang to his feet with a smile of amazement.
-
-“Ally!” he exclaimed.
-
-Miss Frink stared. Another strange name for her incubus. She was no more
-surprised than the object of Hugh’s laughing recognition. Mrs. Lumbard
-gazed at him for a delighted, puzzled space.
-
-“I do believe you don’t know me. Why should you?” he cried. “This”—he
-grasped his robe—“is a little different from the canteen.”
-
-“Hughie!” exclaimed Adèle, and hurried forward to take both his hands.
-
-“She made music for us over there, Miss Frink. I ought to have known it
-when I heard her yesterday. Nobody can hit the box quite like Ally.”
-
-“Why do you call her Ally?” Miss Frink found voice to ask.
-
-“Short for Albino,” laughed Hugh. “Of course, Ally.”
-
-Miss Frink’s heart quickened. “In a single night.” The sad statement
-recurred to her at once; but it was characteristic that she postponed
-this consideration.
-
-“Here is another chance for you to be useful, Adèle,” she said. “Take
-this catalogue over to Mr. Stanwood and between you make out a list of
-his preferences. Give me three numbers right away.—No, don’t either of
-you say, ‘Do you remember,’ until I’ve got those numbers. I suppose you
-can find some of the tunes you had over in France.”
-
-“I don’t want one of them,” said Hugh emphatically. “Not much. That thing
-you played yesterday, Ally.”
-
-“Oh, yes, that will be here, and other selections from the same opera.”
-
-Meanwhile Miss Frink was exchanging words with Miss Damon, and, as the
-nurse left to get into her street dress, Miss Frink went to the phone and
-called a number.
-
-“Is this you, Millicent? This is Miss Frink. Hold the wire. Now, then,
-Adèle?”
-
-Mrs. Lumbard came near with the catalogue and gave three numbers in
-turn. These Miss Frink repeated over the wire. “Have you a pencil there?
-All right. You’ve written them? All right. Now take a cab, please, and
-get these records. If you can’t find them one place, go to another. Have
-them charged to me, and drive out here and ask to be shown up to the
-White Room.”
-
-She hung up. “You can go on making a longer list now. Perhaps Mr. Ogden
-will help you. Excuse me while I see Miss Damon.”
-
-Miss Frink left the room, and Adèle and Hugh immediately fell into
-reminiscence, John Ogden looking on with an expression not wholly in
-keeping with the mirthful chuckles that accompanied their resurrected
-jokes.
-
-“And what’s doing now, Ally? Are you a lady of leisure?” asked Hugh at
-last.
-
-“Yes; I am visiting Aunt Susanna for a little while, but I’ve got to go
-at something to earn my living. Do you know Farrandale well, Mr. Ogden?”
-
-“Why—a—pretty well,” returned that gentleman who had suddenly been
-galvanized by seeing that the young woman had unconsciously picked up a
-letter lying near her, and was twisting it nervously in her hands. It was
-Hugh’s letter from Carol.
-
-“Do you think I would have a chance of getting enough music pupils here
-to make my bread and butter, with occasionally a little jam?” Mrs.
-Lumbard’s eyes sparkled at the welcome bit of life that had come her way,
-and she felt jubilant that the drudgery of first moves in an acquaintance
-had been done away with in the case of herself and “Hughie.” So his name
-was Stanwood. He was one of the crowd of “Buddies” who doubtless would
-all remember her, though her stay at their canteen had not been long, and
-only Hugh’s exceptional looks had marked him out for her remembrance. She
-hoped his pleasure at seeing her and his enjoyment of her music would
-weigh in her favor with the difficult relative she had stormed but not
-conquered. That awful break about her hair! How would she get over that?
-
-“Why, yes, it is a flourishing little town,” returned Ogden, coming
-nearer, with hungry eyes on the letter. “If there was some way to give
-them a chance to hear you play.”
-
-Here Miss Frink returned, and Hugh accosted her.
-
-“Ally says she wants to teach music, Miss Frink. You’re always doing nice
-things for people. Why not let her give a recital here in the house and
-show the Farrandale folks what she’s made of?”
-
-Miss Frink drew near to his chair, attracted by the interested expression
-of his face, a vital look she had not before seen.
-
-“You would like that, eh?” she returned indulgently. “You want to give a
-party? I’ve never given a party,” she added thoughtfully. “I’ve never had
-the courage.”
-
-“Mr. Ogden and I will back you up.”
-
-“Yes, indeed,” said Ogden, edging nearer the tortured letter, but even
-then unable to get as close to it as Miss Frink was.
-
-“Mr. Hugh Stanwood Sinclair,” stood out clearly on the envelope, and
-Ogden could see that its owner was miles away from the consciousness of
-it.
-
-He slid around Miss Frink’s back. “Excuse me, Mrs. Re—Lumbard, my letter,
-please.”
-
-Adèle flattened the bent thing quickly. “Oh, pardon me,” she said, and
-put it in the outstretched hand. Mechanically, and from the force of
-fixed habit to see everything, especially those things which it was
-desired she should not see, she glanced at the letter in passing it;
-but her attention was quickly absorbed in Hugh’s further suggestions
-regarding publicity for her, and she was divided between hope and fear
-as to the effect on Miss Frink of his interest.
-
-Miss Frink continued to stand there, looking down absorbedly into the
-boy’s gay face, and listening quietly. Hugh laughed and joked with Ogden,
-planning how they would be ushers on the great occasion, and she stood
-still, watching him.
-
-Adèle started to rise. With a motion of her hand Miss Frink prevented
-her. “Sit still, Adèle.”
-
-Downstairs a little later Leonard Grimshaw left the study intending to go
-up to his room.
-
-Stebbins was just opening the front door as he came through the hall.
-Millicent Duane entered. She bowed to the secretary, but addressed
-herself to the servant.
-
-“Will you please show me to the White Room?” she said.
-
-Grimshaw, after a patronizing return of her greeting, was moving toward
-the stairway, but now he paused. “What did you wish, Miss Millicent?”
-
-“Miss Frink sent me for some records and asked me to bring them here to
-the White Room.”
-
-“Records?” Grimshaw looked dazed. “I thought I heard a band in the street
-a few minutes ago. I wonder if Miss Frink—” He paused and fixed his
-round spectacles on Millicent as if he suspected her of being in some
-plot.
-
-The girl turned again toward Stebbins.
-
-“You don’t need to go up. I’ll take them,” the secretary came forward and
-held out his hand for the parcel.
-
-“Thank you, but I want to do just what Miss Frink asked me to.” The girl
-clasped her package closer.
-
-Grimshaw smiled disagreeably. “The White Room is a very attractive place,
-eh?”
-
-“I don’t know anything about it,” returned the girl, her cheeks reddening
-at his manner. “I only know that I feel I would rather do exactly what
-Miss Frink asked. She may have a further errand for me.”
-
-The secretary motioned to Stebbins to go.
-
-“I will take you, then,” he said shortly.
-
-He preceded her up the stairs in silence, thinking his own disturbed
-thoughts about that band in the street, and poor broken Miss Frink’s
-obsession.
-
-Arrived at the door of the White Room, they could hear a buzz of voices
-within, and a man’s laugh. The secretary knocked punctiliously, and Miss
-Frink herself opened the door.
-
-“That’s a good child,” she said to Millicent. “You made good time. I
-think you must have read ‘A Message to Garcia.’ Come in and meet Prince
-Charming.”
-
-Millicent, her cheeks stinging in the sudden understanding of the
-secretary’s gibe, yielded up her package, and with wide eyes beheld
-the smiling face above the dressing-gown. She impulsively took a step
-backward and Adèle’s lip curled at her expression.
-
-“No, no,” said Miss Frink, “come right in. That’s what she called you,
-Hugh, before she even knew of your existence. Prince Charming. Now see if
-you can live up to it.”
-
-Hugh rose, and, though his mind was still echoing with their jokes
-about the recital, this surprising statement fixed his attention on the
-blushing, unsmiling girl with the startled eyes, whom Miss Frink was
-drawing forward. “Miss Duane, Prince Charming,” she said.
-
-The two young things gazed at each other. Poor little intense, conscious
-Millicent could only nod, her eyes frightened and fascinated.
-
-Hugh nodded, too, smiling. “A case of mistaken identity, Miss Duane,” he
-said, and dropped back into his chair.
-
-Millicent noted the proximity to it of Mrs. Lumbard’s, as she gave a
-little nod toward Adèle and breathed her name.
-
-“Mr. Ogden,” said Miss Frink, without releasing the girl’s hand, “this
-is my friend Miss Duane; no, don’t go, Millicent. I want you to stay and
-hear these things you’ve brought. Perhaps we shall want to send them
-back.”
-
-Leonard Grimshaw had remained in the room, and stood sphinx-like, his
-eyes first on the new piece of furniture and then on Adèle, who appeared
-to be chatting with Hugh in the manner of an old friend.
-
-Mrs. Lumbard noted his surprise.
-
-“I don’t believe I told you I worked in France, Leonard,” she said.
-“Imagine my amazement to find that Mr. Stanwood is one of my old Buddies.”
-
-The secretary received this information with a stiff bow.
-
-“Sit down, Grim. Never mind me,” said Miss Frink. “Mr. Ogden is teaching
-me how to run this new plaything. Here”—she carried the unwrapped records
-to Hugh—“choose your opening number.”
-
-Adèle, with her head close to his, pointed out the desired ragtime. Miss
-Frink took it back to the machine.
-
-Hugh looked at Millicent. Her fair hair was shining palely under her blue
-hat. Her cheeks were glowing. Her eyes were fixed on the music-machine.
-How could Miss Frink have been so cruel! She could feel the secretary’s
-scornful spectacles, and Mrs. Lumbard’s cold glance. This fashionable Mr.
-Ogden. Probably he was contemptuous, too, of the countrified errand-girl
-so ready to admire Prince Charming.
-
-The music started. As it went on, Miss Frink, staring at her new
-purchase, began to frown in a puzzled way as if it had maliciously
-betrayed her, and was chuckling. She finally turned toward Hugh. His
-face was beaming. He had risen and was sitting on the arm of his chair
-swinging one of his big satin-shod feet, while he softly beat his knee
-with one hand.
-
-He looked so handsome and happy she glanced at Adèle. “Wicked and
-happy!” was her quick mental exclamation. On, to Millicent, her gaze
-roved. Plenty of color was there, but no expression. There was no face
-more naturally expressive. Miss Frink began to suspect that she had
-embarrassed the girl.
-
-The strains ceased, and “silence like a poultice” fell.
-
-“Bully!” cried Hugh, gayly snapping his fingers. “That’s the stuff.”
-
-“You liked that?” exclaimed Miss Frink. “You like to be cross-eyed and
-pigeon-toed?”
-
-John Ogden laughed. “He’ll never let you send that one back, Miss Frink.
-The youth of to-day have reverted to savagery.”
-
-“My vote is that it should go back,” declared Leonard Grimshaw. The
-sphinx had spoken, and in a voice that cracked.
-
-“Oh, we’re in the minority, Grim,” sighed Miss Frink.
-
-“I don’t believe so,” he said, making one last stand for the
-circumspection and decency of the house. “Mr. Stanwood and Mrs. Lumbard
-find it to their taste evidently, but Mr. Ogden I’m sure does not. I
-think it is simply disgusting, and if Millicent Duane is honest she will
-say the same.”
-
-His heat amused Hugh, who caught the glance which the young girl,
-appealed to, turned to him, involuntarily. He leaned forward and held her
-there. She could not free herself quickly from that laughing, questioning
-gaze.
-
-Starting up from her chair she said: “I—I don’t believe I heard it—much.”
-
-“Didn’t hear it!” exclaimed Miss Frink, putting her hands over her own
-suffering ears.
-
-“I—Grandpa is waiting for me, Miss Frink. If you don’t need me any more—”
-
-“No, child. I don’t need you. Thank you, and run along.”
-
-Millicent swept the room with a vague, inclusive nod, and, going out into
-the hall, hurried to the stairs, and ran down. Her breath came fast, her
-eyes were dim and she stumbled. Some one behind her, unheard on the thick
-covering, caught her. She started and flung a hand across her eyes.
-
-“Did you have your cab wait, Miss Duane?” asked John Ogden.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-MILLICENT DUANE
-
-
-She glanced at him through the moisture. His face was seriously
-questioning. “No—I sent it away,” she replied indistinctly.
-
-“If you don’t mind I’ll walk on with you a bit, then.” He took his hat
-and opened the door for her. “My favorite part of the day,” he added.
-
-In silence they crossed the wide veranda, and when they were descending
-the steps Millicent spoke again: “It sounded very foolish, for me to say
-I didn’t hear that record.”
-
-“Perhaps you are one of the fortunate people who can close their ears
-to what they don’t wish to hear.” They passed through the iron gates.
-“Or perhaps you didn’t want to take sides. I saw Mr. Stanwood trying to
-hypnotize you.”
-
-Millicent met her companion’s kind smile. “Why did Miss Frink want to
-make me feel so foolish?” she burst out impetuously.
-
-“I’m sure she didn’t wish to or mean to. You shouldn’t grudge her a
-little fun. I’m certain she doesn’t have much. What she said shouldn’t
-have been embarrassing. It was extremely mysterious, however.”
-
-Millicent regarded her companion again, suspiciously; but his was a most
-reassuring face, and, besides, he had a number of gray hairs.
-
-“She said,” he went on, “that you called Mr. Stanwood Prince Charming
-before you knew of his existence. Nothing in that to offend you, but a
-riddle of riddles all the same, to me.”
-
-Ogden’s pleasant voice soothing her vanity made swallowing a much easier
-matter. “You see,” she hesitated, “I used to be in Ross Graham’s.”
-
-“Long ago?” He glanced at her childlike profile.
-
-“Yes.—About three days. Miss Frink bought something of me—and I said—it
-was fit for Prince Charming—and Miss Frink didn’t know about fairy tales.”
-
-“I dare say not,” remarked Ogden.
-
-“So I told her, and we—we got acquainted that way.”
-
-“Not that gorgeous robe!” said Ogden, suddenly enlightened.
-
-“Yes, that horrid dressing-gown!”
-
-“Horrid? It’s a dream!”
-
-“Yes, a nightmare.”
-
-“What’s all this? What’s all this?”
-
-“I didn’t know he was there—in Miss Frink’s house.”
-
-“She said you didn’t.”
-
-“I didn’t know it was for him.”
-
-“She said so.”
-
-Millicent of the glowing cheeks turned quickly on her companion; and he
-smiled into her disturbed eyes.
-
-“There is only one explanation of Miss Frink’s remark causing you
-embarrassment,” he said.
-
-“Oh, of course I know I ought to have said something bright, and funny,
-and careless, but I never am bright, and funny, and careless. What do you
-mean by explanation?”
-
-“Oh, just that the—the disturbing fact was that you found you had hit the
-nail on the head: that he _was_ Prince Charming, you know.”
-
-If Millicent’s cheeks could have gained a deeper hue it would have been
-there. Her temples grew rosy, and her lips parted. A little frown met her
-companion.
-
-“Now, if it had been I that sat there sporting all those crimson jewels,
-I, with my high forehead, and silver threads among the gold, you would
-just have given a little sympathetic grin at Papa, and curtsied, and let
-it go at that.”
-
-“Mr. Ogden,” with displeasure, “I am not so—”
-
-“Just let me tell you, Miss Duane, so you’ll think better of him, that
-Prince Charming isn’t working at it as a profession at all. I never saw
-anybody whose good looks disturbed him less.”
-
-“Mr. Ogden, do you suppose—”
-
-“So I don’t want you to let it set you against him, or feel the way you
-did when you ran downstairs just now. By the way, Miss Duane, do you
-happen to be related to the Colonel Duane who has a war record? Very
-distinguished man. I’ve heard he lives in Farrandale.”
-
-The speaker had the pleasure of watching the transformation in the
-transparent face, from bewildered resentment to eagerness.
-
-“There!” he said suddenly, “I suspected you had a dimple. If I had been
-wearing that dressing-gown, I should have seen it sooner.”
-
-“Why, it’s Grandpa. Colonel Duane is my grandfather.—Perhaps you knew it
-all the time, and that is the reason you’ve been so—so disrespectful in
-your talk.”
-
-Ogden laughed. “Indeed, the fact should have made me far more respectful.
-I didn’t know it, but your pretty name brought up the association. I
-certainly should like to meet Colonel Duane.”
-
-“Well, you’re going to,” said Millicent eagerly. “We live together and we
-have a garden. We live in one of Miss Frink’s houses, and when I used to
-be in Ross Graham’s—”
-
-“Three days ago,” put in Ogden.
-
-“Well, it seems three months. Then I had so little time with him; but now
-that I only have to get Miss Frink to sleep—”
-
-“To sleep!”
-
-“Not at night, you know. Just in the daytime. She has some one come and
-read to her, and now it’s me. It used to be another girl, but she bobbed
-her hair and lost the place. Poor Damaris! I do so wish I could get Miss
-Frink to let her have my position in the gloves, Miss Frink hates bobbed
-hair so. Do you think you might help, Mr. Ogden?”
-
-“Anything I can do. Buy her some hair tonic, perhaps?”
-
-Millicent laughed. “I may ask you to help,” she said earnestly. “We’re
-nearly there, Mr. Ogden, and I want to tell you before we meet Grandpa
-that I appreciate your kindness in seeing that I was unhappy and running
-after me. Mrs. Lumbard—do you know Mrs. Lumbard?”
-
-“Yes, I do.”
-
-“Well, she—even in that short time she made me feel I was in the
-way—and—and everything was wrong. I don’t want you to think I’m too
-stupid.”
-
-Ogden met her appealing look. “I understand you very well,” he said.
-
- * * * * *
-
-They approached the little old house built before Farrandale had grown up.
-
-“I’m so pleased that you appreciate Grandpa,” the girl went on. “You see
-Grandpa was a celebrated lawyer when he laid down his profession to go
-into that war. He is Somebody!”
-
-Ogden perceived the white-haired figure in the garden. The old man had
-the hose in his hand and was sprinkling plants, shrubs and lawn.
-
- * * * * *
-
-When Ogden returned to the White Room, he found Hugh alone and rather
-impatient.
-
-“Where did you disappear to?” inquired the boy.
-
-“I eloped with that record-bearing peach.”
-
-“What did you do that for?”
-
-“Why, didn’t you see she was much disturbed in her mind?”
-
-“She didn’t have pep enough to stand up against the cockatoo.”
-
-“She had one object in life just then, and that was to get out of here.”
-
-“We’re kindred spirits, then, even if she doesn’t care for jazz. Say, I’m
-going down to dinner, Ogden,” added the boy eagerly. “I’m going to get
-out of these infernal swaddling clothes—”
-
-Ogden laughed. “There you are kindred spirits, too,” he said. “The peach
-has it in for that dressing-gown.”
-
-Hugh glanced down over it. “That’s queer. You’d think a girl would just
-revel in it.”
-
-“Probably she would if you hadn’t been wearing it.”
-
-Hugh looked inquiring.
-
-“Miss Frink ‘fussed’ her with all that Prince Charming stuff.”
-
-The boy shook his head. “What was Miss Frink up to, anyway?”
-
-“Why, Miss Duane used to be in Ross Graham’s—three days ago; and she sold
-your benefactress the royal robe, and told her it was fit for Prince
-Charming, not knowing whom it was for.”
-
-“And that ‘fussed’ her?” asked Hugh incredulously. “Aren’t girls the
-limit? What did she care who it was for, so she made the sale?”
-
-Ogden looked at his protégé quizzically. “Oh, she’s been to the movies.”
-
-Hugh stared and scowled deeper. “Now, don’t you get bats in the belfry,
-too,” he said.
-
-“Miss Duane has retired from business and is now reader-in-chief to Miss
-Frink.”
-
-“So Ally told me. She tried for the job herself and was turned down, she
-says.”
-
-“Really? You didn’t seem to realize that your friend was playing with
-that letter of Carol’s some time before I rescued it.”
-
-“Well, why shouldn’t she?”
-
-Ogden raised his eyebrows and smiled.
-
-“Oh, shoot!” ejaculated Hugh gloomily, suddenly understanding. “Say, I
-ought to be writing to Carol.”
-
-Ogden nodded. “I have just been sending her a full day-letter in your
-name, and you promised to write at once, and also asked her to write you
-in my care, as your plans are unsettled just now.”
-
-“I’ll say they are!” said Hugh emphatically. He was thoughtful for a
-space. “Carol all alone,” he said presently. “I tell you, Mr. Ogden, it
-makes me feel like taking a brace and amounting to something. I read
-law the last year before the war. I’d like to go on with it. If Carol’s
-partner in the business is unreliable, I’d like to be able to attend to
-him.”
-
-“I’ve been talking to an ex-lawyer to-day, one who has made his mark.
-Little Miss Duane’s grandfather. He is a veteran of the Cuban War.
-Colonel Duane. Perhaps he has his law library still.”
-
-“He could steer me, anyway,” replied Hugh, looking interested—“if I
-should stay on in the town,” he added, looking away. After another pause
-he went on: “It was good fun to see Ally again and made everything seem
-more familiar.”
-
-“How much do you know about Mrs. Reece-Lumbard?” asked Ogden.
-
-Hugh laughed reminiscently. “Nothing except those twinkly fingers of
-hers. She tried some highbrow stuff on us at first—uplift, artistic, that
-kind; but when she found we walked out on her she changed. Great Scott,
-she could whoop it up, and we sang till the roof nearly lifted. I may
-have heard her name in those days, but if I did I’d forgotten it.”
-
-“Well, she married Tom Reece,” said Ogden. “He was in the Medical Corps
-over there, and when they came home they had a baby with them, and Mrs.
-Reece, being a very gay lady, they had lots of trouble. She was shining
-in cabaret performances when I knew her, and last winter I learned that
-there was a divorce. To-day I asked her, when we were alone in the hall,
-about her baby girl, and she said she hadn’t brought her, fearing a child
-in the house might annoy her Aunt Susanna.”
-
-“Well, that was considerate, wasn’t it?” returned Hugh, in defense
-against Ogden’s manner. “A woman never gets any sympathy.”
-
-“The courts didn’t give Mrs. Reece any,” said Ogden dryly. “I knew that
-Dr. Reece was given the custody of the little girl. I just wanted to see
-what she would say about it.”
-
-Hugh’s brow clouded. “I’m sorry to hear of that mess,” he replied. “Is
-that why you think she is deceiving Miss Frink about herself? People that
-live in glass houses, you know.”
-
-Ogden smiled. “Yes, I’m not going into the stone business at present.”
-
-The dinner that night was what Adèle called a really human meal. Miss
-Frink sat at the head of the table and her secretary at the foot. He did
-the honors in a highly superior manner. Adèle sat at his right and the
-two men guests were placed, one each side the hostess.
-
-Miss Frink looked thoughtfully at Hugh, dressed in the new suit she had
-paid for. He was happy in his promotion from the invalid chair, and
-responded to Mr. Ogden’s amusing stories, while Adèle put aside dull care
-and told canteen reminiscences of her own, some of them sufficiently
-daring to draw upon her the gaze of the neighboring spectacles.
-
-After dinner they all adjourned to the drawing-room, and Miss Frink,
-for the first time in all the years, saw its dignified furnishings as
-background to a social gathering. Adèle played, and Hugh sauntered up
-and down the room, singing when the familiar melodies tempted him. Miss
-Frink’s eyes followed him with a strange, unconscious hunger.
-
-When at last Mrs. Lumbard sought her pillow, she was too excited for
-sleep, and the little spurt of jollity faded into the dull consideration
-of her situation. Why had handsome Hughie made that break about her hair!
-She reviewed all that had been said in his first recognition of her. She
-saw herself again, sitting and nervously twisting that letter. She felt
-something inimical in Ogden. He had known Dr. Reece. He wanted to get his
-letter away from her. There, in the darkness of her unquiet pillow, she
-saw the twisted envelope again. It was not his letter at all. She had
-flattened it out and seen that it was Hughie’s.
-
-Mr. Hugh Stanwood Sinclair. She saw the address again. Sinclair. Why?
-when Hughie’s name was Stanwood? Why was the address Sinclair? Her head
-lay quieter as she meditated. Mr. Ogden had been anxious to get that
-letter! He had made her feel rebuked for twisting it. She lay a long time
-awake.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-ALICE
-
-
-When Miss Frink went to her room that night, two red spots burned in her
-cheeks. She was a creature of habit and proud of it. Her maid had the
-bed turned down and prepared for the night as usual. A silk negligée
-hung over the back of a chair. The silver carafe of ice water with its
-cut-glass tumbler stood by the side of the bed. Her programme would be
-to slip off the black satin gown, don the negligée, go to the lighted
-bathroom and wind the waves of her front hair back on their crimping
-pins, and so proceed to the point of extinguishing the lights, getting
-into bed, and going at once to sleep.
-
-The mental picture behind those red spots was of the same envelope which
-was absorbing Adèle’s meditations. It had lain directly in the line of
-Miss Frink’s bi-focals when Mrs. Lumbard gave it its final flattening.
-Miss Frink crossed the room to where the enlarged portrait of her
-girlhood’s chum hung on the wall.
-
-“Come on, Alice, let’s talk it over as we used to,” she said, and with a
-quick movement unhooking the picture, she sat down in the nearest chair
-with it in her lap, and gazed into the eyes. “I want to look at a friend.
-I’m seventy-odd, Alice, and you’re still my only one: the only being who
-has ever loved me.” She paused in her soliloquy to swallow something.
-“I’m not going to make a tragedy of it. I could have adopted a child
-after Philip disappointed me. I could have had some one to love me, but
-I liked business better than domesticity, so I made my own bed and I’m
-not going to complain of it. You told me I was all wrong about Philip,
-wrong in not giving him his freedom, wrong to quarrel with him, wrong to
-cut myself off from him, I remember now everything you said, though I
-haven’t thought of it for years. The book was closed. Nothing could have
-surprised me more than to have it opened again. But, Alice”—Miss Frink’s
-hand pressed the sides of the picture frame until it hurt—“it is only
-my money. That is the humiliation. I couldn’t believe that I would feel
-it so.” The soliloquizing lips quivered. “Your Adèle—if she is yours,
-something in me cries out all the time that she is not—what interest
-would she have had in an Aunt Susanna who was old and poor? She fawns
-on me with meek, loving expressions as if I could be fooled. Forgive
-me, dear, but you wouldn’t like her, either. There’s Grim, of course;
-it’s a religion with him to look after me, but he hasn’t any natural,
-spontaneous interest in his fellow-beings. The calf of gold rules his
-consciousness. He’s narrow, narrow as I am myself. Oh, Alice, if I had
-you here! If I could only do it over again and do it better.” For the
-first time in years tears stood in Miss Frink’s eyes. She winked them
-away quietly, and fell into meditation. Presently, her thoughts seething
-through the past and present, her lips moved again:
-
-“John Ogden is a finished rascal; polished, suave, a real society man.
-Full of charm he is, and I wonder how he ran into the boy, and persuaded
-him. I’m hurt, Alice. Hugh’s old Aunt Sukey is hurt;—but it’s better to
-be hurt than dead, and he didn’t know who he was saving, I have that
-comfort. That was no part of John Ogden’s plan; and it makes the boy
-more mine than Ogden’s. He hasn’t been happy a minute since he came, and
-the why is plain. He hates the double-dealing, while Ogden thinks it is
-the best joke going. I hate lies, Alice”—with sudden heat. “You know I
-always did; and the humiliation—why does it cut me so that the boy, my
-own flesh and blood that I’m mightily near to loving, has cold-bloodedly
-entered into some plan that has only my money for its object? I’ve been
-a dupe; and, of course, any young person would chuckle over my sympathy
-for his delirious longing for Aunt Sukey. Alice!”—suddenly Miss Frink
-clutched the picture frame again—“that girl—that photograph—is his
-mother. He said Aunt Sukey opposed her tooth and nail, and I asked him if
-I could do anything. He said it was too late.”
-
-Miss Frink let the picture slide down into her lap while she followed
-this train of thought and looked into space. Presently she propped the
-frame up again between her hands.
-
-“Of course, Alice, that single night in which your much-married
-granddaughter’s hair turned white might have come before she went over
-to France. I’m about as mean to the girl in my thoughts as anybody could
-be, and she has made the boy look really happy for the first time in all
-these weeks. I ought to give her some credit for that. It was pleasant
-down in the drawing-room to-night through her means; but the iron had
-entered into my soul, and I felt inside the way Grim looked outside. Poor
-Grim, he is not a society man. He doesn’t want our habits changed. Now,
-I’m up against another fight, Alice, girl. It’s a long time since I’ve
-had to fight. It’s a temptation to say to them all—Ogden, the boy, and
-Adèle—‘I know you through and through. I’m not the dupe you think me.
-Get away all of you and never let me see you again.’ But, Alice, what’s
-the use of living seventy years unless you’ve learned to do nothing
-impulsively? I look right back to my treatment of Philip Sinclair and
-recall the things you said to me then. I shall let you help me, Alice. I
-will take the advice that I scorned thirty years ago. Good-night, Alice,
-girl.”
-
-Miss Frink didn’t sleep much that night, and the next morning, the
-weather having made a sudden start summerward, she felt a new chapter of
-her life beginning.
-
-Hugh came down to breakfast with John Ogden, and Adèle was ready with new
-ideas for her recital. Miss Frink allowed herself to be carried along on
-the tide of their talk until breakfast was over.
-
-“What a lovely morning. Your grounds are charming,” said Ogden.
-
-“Everything is blooming,” returned the hostess. “Let us make a little
-tour of inspection.”
-
-She led the way through the small conservatory attached to the
-dining-room, and out upon the lawn.
-
-“How beautifully this place is kept,” said Ogden.
-
-“Yes. I have so few amusements,” assented his companion.
-
-“Thoroughness is your watchword, I’m sure.”
-
-“I believe it is,” she agreed. “Whether I was doing right or wrong, I
-always seem to have made a clean sweep of it.”
-
-Ogden regarded her in genuine admiration. “All your thoughts must be of
-satisfaction, I should think.”
-
-Miss Frink tossed her head with a dissenting gesture. “You’d think wrong
-then, man. Let us sit down here awhile.”
-
-She led the way to a rustic seat under an elm tree. “Shan’t I go in and
-get a wrap for you?” asked Ogden. The prospect of a tête-à-tête with his
-hostess was not without its qualms.
-
-“No, no. This sun is hot.”
-
-“So is this one,” thought Ogden, but he smiled with his usual air of
-finding the present situation inspiring.
-
-“I’d like to know how you came to take such an interest in Hugh,” began
-his companion without prelude.
-
-“Through liking his father, and loving his sister,” replied Ogden glibly.
-
-“Eh? His sister?”
-
-“Yes, his sister Carol. She couldn’t see me,” continued Ogden cheerfully.
-“She married a man named Morrison and went to Colorado. Hugh received
-word yesterday that her husband has died. She is left with two little
-children” (Miss Frink began to stiffen mechanically, and Ogden saw it),
-“but she is a young woman after your own heart. Her husband’s illness was
-a long one, and she learned his business in order to carry it on, and she
-won’t allow Hugh to come out there or worry himself about her.”
-
-Miss Frink gazed at him with unconscious fixedness. “Yes. His mother’s
-name was Carol,” was the thought behind her stiff lips.
-
-“Hugh couldn’t seem to find himself when he came back from France, and
-was rather down in the mouth when I got hold of him, so I thought. He is
-so young, it would be better for him to learn a business from the bottom
-up, and I thought of Ross Graham’s.”
-
-“Oh, you thought of Ross Graham’s.” Miss Frink nodded slowly and
-continued to meet her companion’s debonair look. “I wonder why you
-thought of Ross Graham’s.”
-
-“I told you in my letter of introduction,” responded Ogden, without
-hesitation. “It is just one of the compact pieces of perfection that you
-have been bringing about all your life.”
-
-Miss Frink nodded acceptance of the compliment and of his self-possession.
-
-“I should say his nerve was one piece of perfection,” she reflected; and
-then her habit of honest thought questioned how she would have received
-the frank proposition. If John Ogden had come to her with the information
-that she had a robust, handsome, grand-nephew, Philip Sinclair’s son, who
-needed a boost toward finding his right place in the world, would she
-have listened to him? Would she have received the boy? She would not, and
-she knew it.
-
-Ogden was speaking on: “How little I dreamed that I was doing as much for
-you as for Hugh when I saw him off on that train.”
-
-“Oh, perhaps some other bystander would have saved the old lady,” she
-replied, with sudden rebellion against Ogden’s making a virtue of his
-duplicity.
-
-“Really?” he returned suavely. “I have understood that Hugh had the
-street all to himself just at that time.”
-
-“Well, I think he did,” said Miss Frink brusquely, looking away.
-
-Ogden’s gray eyes were rather large and prominent, and just now their
-gaze irritated her.
-
-“You know it is very interesting to me,” he went on, “that the mere fact
-of my choosing Ross Graham’s for Hugh rather than some other concern,
-should have saved your valuable life. I believe in Providence, Miss
-Frink. Don’t you?”
-
-“I believe that Heaven helps those who help themselves,” she retorted;
-“and that’s you, I’m sure, Mr. Ogden.”
-
-“But we’re not talking about me,” he responded with a gay air of surprise.
-
-“Well, we’re going to,” responded Miss Frink. “I want you to tell me
-everything you know about Mrs. Lumbard.”
-
-“Why—” he returned, clearing his throat to gain time, “it’s on the
-surface. She is a very pretty woman who is a fine musician. You can tell
-by Hugh’s attitude what she meant to the boys over there, and she has a
-reputation all through the South.”
-
-“Did you know her before her marriage when she was Miss Morehouse?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“What was her father like?”
-
-“Why—” Ogden hesitated. “I understood they were your relatives.”
-
-“No. They’re not. Is her father living?”
-
-“I—I really don’t know; but Mr. Morehouse died only last year.”
-
-“Well, he was her father, wasn’t he?”
-
-“No; he married her mother when the daughter was a child prodigy at the
-piano.”
-
-Such a strange change passed over Miss Frink that Ogden was startled. She
-gazed at him out of a face as stiff as parchment.
-
-“Mr. Ogden, I am uncanny. My feelings are uncanny,” she said at last.
-“You might as well be sitting under an X-ray as by me. I know the whole
-truth about you. I know all your double-dealings—”
-
-“Oh, Miss Frink, why should you give me heart failure? I don’t know why
-you should be so excited. I hope I haven’t told any tales.” Ogden flushed
-to the ears.
-
-“Yes, a great big one, but, oh, the relief it is to me. She has nothing
-to do with my Alice. Be careful not to let her know that you’ve told me
-this. Once I had a friend, Mr. Ogden, a real friend. She never tried to
-get the better of me. She never deceived me. She loved me as herself.”
-
-John Ogden thought he had never looked into such bright eyes, and
-their strenuous gaze seeming, as she had claimed, to see absolutely
-through him, sent a prickling sensation down his spine. She seemed to
-be contrasting him with that single-minded friend, frightfully to his
-disadvantage.
-
-“She has died,” went on the low voice, “and I never found another. Now
-Mrs. Lumbard has claimed me through her; claimed to be her granddaughter.
-I never could believe it, and it seems I was right.”
-
-Ogden frowned and shook his head. “If you’re glad, I suppose I shouldn’t
-regret my break; but I wouldn’t for anything have thrown a monkey-wrench
-into Mrs. Re—Lumbard’s machinery if I had known.”—“Supposing Miss Frink
-knew all!” was his reflection.
-
-His companion nodded slowly. “Let me have the truth once in a while, once
-in a while. Don’t grudge it to me. You’ve only clinched my feeling that
-she is a liar.”
-
-Ogden looked up toward the porch where Adèle and Hugh were laughing.
-
-“There is one thing I wanted to speak of to you. You take such a kindly
-interest in Hugh—”
-
-“That is barely decent,” responded Miss Frink with sudden sharpness.
-“What is it you want? When a poor young man saves the life of a rich old
-woman, it is to be expected that she gives him a good plump check as
-reward, isn’t it?”
-
-Ogden regarded her in surprise. “What the love of money does to people!”
-was his reflection. “I shan’t tell Hugh you said that,” he replied
-quietly. “He has had enough to bear. You know whether his attitude toward
-you is mercenary.”
-
-Miss Frink’s old cheeks flushed in their turn. “Well, I know it isn’t,”
-she said bluntly; “but you are his manager, aren’t you?”
-
-“My dear lady! Please don’t spoil this beautiful morning.”
-
-“I’m excited, Ogden. I know it,” she said nervously. She was glad he had
-trapped her, but how had he dared to do it, and how could she forgive him!
-
-“This is what I was going to say,” he went on. “The last year before Hugh
-went to France he read law. Since hearing that his sister is alone, he
-feels that he would like to go on with it. He might be able to help her
-some day. Yesterday I met Colonel Duane. He is a lawyer and still has a
-good library. What would you think of Hugh’s working at that, evenings?”
-
-“Why evenings?”
-
-“Because I judge you intend to give him a job in the store that will at
-least partly pay his board.”
-
-Miss Frink looked off at the fountain where two marble babies were having
-an unending water duel, and apparently from their expressions having
-great fun over it.
-
-“That is a very good idea,” she said, “to read law with Colonel Duane.”
-
-Ogden accepted her ignoring of the “job.” There was a change in her since
-yesterday. She seemed to be smothering and controlling some spite against
-himself. If she suspected anything, he must prepare Hugh. The sudden
-meeting with Ally and the plan to help her with the recital had changed
-the boy’s gloomy, rebellious mood; and certainly nothing had occurred
-since last evening, when Miss Frink had been a sufficiently complacent
-though passive hostess.
-
-“I will attend to the matter,” she said after a pause, and rose. “I must
-go in. Grim will wonder if I am forgetting the mail.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-APPLE BLOSSOMS
-
-
-Adèle was in a porch swing, her pretty slippers and ankles very much
-in evidence when Miss Frink and Ogden came up on the veranda. She was
-singing “Madelon,” and Hugh was trying to stop her, amid much laughter
-and threatening.
-
-The lady of the old school crossed to her and pulled down the skirt
-of the young woman’s pink dimity morning dress. It would have kept
-Miss Frink busy if she had performed that office for all the girls in
-Farrandale who needed it that morning, and all the mornings; although
-Farrandale was no more lax than any other town.
-
-Adèle rose quickly from the swinging seat, and Miss Frink turned to Hugh.
-“Well, what’s this I hear about our young lawyer?”
-
-“Oh, has Mr. Ogden told you of my wish to read with Colonel Duane? I’m
-keen for it, Miss Frink.”
-
-That lady looked up into his eager face with a lingering regard. What
-would he say if she told him here and now that she knew him to be hers;
-her own flesh and blood; she who but a few weeks ago had believed herself
-alone in the world? This splendid specimen of young manhood was hers,
-hers to assist or to renounce. Her habitual shrewdness and forethought
-warned her that she did not know him: that he must show the stuff he
-was made of before she could discover whether she cared to own him.
-He was deceiving her, at the present moment. He was only watching for
-opportunities to use her. No wonder his conscience had revolted at the
-succession of favors pressed upon him by the woman he was hoodwinking.
-Miss Frink’s X-ray mentality told her that here was an honest thought
-manipulated by the man of the world with whom she had just been
-tête-à-tête. Nevertheless, Hugh was at fault. He should have spurned such
-a plan—“And let you lie under the simple granite monument provided for in
-your will?” added some small inner voice.
-
-Probably that suggestion was what made her smile at him now, so
-reflectively.
-
-“That is, if Colonel Duane is willing to be bothered with me,” went on
-the boy, still eagerly. “I can’t trust you, Miss Frink. I won’t have the
-old gentleman bound hand and foot and thrown down at my feet.”
-
-This egregious remark touched Miss Frink’s sense of humor. She laughed
-spontaneously. The implication of her power pleased her no less than that
-of her devotion to this dastardly, double-faced youth.
-
-“You just mind your own business, Hugh,” she returned. “You shall see the
-Colonel to-day.”
-
-“I should love to walk over there with him,” said Adèle.
-
-“I believe you,” replied Miss Frink, “but do you know Colonel Duane?”
-
-“Why, no, but—”
-
-“I think another arrangement would be better,” said Miss Frink, and,
-turning, went into the house.
-
-Adèle pretended to shiver. “Oh, she does sit on me so hard!” she cried,
-then she dropped back into the porch seat and continued her gay badinage
-with Hugh, the undercurrent of her thought triumphing over her difficult
-hostess, inasmuch as she knew her to be a dupe and could reveal it, at
-any time.
-
-John Ogden watched the young woman uneasily. It was evident that she was
-doing her best to attract Hugh.
-
-“Say, boy, I’d look out for Ally if I were you,” said Ogden when again
-they were alone.
-
-“Oh, she’s lots of fun.”
-
-“Yes, she means to be; but she’s in wrong with Miss Frink. It seems she
-is here, entirely under false pretenses.”
-
-Hugh turned and stared down at his mentor.
-
-“Indeed!” he replied. “How shocking!”
-
-“Miss Frink has found it out,” said Ogden, flushing, “and through me.
-That’s the worst of it.”
-
-“A little stone-throwing in your glass house, eh?”
-
-“Totally unintentional.” And Ogden repeated what had taken place.
-
-Hugh stared into space. He hated to have people get in wrong. It
-disturbed him all the time that Ally should have been such a fool as to
-deserve to get in wrong with the courts.
-
-“Of course Miss Frink doesn’t dream of the court disgrace,” added Ogden.
-
-“Women always get the worst of it,” said Hugh moodily.
-
-“Well, I’ve no doubt she will at least keep her word about the recital,”
-remarked Ogden.
-
-“We must take it for granted,” said Hugh energetically. “We must help the
-poor girl, and have some pep about it.”
-
-Ogden laughed. “You can be trusted for pep,” he returned. “That was a
-good line about Colonel Duane. I should have expected Miss Frink to have
-Grimshaw escort your conceited self to the gate.”
-
-At that moment the Colonel was watching a pair of birds feeding their
-young. Millicent came to the door and called him in to the ’phone.
-
-“It is Miss Frink,” she said with bated breath. “I do hope it is nothing
-about me.”
-
-The old gentleman patted her hand as he took the receiver, and the girl
-stood with parted lips, listening.
-
-“Good-morning, Miss Frink.”
-
-“Why, yes, if an old fogy like myself can be of any use to him,
-certainly.”
-
-“Oh, yes, plenty of time. I’m a very small farmer, you know.”
-
-“Yes, I have the foundational books.”
-
-“No doubt you would, Miss Frink.”
-
-“To-day? Yes, I shall be very glad to see him.”
-
-“Very well, I shall be here.”
-
-Colonel Duane hung up the receiver and smiled at the girl with the rapt
-eyes.
-
-“No, you’re not discharged, my dear. She has another errand for you to
-do.”
-
-“What is it, Grandpa?”
-
-“Don’t lose those eyes out, my dear. You’re sure to need them again some
-time. The young man there, Mr. Stanwood, wants to come over here to see
-my law books.”
-
-“Are you sure it isn’t Mr. Ogden?” asked Millicent earnestly. “He was so
-interested in everything yesterday.”
-
-“No, it is Mr. Stanwood. It seems he started to read law, and then they
-needed him in France.”
-
-“Oh, I told Mr. Ogden that you were a celebrated lawyer.”
-
-“You little girl! Blowing the old man’s horn.” He put his arm around her.
-
-“What is the errand, Grandpa?”
-
-“To bring Mr. Stanwood over here.”
-
-“Oh!”
-
-“When you get through the reading, he will be waiting for you on the
-veranda.”
-
-“I don’t see why Mr. Ogden doesn’t bring him.”
-
-“Why should he, when you are coming right home, anyway? Possibly Mr.
-Ogden doesn’t care to call on us every day.”
-
-What could be simpler than picking Mr. Stanwood up on the veranda, and
-showing him the way to her grandfather? Millicent was vexed with herself
-for feeling as if she were setting out on an adventure when she went
-to her reading that day. She could see Hugh as he sat on the arm of
-his easy-chair, bejeweled with crimson petals, swinging his gay foot,
-and snapping his fingers in time to the jazz. At least he would not
-have on that cursed dressing-gown to-day, and she would show him by her
-businesslike manner that she was simply doing an errand for Miss Frink in
-being his escort.
-
-When that lady lost consciousness to-day, and began gently to blow the
-silk handkerchief thrown over her face, Millicent despised the sensation
-of her heart beginning to beat a little faster as she tripped down
-the wide staircase to the ponderous front door. As she came out upon
-the veranda, she saw him. He was sitting in the porch swing with Mrs.
-Lumbard, and Mrs. Lumbard looked unusually pretty in a pink dimity gown,
-and was exhibiting lengths of crossed silk stockings as she impelled the
-swing with the tip of one slipper.
-
-Hugh at once jumped up, and Adèle nodded. “You made a short job of it
-to-day,” she remarked, and Millicent hated her.
-
-“Perhaps you are not quite ready, Mr. Stanwood,” she said, with what was
-Farrandale’s most formal and forbidding manner.
-
-“Indeed, I am,” he replied, picking up his hat.
-
-“Don’t you think you’d better take an overcoat, Hughie?” asked Adèle
-affectionately.
-
-“No, indeed, it’s warm. Well, good-bye, Ally, I won’t ask you to be
-good—just to be as good as you can.”
-
-She laughed and threw him a kiss. Millicent stood, stiff as a ramrod,
-hating them both.
-
-Hugh smiled at her disarmingly as they went down the steps together. “You
-know I am as pleased as a boy with a pair of red boots to think Colonel
-Duane will take me,” he said.
-
-“He seemed very willing,” returned the girl, without looking at him.
-
-Had Damaris been the escort of the most talked-about young man in
-Farrandale, she would have paraded him: taken him by the most populous
-ways. Millicent had mapped out a semi-rural route, longer to be sure, but
-one in which few people would see them and say that Millicent Duane was
-out walking with Miss Frink’s young man.
-
-“Mrs. Lumbard worked among us doughboys in France,” said Hugh, sensing an
-iciness in the atmosphere.
-
-“I heard her say so yesterday,” returned Millicent, eyes ahead.
-
-“She plays like a house afire,” said Hugh, “and she has to earn her
-living. Do you believe she could make a go of it teaching piano here?”
-
-“I don’t know why not?” returned the girl civilly.
-
-“Anyway, Miss Frink is going to let her give a recital in her house and
-let the people hear her. Will you help boom it?”
-
-“I’m afraid I’m a person of no influence, Mr. Stanwood.”
-
-Hugh regarded the persistent profile, a very grave profile with a
-slightly tilted nose.
-
-“Mr. Ogden says you had a grouch yesterday,” he said good-humoredly. “Is
-this a hang-over?”
-
-At this she turned and gave him a look which came out somewhere beyond
-him. “I don’t know what you mean.”
-
-“Why, you don’t seem to realize that this is a great day. Spring is here,
-and the birds are busy—this is a mighty pretty street, by the way, like
-the country, and I’m out of that infernal room walking on my own legs.
-I feel we should be taking hold of hands and skipping—Merry, Merry May,
-fol-de-rol, tiddle-de-winks, and all that, you know.”
-
-She met his laughing eyes and relaxed slightly. “It is a celebration for
-you, isn’t it?” she said.
-
-“Yes. Ogden said Miss Frink teased you yesterday.”
-
-“Oh, how silly to speak of it!” exclaimed Millicent, reverting to the
-profile and coloring beautifully. He thought she looked very pretty, and
-he laughed gayly at her sudden temper.
-
-“Well, I just want you to remember that I wasn’t the guilty party. An
-innocent bystander shouldn’t be crushed, yet how often they are!”
-
-In the rural road, Hugh was effervescing with the joy of living, and his
-prim escort was gradually unbending. When an apple tree in full bloom
-came in view, it helped wonderfully.
-
-“Grandpa has a little orchard. It looks marvelous. You will see—we’re
-almost there.”
-
-“Wait a minute, Miss Duane”—Hugh put out a hand gropingly—“just a minute.
-I feel queer—”
-
-Millicent looked around at him. He was very pale.
-
-“Can you beat it?” he demanded feebly. “That apple tree—it’s whirling. I
-think I’m—going to—”
-
-“Oh, don’t, Mr. Stanwood.” His groping hand grasped her arm, and she held
-him with the other while he sank on the bank under the apple blossoms,
-his weight pulling her down beside him.
-
-“Oh, shoot!” he gasped.
-
-“Please don’t faint,” she said. “We’re so nearly there. Just lie still;
-I’ll go get Grandpa to help.”
-
-She fled away, and he closed his eyes and called himself names.
-
-Back they came, Millicent white and flushed by turns, and the old
-gentleman coming along with his hale and hearty tread.
-
-“Not such a bad couch,” he said cheerily, bending over Hugh while
-Millicent stood with clasped hands, suffering all the throes of guilt.
-The regular road would have been little more than half as long, and she
-could hear Mrs. Lumbard’s comments on choosing the romantic path.
-
-“Lie there a bit while Milly brings you some hot milk, then you’ll get to
-the house easily enough between us two sturdy ones. Tried to do a little
-too much, I guess.”
-
-Millicent went back with winged feet and soon returned with the hot
-milk. He drank the milk, supported by Colonel Duane’s arm, and soon his
-dizziness ceased. Leaning on the two friends he walked slowly, and soon
-entered the back gate of their cottage. The little orchard made the place
-look in festive array.
-
-“All dressed up for you, you see,” said the Colonel.
-
-“Heavenly!” said Hugh.
-
-Millicent was valiantly supporting one of his arms, and his other was
-around the Colonel’s neck.
-
-“I’ll say it’s pretty here,” said Hugh. “Sorry I was a fool.”
-
-“Going to put you in the hammock,” said Colonel Duane, “and let you look
-the apple blossoms out of countenance awhile.”
-
-This he did, arranging the pillows deftly under Hugh’s head. He went into
-the house for another, and Millicent stood there looking down at the
-patient.
-
-Hugh smiled up at her; and there was that dreadful smile again, that
-Prince Charming smile that made so much defense necessary, and she hadn’t
-any more. Remorse had drowned it.
-
-“He’s all right now, childie,” said her grandfather comfortingly. “I’ll
-bet you’re blaming yourself for taking that road. How did you happen to?”
-
-“It’s lots—lots prettier,” said Millicent with a gulp. She sank into a
-receptive rocking-chair.
-
-“And the joke is,” said the Colonel, “that Miss Frink didn’t think he was
-up to the short road, even. She was expecting you to drive, and somehow
-or other Grimshaw was tardy with the team and you had gone. So he hopped
-in and came the whole way, beating up the sidewalks for you.” Colonel
-Duane laughed. “I told him to go over to Damaris and see if you were
-there.”
-
-“Oh, Grandpa!” groaned the girl.
-
-“So he went, and he said if he didn’t find you he would go back and tell
-Miss Frink that you preferred to walk.” The old gentleman laughed again.
-“Grimshaw believes in self-preservation. That is what we are all to say.
-You preferred to walk.” He rose. “I promised to call up as soon as you
-arrived. I’ll tell them you enjoyed the trip. Eh?”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-MISS FRINK MAKES A CALL
-
-
-At the tears on Millicent’s face now, Hugh laughed aloud. She was looking
-aghast.
-
-“To-morrow everybody will know it!” she ejaculated.
-
-“Know what?”
-
-“That Mr. Grimshaw couldn’t find us.” And crystal drops began again to
-race down her cheeks.
-
-“You cry-baby!” said Hugh, regarding her curiously. “Here, I have more of
-a handkerchief than that. Come here and I’ll bail while you pour.”
-
-“Oh, am I crying?” she returned, distractedly mopping her cheeks. “I must
-speak to Damaris as soon as Grandpa gets through. You don’t know what it
-is to live in a little town.”
-
-“Oh, is that it?” returned Hugh, regarding her flushed, troubled face,
-and thinking it was as sweet as a dew-washed flower. “They’ll say we
-eloped, eh? I’ll tell the world I thank ’em for the compliment.”
-
-Colonel Duane here reappeared and Millicent dashed by him into the house.
-He seemed to be serenely unaware of his grandchild’s excitement, and,
-telling Hugh not to talk, but to rest, he seated himself a little way
-off, and Hugh had the full benefit of the one-sided conversation within.
-
-It was a particularly cheerful and care-free voice speaking, with little
-gulps in the throat that caught it at unexpected moments.
-
-“Oh, yes, Damaris, it’s Millicent. I was sorry Mr. Grimshaw had to
-trouble you.”
-
-“Oh, yes, I’m home. It was such a beautiful day, you know, we walked
-over.”
-
-“Yes, Mr. Stanwood had business with Grandpa, and—and he didn’t
-understand that Mr. Grimshaw—What? Yes, didn’t know that he was expected
-to wait for the carriage. What? Yes, it was queer Mr. Grimshaw didn’t see
-us. We were just—walking along, you know, just walking along. What? Yes,
-he’s here. He and Grandpa are together. Did you say Mr. Grimshaw looked
-scared? Why, what for? Yes, of course, Mr. Stanwood isn’t entirely strong
-yet. Oh, that’s all right. I just wanted you to know that nobody is lost,
-strayed, or stolen.” Suddenly, with great dignity, the voice changed.
-“No, no, indeed. Good-bye.”
-
-When Millicent went back to the piazza after washing her face and
-applying powder where it would be most effective, she found her
-grandfather seated by his recumbent guest and asking him about his
-previous studies.
-
-“You might bring Mr. Stanwood a cup of bouillon, Milly,” said the
-Colonel, and the girl went back into the house.
-
-When she reappeared, her own fresh, fair, and demure self, bearing her
-offering, Hugh looked at her approvingly.
-
-“My life is just one tray after another,” he said.
-
-The patient had just taken his last swallow when a sound of wheels was
-heard. Miss Frink’s victoria stopped before the gate, and that lady
-herself dismounted and came up the path. Colonel Duane hastened to meet
-her. Millicent stood up, holding the tray undecidedly, with an expression
-of face which seemed to be bracing for a _coup de grace_, and Hugh flung
-a long leg out of the hammock.
-
-“Lie still, Hugh,” ordered the visitor, waving her parasol
-authoritatively.
-
-Hugh withdrew the leg. Miss Frink had never walked up on that piazza
-before, although it was her own property. She looked around approvingly.
-
-“You’ve made this place lovely, Colonel Duane.”
-
-“Well, we think it is a good deal of a paradise this time of year.”
-
-“So you overdid yourself,” said Miss Frink, seating herself in the
-offered chair by the hammock.
-
-Colonel Duane lifted Millicent’s tray and carried it into the house, and
-the girl took a chair near the visitor.
-
-“What makes you think so?” inquired Hugh blandly.
-
-“You didn’t come by the road. There was only one other way you could
-come.”
-
-No one in the world ever looked guiltier than Millicent at this moment.
-Her awe of Miss Frink kept her eyes dry and very large, but she saw her
-job disappearing, and herself stingingly rebuked.
-
-Miss Frink’s gaze turned upon her.
-
-“What was your idea?” she asked bluntly, but she was conscious of the
-picture made by the blue-gowned girl against the background of apple
-blossoms.
-
-Millicent’s lips opened and closed several times without a sound emerging.
-
-Miss Frink laughed, and exchanged a look with Hugh.
-
-“You took him down Lover’s Lane. That’s what you did,” said Miss Frink,
-regarding the girl accusingly. “Of course, it’s ever so much more
-romantic than the highroad; but we’ve got to build Prince Charming up
-before you can cut up any such didos as that.”
-
-“Oh, Miss Frink!” It was a gasp, not only of extreme embarrassment, but
-also of relief that the matter might be treated jocosely.
-
-“You’re barking up the wrong tree,” said Hugh, grinning. “I’ve found out
-what she did it for. She was hiding me.” Miss Frink grimaced her glasses
-off. “Yes, madam, she lives in a small town and she was hiding me.”
-
-“And set every dog and goose to barking and cackling,” declared Miss
-Frink.
-
-“But I revenged myself on her. I waited till we came to a mossy couch
-under an apple tree, and then I keeled over.—Look out”—a warning hand
-toward Millicent—“don’t you cry now. She was the best little sport you
-ever heard of. I nearly crushed her poor little wing while she and
-Colonel Duane were getting me up here, and they have filled me with the
-milk of human kindness and beef tea ever since.”
-
-“It was all Grimshaw’s stupidity,” said Miss Frink. “I put it in his
-hands and he didn’t order the carriage in time.” Her lips twitched
-amusedly. “He tried to shift the responsibility, and make out that you
-preferred to walk; but I X-rayed him. He hadn’t a chance. Did I ever tell
-you, Hugh, to beware of my X-ray mind?” She regarded him quizzically,
-admiring his beauty as she always did. “Double-dealing hasn’t a chance
-with me. I always see directly through it.”
-
-Hugh rearranged his pillows. “Quite a business asset, I should judge,”
-he returned, and for a minute his complexion matched the hectic hue of
-Millicent. Why should Miss Frink be boring into him, as it were, with her
-dark, bright eyes?
-
-“So when Grim got through the account of his pilgrimage, I knew you must
-have come by Lover’s Lane.” The speaker suddenly turned again upon the
-young girl with a smiling frown.
-
-“Oh, Miss Frink, I can’t tell you how sorry I am!” Millicent’s hands were
-clasped.
-
-“Now, be careful,” broke in Hugh. “Remember the size of your
-handkerchief.”
-
-“I’ll try not to cry,” she responded, her voice teetering, as it were,
-like a person trying to keep his balance on a tight rope. “I’m so
-thankful if you’re not vexed with me. I do think now it was awfully
-stupid; but you know what Farrandale is.”
-
-“Bless me!” said Miss Frink. “Then the child really was trying to hide
-you!”
-
-“Yes,” said Millicent frankly; “and then Mr. Grimshaw went right over to
-the Coopers’, hunting!”
-
-Miss Frink gave her rare laugh. Millicent was so pretty against the apple
-blossoms, and so genuinely disturbed, and Hugh so handsome and amused,
-she thoroughly enjoyed the situation.
-
-“Didn’t I say you set all the geese to cackling? I will call a town
-meeting and announce that there is nothing in it. How will that do?”
-
-Millicent struggled not to feel embarrassed. “With your X-ray mind you’ll
-know there isn’t,” she returned, with more spirit than Hugh had given her
-credit for.
-
-Colonel Duane reappeared with another tray. It bore tea and little cakes
-this time. Miss Frink liked the way his granddaughter sprang to his
-assistance and arranged everything on the porch table. Colonel Duane was
-a gentleman of the old school and his breeding showed in Millicent. She
-liked their simplicity and fineness. The girl’s job was never safer.
-
-When tea was served, Millicent opened a subject near her heart.
-
-“Miss Frink,” she said, “will you let me beg a favor of you?”
-
-“Certainly. Speak right up.”
-
-“It is about Damaris. I have experimented, and I can fix her hair so you
-would never know it was bobbed.”
-
-The caller eyed her sharply. “Are you tired of reading to me?”
-
-“No, indeed!” The ejaculation was earnest. “But couldn’t she have my
-place in the gloves, if—if I show you the way I can fix her hair? And she
-is so attractive, and bright, and pretty, and people would love to have
-her fit them, and she knows so many people—” The girl stopped, it was so
-extraordinary to be talking courageously to Miss Frink.
-
-That lady turned toward Colonel Duane. “Your granddaughter would make a
-good press-agent, wouldn’t she?”
-
-“Yes, Milly would,” he returned, composedly sipping his tea.
-
-“Then if people didn’t believe her she would cry,” remarked Hugh.
-
-“What’s all this about your crying, Millicent?” asked Miss Frink.
-
-“When I’ve done wrong, like making Mr. Stanwood too tired and—and having
-everybody talk about it, I cry; that’s natural, isn’t it? But never mind
-his teasing. I wish I could get the place for Damaris.”
-
-“This generation is so full of silly girls,” said Miss Frink. “Hugh, have
-you your mother’s picture in your pocket?”
-
-He blinked, and colored again. Throwing his long legs out of the hammock,
-he sat up against the netting. “I didn’t tell you it was Mother,” he
-blurted out.
-
-“No,” said Miss Frink quietly. “There are a number of things you didn’t
-tell me.”
-
-Hugh felt in his pocket and produced the case.
-
-“You don’t have to tell her things,” said Millicent—“with an X-ray mind,
-you know.”
-
-Silently Miss Frink accepted the offered morocco case, and opened it
-under Millicent’s eyes.
-
-“Isn’t she lovely!” exclaimed the girl.
-
-“Yes. Look at that hair and compare Damaris’s with it. Does your sister
-resemble your mother?” Miss Frink suddenly addressed Hugh.
-
-His tea-cup jingled in his hand.
-
-“I didn’t—I—yes, she does. You _have_ been X-raying, Miss Frink. I didn’t
-tell you about my sister.”
-
-“No, but Mr. Ogden did. She must be a very fine woman.”
-
-Hugh regarded the speaker with parted lips. Was she about to release the
-sword of Damocles before these witnesses; or was this all she knew?
-
-“But it will be growing all the time, you see,” said Millicent; and Miss
-Frink passed the photograph to the Colonel. “I wish you’d let me show
-you, Miss Frink.”
-
-That lady’s lips twitched and the bright eyes were very kind as she
-looked at this girl who didn’t sprawl, or loll in her chair, and who was
-fresh as Aurora.
-
-“Very well, I suppose I must listen to such a special pleader. I offered
-the position to Mrs. Lumbard, but she seemed to think that teaching music
-would be more in her line.”
-
-“I can’t see her there,” said Millicent, shaking her blonde head
-seriously, “nearly so well as I can Damaris.”
-
-“To tell the truth, neither can I,” returned Miss Frink.
-
-“Then—then may I tell her there is hope?” asked Millicent eagerly.
-
-“Yes. You might use it as a bribe to get her not to tell everybody of Mr.
-Grimshaw’s coming around with a search-warrant. Eh?” The speaker returned
-the photograph case to its owner. “It’s time I took this boy home. Have
-we some big books to carry, Colonel Duane?”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-ADÈLE
-
-
-As they entered the carriage, and on the way home, Hugh waited for some
-further personal remarks from his companion, but none came regarding
-themselves. Miss Frink declared herself in favor of pushing through the
-plans for Mrs. Lumbard’s recital.
-
-“I should like to get it over with for many reasons. One is that I feel
-like a bull in a china shop when it comes to entertaining. I know no more
-about it, nor half so much as my cook. I rely on you to be host, Hugh.”
-
-“I’ll do the best a clumsy doughboy can; but there is Mr. Ogden. He knows
-the ropes about everything.”
-
-“Yes, he does. I admit that.” Miss Frink nodded in a way which again made
-Hugh feel that the day of reckoning was upon him. “He’s a smooth rascal!”
-
-Hugh felt profoundly uncomfortable. He yearned to loose that Damocles
-weapon himself. He couldn’t break his promise to Ogden, but he could
-relieve himself in an honest remark, something that would lend some
-respectability to the situation.
-
-“Are you going to let me have that job in the store that I came for, Miss
-Frink?” he asked.
-
-She smiled vaguely at the roadside. “Of course. Let us see. You want
-to begin at the sub-basement, and learn how department stores are
-constructed.”
-
-Hugh blushed furiously. “Don’t make fun of me, please. I was packing
-boxes in a basement when Mr. Ogden looked me up, for my family’s sake.”
-
-“Yes. He says he used to be in love with your sister,” returned Miss
-Frink composedly; “but he says so many things besides his prayers.”
-
-“I guess there’s no doubt about that,” returned the boy, miserably
-embarrassed. “It took some pretty strong impulse to make anybody take any
-interest in such a shuffling proposition as I was.—It seems a year ago,
-that day he found me. My hand against every man, and every man’s hand
-against me.”
-
-“And he dressed you up in nice clean clothes, and laid out your
-programme, and sent you on your way.”
-
-“Why—he did—but did he tell you so this morning when you were hobnobbing
-so long?”
-
-Had Ogden laid down the cards without telling him?
-
-“No,” replied Miss Frink equably. “I just X-rayed him a little. He was
-taking all the credit of your saving my life. I believe he allowed
-Providence a small part.”
-
-“Oh, do let us forget that, Miss Frink!” ejaculated the boy. “I’m a chap
-that’s come to you for a job, and you are kind enough to give it to me. I
-do want to learn the business.”
-
-“And perhaps you will,” was the quiet reply; “but we’ll wait a bit yet
-till you can walk a mile or so and stand up under it. I do like those
-Duanes. That little Millicent—I can’t help calling her little, though
-she’s as tall as I am. What a refreshment it is in these days to find a
-girl a lady.”
-
-“I’m sorry you don’t like Ally,” said Hugh.
-
-“I don’t like liars,” returned Miss Frink calmly.
-
-The boy’s ears grew crimson.
-
-“I suppose I ought to have been a man,” she added. “I seem to be out
-of sympathy with most things feminine. Mr. Ogden gave me information
-concerning Mrs. Lumbard this morning which lifted a big irritation. It
-makes whatever I do for her now a favor instead of a duty. Once, Hugh,
-I had an honest friend—just one. There never has been another. We loved
-each other. Mrs. Lumbard came here representing herself as this woman’s
-granddaughter, and she called me Aunt Susanna on the strength of it. Mr.
-Ogden unconsciously spoiled her game this morning. I never had trusted
-her, and had rebuked myself for it; but I’m usually right—that X-ray, you
-know.”
-
-Hugh, rolling along beside her in the charming little carriage, wondered
-wretchedly if she trusted him, or if the X-ray was working.
-
-“I’m sorry for Ally,” he said gravely.
-
-“So am I,” responded Miss Frink promptly. “I hope she will develop some
-day into a worthy woman. I regret that it has to be in Farrandale, but we
-can’t have all things to please us.”
-
-“Some day,” thought Hugh, “she will want me to be a worthy man, anywhere
-but in Farrandale.”
-
-He was in his room dressing for dinner when Ogden came in.
-
-“Well, admitted to the bar yet?” demanded the latter gayly.
-
-“Look here, Ogden”—Hugh advanced and seized his friend. “When you were
-spilling Ally’s beans this morning, did you spill mine, too, and never
-told me?”
-
-“Not so, dear one. Will you kindly not pull the button off my coat?”
-
-“She acts as if she knew. We were all on the Duanes’ porch and she asked
-me to show my mother’s picture to Miss Duane. How did she suddenly know
-it was my mother?”
-
-“Whew!” Whistled Ogden, surprised. “Search me. I never gave her a clue;
-but she seemed to have it in for me for some reason this morning. Oh,”
-after a thoughtful moment, “she doesn’t know! She’s the yea-yea, and
-nay-nay, kind. If she knew you were Hugh Sinclair, she would either say,
-‘bless you, my child,’ or tell you to get off the earth. I know her.”
-
-“I’m growing to know her,” said Hugh, going on with his toilet, “and I’ll
-say she’s a trump. I don’t like to look forward to being despised by her.”
-
-“Hugh, my son, don’t make me laugh. You’ve got the woman. I don’t know
-whether it’s the shape of your nose or your general air of having the
-world by the tail, but the deed’s done.”
-
-Hugh regarded him gloomily. “All to be knocked over by a simple twist of
-the wrist when she learns that I’m the thing she despises most—a liar.
-She says she has had only one honest friend. I’d tell her the truth
-to-night if it weren’t for Ally’s recital. I don’t want anything to
-disturb that, poor girl.”
-
-Under Ogden’s guidance, the invitations to Mrs. Lumbard’s recital were
-sent out promptly, and Farrandale society rose to its first opportunity
-to be entertained in the Frink mansion. Not a regret was received by Miss
-Frink’s social secretary _pro tem_. Adèle, as the star of the occasion,
-took an oddly small part in the preparations. She did some practicing on
-her programme, apologizing to Hugh for its more weighty numbers.
-
-Leonard Grimshaw observed her infatuation for the young man, and it added
-to the score against him which began on the day Hugh was carried into the
-house. Was he in love with Adèle himself? He sometimes asked himself the
-question. She had sparkled into such life and vivacity in these last days
-that any man would have felt her attraction.
-
-One day he found himself alone with her on the veranda. “Do you realize
-all Miss Frink is doing for you in giving this affair?” he asked.
-
-“No. Is it such a great indulgence?” she returned lightly.
-
-“Positively. It is breaking her habits of years, and it will be a great
-expense. She is making lavish preparations,” declared Grimshaw severely.
-
-“Well, don’t blame me for it, Leonard,” said the young woman, reverting
-to the appealing manner. “It was Hughie’s idea.”
-
-“For pity’s sake don’t call him ‘Hughie’!” exclaimed the other irritably.
-“It makes me sick. You’re so crazy about him, anyway.”
-
-Adèle smiled up at her companion. “How delightful! I do believe you’re
-jealous, Leonard. I’m complimented to death.”
-
-“_You_ have far more reason to be jealous,” he retorted. “Anybody with
-half an eye can see that Stanwood is fascinated with Millicent’s demure
-ways. ‘In the spring a young man’s fancy,’ etc., you know, and these
-walks with her every day—”
-
-“He has to go to her grandfather,” broke in Adèle, a frown gathering
-and quenching the light in her eyes. “He cares nothing for that stupid
-creature except to tease her.”
-
-“And you should care nothing for him, Adèle,” said Grimshaw quickly. “He
-is a crude boy without a cent, just beginning life. Why waste your time?
-You are meat for his masters.”
-
-She lifted her head coquettishly, the frown disappearing. “Are you his
-master?”
-
-“Perhaps,” said Grimshaw.
-
-His regard for Adèle had been deepened by the fact that Miss Frink was
-giving this affair for her. It seemed to prove that she was more and more
-a person to be reckoned with, and likely to share with himself in all his
-employer’s favors. Moreover, the young woman’s attraction to and for Hugh
-Stanwood had seemed to create a new eagerness for her in himself which at
-moments threatened to overcome his caution. If Adèle were really to be
-one of Miss Frink’s heirs, there was no need for caution. What worried
-him was that he feared that some time he might commit himself on an
-uncertainty. Adèle in her present mood was a menace to clear thinking.
-
-The day of the recital arrived. John Ogden was here, there, and
-everywhere. The piano was freshly tuned. He supervised the removal of
-the drawing-room furniture and the placing of the crowd of camp-chairs.
-Miss Frink, feeling invertebrate for the first time in her life, forgot
-that he was a smooth rascal, and followed his suggestions implicitly as
-to dressing-rooms and the servants’ duties. Leonard Grimshaw’s nostrils
-dilated when his employer informed him that Mr. Ogden had given
-instructions to the caterer and that he, Grim, need feel no care.
-
-“I think you would find, Miss Frink, that we could manage this affair if
-Mr. Ogden were still in New York,” he said.
-
-“Thank Heaven he isn’t,” returned that lady devoutly.
-
-Millicent found it not such an easy matter to put her employer to sleep
-to-day. She was reading the book of an Arctic explorer; and Miss Frink
-was learning more about the astonishing flora of those regions than
-she had ever expected to know as the pleasant voice read on, with an
-intelligence born of long assistance to her grandfather’s failing eyes.
-
-At last Miss Frink flung off the white silk handkerchief. “It’s no use,
-Millicent,” she said. “You know how it is when a young débutante is
-taking her first plunge into society. It’s exciting. I never gave a party
-before.”
-
-“I’m sure it is going to be a wonderful one,” replied the girl, closing
-the book on her finger. “Every one is so pleased to be coming.”
-
-She spoke perfunctorily. Adèle had been steadying a ladder for Hugh as
-she crossed the veranda coming in, and the look on the former’s face as
-she gazed up, and he laughed down, had infuriated her by the sudden heat
-it brought on at the back of her own neck.
-
-“How-do, Millicent,” Hugh had cried; “you’ll have to go home alone
-to-day. Don’t you cry!”
-
-She had bowed to Adèle, ignoring his chaff, and said something pleasant
-about anticipating the evening.
-
-“You would think,” she said now, “that Mrs. Lumbard would be the excited
-one. How coolly she takes it.”
-
-Miss Frink shook her pillowed head. “I think it is nothing in her life to
-play to a lot of rubes,” she remarked.
-
-“They won’t care to be taught by her if she feels that way,” said
-Millicent stiffly.
-
-Miss Frink laughed. She had learned to laugh in the last month. “I
-shouldn’t have said that. Don’t repeat it and ruin business. I’m just
-guessing; but I don’t believe any kind of an audience would disconcert
-her. Have you heard her play?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Well, you have a treat in store. As Hugh says, nobody can hit the box
-like Ally.”
-
-“Why does he call her Ally?”
-
-“Because of her white hair. When she was working among the doughboys
-they called her an albino.”
-
-“Is she one?” Millicent looked preternaturally serious.
-
-“Search me,” returned the débutante carelessly. “Now, look here, Milly, I
-have another job for you. I want you to receive with me to-night.”
-
-“What, Miss Frink?”
-
-“Mr. Ogden says I’ve got to stand up there by the portières like a black
-satin post, and receive the guests as they come in. I thought I should
-like to have you and Hugh stand by me in the ordeal.”
-
-It entertained Miss Frink to see Millicent blush, and she watched the
-color come now, and the startled look in the girl’s eyes, like that of a
-bird ready to fly.
-
-“You see,” went on Miss Frink, “somebody will have to nudge me when I
-say, ‘Good-evening, Mr. Griscom; I see you put that deal over for the
-Woman’s Club Building!’ ‘Good-evening, Mr. Bacon; so that rise in real
-estate across the river is upon us. Congratulations!’ etc., etc.”
-
-“But I wouldn’t be any good, Miss Frink, and I—and I couldn’t—it
-would—for you to honor Hugh and me together like that—”
-
-Miss Frink sighed. “I suppose I should have to call another town meeting
-to tell them again that there was nothing in it. I was saying what I
-would _like_ to have; but, as a matter of fact, Mr. Grimshaw would be
-very justly hurt if I planned on Hugh’s supporting me.”
-
-Millicent looked relieved. “Mr. Grimshaw is just the right one,” she said.
-
-“And you would have no objection to standing up with him?” Miss Frink’s
-quizzical smile was playing about her lips.
-
-The young girl shook her head.
-
-“Then you put on your prettiest frock and come and stand beside the old
-lady, and burst out with something about the weather if you hear me
-mention stocks, bonds, or real estate.”
-
-Millicent went home and told her grandfather of the high honor thrust
-upon her. The responsibility, with that of netting Damaris’s hair into a
-demure coiffure for the occasion, made her all aquiver with excitement.
-
-As soon as she had left Miss Frink that day, Adèle knocked on her
-hostess’s door.
-
-“I heard you and Miss Duane talking, so I knew you were not asleep,
-Aunt Susanna,” she said. “I wanted you to see if I look all right for
-to-night.”
-
-Miss Frink drew herself up to a sitting posture and regarded her
-visitor. Adèle looked like a French marquise, with her snowy hair,
-excited color, and eyes sparkling like brown diamonds. Her white crêpe
-gown clung to her.
-
-Miss Frink adjusted her glasses and nodded. “Very picturesque,” she said.
-“Sit down a minute, Adèle.”
-
-The latter’s eyes scintillated with swift apprehension. There was no
-warmth in her hostess’s approval.
-
-“What do you wish to say, Aunt Susanna? Is it about my hair? I’ll tell
-you.”
-
-“No, no,” said Miss Frink. “We are way past that.”
-
-Adèle liked the atmosphere less and less.
-
-“Please wait, then,” she said impulsively. “I don’t want to be thrown off
-my balance for to-night.”
-
-Miss Frink shrugged her shoulders. “I don’t know much about temperamental
-people,” she said. “Go on, then. You look very handsome, Adèle.”
-
-The young woman vanished quickly. Even Miss Frink said she looked very
-handsome. She exulted as she thought of Hugh. His image constantly filled
-her thought, and a thousand imaginings of the future went careering
-through her brain.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-THE RECITAL
-
-
-Of course, Adèle played wonderfully that night. No anxious to-morrow with
-Miss Frink ventured into the rose-color of her dreams. She was playing to
-Hugh; and occasionally she caught his spellbound and admiring eyes. Even
-the drop of gall occasioned by the fact that, Millicent’s duties with the
-hostess over, Hugh seated himself beside her to listen, was drowned in
-the sweetness of his frank admiration.
-
-The great room was crowded. Miss Frink, unsmiling and reflective,
-regarded Adèle with a calculating eye and ear, absolving herself from any
-anxious care for the financial future of such a one.
-
-To many of the audience this private view, as it were, of Miss Frink and
-her home was of as much or more interest than the programme. John Ogden,
-as master of ceremonies, conducted the affair with grace, and his easy
-cordiality among a crowd almost entirely strange to him was a marvel
-to Miss Frink, and all her mental reservations were for the time being
-submerged in gratitude.
-
-But, in spite of the interest in the Queen of Farrandale as a private
-individual, Hugh Stanwood was really Exhibit A of the evening: the man
-who had saved Miss Frink’s life and lived in her house ever since. Was
-Leonard Grimshaw’s star descending? Was the handsome youth going to be
-adopted by his hostess? Why was Millicent Duane receiving with Miss
-Frink? Was Mr. Stanwood really reading law with her grandfather?
-
-Tongues would wag to-morrow. To-night they were silenced, first, by the
-music of—according to the programme—“Mrs. Adèle Lumbard, famous pianist
-of Atlanta, Georgia,” and later, by a very delicious supper.
-
-A procession of enthusiasts approached Adèle where she stood in a bay
-window at the close of the programme. Leonard Grimshaw was stationed
-beside her.
-
-“You are a queen, Adèle,” he murmured worshipfully, and she let her brown
-eyes speak her thanks.
-
-Colonel Duane approached her. “Please accept my compliments,” he said,
-bending over her hand. “You will have all us oldsters practicing
-five-finger exercises to-morrow. Here is Hugh; he is almost bursting with
-pride that he knows you.”
-
-“For a fact, Ally, you outdid yourself,” said Hugh, taking her hand.
-“Here is Millicent fairly afraid to approach such a star.”
-
-“It was perfectly beautiful,” said the young girl, gazing at her
-fervently.
-
-“Thanks,” returned Adèle perfunctorily, looking by her and wondering if
-she should have patience to receive the oncoming stream of people whom
-Grimshaw formally introduced one by one ere they dispersed about the
-house and out into the grounds.
-
-“I think one party will go a long way with me, Ogden,” said Miss Frink
-late in the evening, hiding a yawn behind her hand.
-
-John Ogden stood beside her as she sped the parting guests.
-
-When nearly all had gone, Adèle had opportunity to speak to Hugh: “Take
-me outdoors. Let us lose ourselves so I won’t have to say any more
-good-nights.”
-
-They slipped away and strolled far out underneath the great trees.
-
-“A perfect success,” said Hugh.
-
-“Was it?” Adèle leaned wearily on his arm.
-
-“You will have all Farrandale for pupils if you want them,” he went on;
-“but honestly, Adèle”—he looked down into her upturned face—“it’s like
-hitching a blooded horse to a coal-wagon to make you teach.”
-
-“You see it, do you?” she returned. “Oh, how I hate drudgery, Hughie.”
-
-“You must have gone through a lot of it, to play the way you do.”
-
-“I didn’t realize it. It didn’t seem so. I liked it.”
-
-Back and forth they strolled in the shadow of the old elms, Adèle’s
-cigarette adding its spark to his among the magic lanterns of fireflies.
-
-“The house looks quiet,” she said at last. “Let us go in and see if we
-can find something to eat. I am nearly starved.”
-
-They crossed the lawn and went up the veranda steps. In the hall they met
-the butler, hanging about aimlessly.
-
-“Mrs. Lumbard has been neglected, Stebbins,” said Hugh. “She hadn’t a
-chance to eat much of anything. See if you can’t get some sandwiches and
-grapejuice for us. Has everybody gone to bed?”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Well, when you’ve set out the stuff you go, too. You can lock up and
-I’ll see to putting out the lights.”
-
-The two entered the big dim dining-room and sat down side by side at the
-table. For all Adèle’s protestations of hunger, she only played with a
-sandwich and sipped the grapejuice. So far everything had gone exactly
-to suit her. Miss Frink, Leonard Grimshaw, and Mr. Ogden had all effaced
-themselves.
-
-She had Hugh to herself in the high-ceiled old room, and her heart was
-still exulting in the incense that had been burned before her all the
-evening, incense that was valuable because Hugh had seen it burning.
-
-Time was flying. This was her great opportunity.
-
-“What are you planning to do with your life, Hugh?” she asked suddenly.
-
-“I mean to keep on with the law work on the side while I go into Miss
-Frink’s store. Don’t you think you ought to go to bed, Ally? I know you
-must be very tired.”
-
-She tossed aside the trivial suggestion with an impatient motion of her
-head. “I never sleep after playing a programme,” she said. Then she added
-in a low, appealing voice, her eyes fixed on his: “I want you to give up
-that idea, Hughie. Do you know what wonderful playmates we are—simply
-made for each other?”
-
-Hugh began to feel uncomfortable under the clinging look. “Yes, but life
-isn’t play,” he returned.
-
-“It would be for us—together. Come to me, Hughie. You would shrivel up,
-here. Let us go away. I will make you happier than you ever dreamed of
-being. I love you every second of every minute, and every minute of every
-hour. I—”
-
-“Ally, Ally,” interrupted Hugh gently, “you’re mistaken. Love begets
-love, and if you loved me I should love you. I don’t, and—”
-
-“Stop”—she seized his hand—“I’ll show you what love is. I will show you
-what happiness is. I will take care of the practical side. I have some
-money that no one knows of: enough to start you in business. We will work
-together, play together—I can’t live without you, Hughie, I can’t—”
-
-“Adèle!” It was Miss Frink’s voice. In the silk negligée she was standing
-behind them inside the door.
-
-Adèle sprang to her feet, the brown eyes flashing their fire directly
-into Hugh’s as he rose.
-
-“Speak, Hugh,” she said, excitedly, “before she has a chance to talk. You
-know what I have said, and I mean every word.”
-
-“No, you don’t. Now, let us forget it, Ally.”
-
-“No, never; and whatever Miss Frink has heard she is welcome to remember.
-Speak, Hugh.” There was hysterical appeal in the last words.
-
-“Then I can only repeat, Ally. Oh, don’t spoil our friendship!”
-
-“This is enough,” said Miss Frink, coming forward, and looking Adèle
-straight in the eyes. “Why must an artist be a fool?”
-
-“Sometimes others are fools,” cried Adèle, carried away by her thwarted
-passion. “The great Miss Frink is a dupe herself. Hugh has fooled you as
-he has fooled me.”
-
-Miss Frink lifted her head. “Do you refer to the fact that Hugh Stanwood
-is Hugh Sinclair, my nephew? That is ancient history.” A moment of tense
-stillness while the women’s gaze still struck a mutual fire. “Will you
-kindly leave us, Adèle?”
-
-With a murderous parting look the young woman obeyed. With only a
-moment’s hesitation, and without a glance at Hugh, she dashed from the
-room, knocking over a chair in her flight. Hugh’s gaze was fixed on Miss
-Frink. She turned deliberately and faced him. The look in her eyes, the
-softness of her lips, were unmistakable even if she had not extended a
-hand; but Hugh had no use for the hand. With one stride, he reached her,
-flung his arms around her and she was held fast in his big embrace. Some
-sealed door within her, whose firm fastening had already been weakened,
-opened gently. A flood of amazing happiness flowed through, and softly
-inundated her whole being.
-
-From the hall came the chime of the Westminster clock. The four quarters
-rang; then through the stillness of the quiet house sounded the deep,
-deliberate strokes of the midnight hour.
-
-Through it all they stood there. Miss Frink could feel the sobbing catch
-in the broad chest to which she was strained.
-
-“I don’t deserve it,” she thought humbly. “The cross-grained, dominating,
-selfish, obstinate woman I have been, to be given this child of my old
-age!”
-
-When the last tone died away and intense stillness reigned again, she
-spoke:
-
-“Twelve o’clock, and all is well, Hugh. This is the first time I have
-been hugged in fifty years.”
-
-Gently she pushed him from her with hands that still clung to him. He
-dropped his arms and stood looking down at her. She was touched to see
-the moisture in the eyes that met hers.
-
-“It is good of you to let me hug you,” he replied in a low, thick voice.
-
-“I suppose you think you have a lot of explanations to make,” she said,
-her kind tone wavering a little in the intense feeling of the moment,
-“but you haven’t. It was all so obvious after I gained the first clue,
-that it scarcely needed your Aunt Sukey’s X-ray mind to see the whole
-thing clear as A B C.”
-
-“Don’t use that name!” exclaimed Hugh, as if it hurt.
-
-“What? Aunt Sukey? Oh, I’ve X-rayed that, too. I can fully understand the
-idea of your great-aunt that you grew up with. I”—a catch in Miss Frink’s
-throat stopped her speech for a second—“I was very unkind to Philip—to
-your father. Mr. Ogden knew me, knew that the only way you could reach my
-heart was to smuggle you in; but you got there, Hugh, my own dear boy,
-you got there.”
-
-Hugh caught her slender, dry hand in his big one.
-
-“If I was Aunt Sukey to your father, I am Aunt Susanna to you, and it was
-a gift of God that it was you, yourself, who saved my life that I might
-not die before I knew what it is not to be all alone in the world: what
-it is to have my own flesh and blood to love, and perhaps to love me a
-little.”
-
-“Aunt Susanna, I don’t feel worthy of your love,” exclaimed the boy
-hotly, but softly as if the dark wainscoted walls might have ears. “I
-hated it all the time.”
-
-“I know that, too,” returned Miss Frink quietly.
-
-“What you don’t know,” he continued, “is how I admire you. You’re the
-finest woman I’ve ever known, and the finer you were, and the more frank,
-and the more generous, the more miserable I was. Oh”—shaking his broad
-shoulders restlessly—“I’m so glad it’s over. I want to go away.”
-
-“You want to leave me, Hugh?”
-
-“To pick up my own self-respect somewhere. I feel as if you couldn’t
-really trust me!”
-
-“My child”—Miss Frink spoke tenderly—“what is my boasted X-ray for if I
-don’t know, positively, that I _can_ trust you? To lose you, to have you
-go away, would leave my life the same dry husk it was before you came.”
-
-A line grew in Hugh’s forehead, his eyes dimmed as the two stood looking
-at each other. Then he put his arms around her again, and this time he
-kissed her.
-
-“Thank you, Prince Charming. How little I ever expected to have a child
-to kiss me. Starving, famished, I was when you came, Hugh, and didn’t
-know it.” She pushed him away again with gentle, firm hands. “Now I want
-to do a little explaining, myself. To-night I heard Stebbins stumbling
-up the servants’ stairs after everything was quiet, and I felt something
-was wrong. I came into the hall and saw that the lights below were still
-on. I came down, heard voices in here, and the rest followed. You mustn’t
-feel too unhappy about what happened to-night. Believe in my X-ray enough
-to know that her life has been made up of similar incidents; not just the
-same, of course, but the pursuit of excitement of some sort. I have a
-problem now unless she elects to leave Farrandale.”
-
-“Be kind to her, Aunt Susanna!”
-
-“I will, you soft-hearted boy. I imagine a man finds it the hardest of
-tasks to turn down a woman.”
-
-“She said I had fooled her. I don’t know what she meant.”
-
-“She doesn’t either. At that moment it was a necessity with her to sting,
-and she stung, that’s all.”
-
-“How did she know—know about me?” asked Hugh, frowning.
-
-“The same way I did: by the letter she held in your room addressed to
-your full name. She held it for a second under both our eyes. She thought
-she had a weapon; but the name did not tell her what it told me. She
-didn’t know until to-night that you belonged to me.”
-
-“I wish she would leave Farrandale,” said Hugh restlessly.
-
-“Most women would, under the circumstances. She belongs to a genus I
-don’t know much about. It isn’t safe for me to predict.”
-
-“I’m glad you’re so wonderful,” returned Hugh, “so big that you will be
-good to her.”
-
-“I will be if you won’t be,” said Miss Frink, with her little twitching
-smile. “You might as safely try to show affection to a rattlesnake as to
-a woman without principle. You can’t know how or when she’ll strike.”
-
-Hugh walked up and down the room. “Ally’s such a good fellow. I don’t
-like—”
-
-“Yes, I know you don’t; and you may have to get your wisdom by
-experience; but she’s a hard teacher, Experience, Hugh, and she has given
-you one big lesson to-night.”
-
-“I’m blessed if I know how I deserved it. I deserve to be kicked out of
-the house by you, but ‘not guilty’ when it comes to Ally.”
-
-Miss Frink’s eyes followed him adoringly. It was of no use to try to make
-him understand.
-
-“I guess I’m pretty tired,” she said at last, with a sigh.
-
-“And I keeping you up!” returned Hugh, suddenly penitent and stopping in
-his promenade.
-
-“Débutantes find it rather difficult to go to sleep when they are tired.
-This is the first party I ever gave in my life, Hugh.”
-
-“Never too late to mend,” he returned.
-
-“But sometimes too late to go to bed,” she answered. “We must look out
-for that.”
-
-“You go upstairs,” said Hugh. “I told Stebbins I’d see to the lights.
-Ally was hungry. I’ll fix everything.”
-
-“Yes, she was,” thought Miss Frink, “and thirsty, too.” But she kept the
-reflection to herself. She turned toward the door. “Good-night,” she said.
-
-Hugh took a long step after her. “Let me tell you before you go how I
-thank you: how happy you have made me!”
-
-She looked up at him sideways. She even had inspiration to perform
-a novel act. She threw the big, earnest, troubled boy a kiss as she
-vanished into the hall.
-
-For the first time in her life Miss Frink felt rich—and satisfied with
-her wealth.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-JOHN OGDEN
-
-
-John Ogden’s eagle eye had been on Adèle and Hugh when they slipped
-out of the house this evening, and he was well aware that they had not
-come in when he persuaded Miss Frink to seek her couch and leave the
-disposition of affairs below-stairs to him. At last, when Stebbins
-alone was prowling sleepily about, Ogden decided that Hugh might become
-unmanageable if he found his guardian up and waiting for him and his
-lady, as if with rebuke; so he decided to go to his room. It was scarcely
-past eleven o’clock, but, in this household of early hours, it was late.
-
-Arrived in his room, Ogden opened a window, turned on the reading-lamp,
-and taking a book set himself to listen for his mutinous young friend. It
-was not long before he heard the murmur of voices beneath his window and
-then the muffled closing of the house door. He set his own ajar in order
-to hear the pair come upstairs. They did not come. He scowled at his book
-and said something between his teeth which was an aspiration concerning
-Adèle Reece. Long minutes passed. He fumed. The clock on the stairs
-chimed the half-hour.
-
-By the time the solemn midnight bell fell upon the quiet house,
-Ogden had made up his mind to have nothing more to do with his
-protégé. He would leave for New York the next day, after making a few
-straight-from-the-shoulder remarks to Hugh, releasing him from their
-partnership. Scowling at his book, he heard the clock chime another
-quarter, and, starting up, went to the door and pulled it open. The
-lights were still on. He set his teeth. He felt his ears burn. It was
-indecent. He was humiliated before the chaste image of Miss Frink. He
-would wait until the clock chimed again and then he would go downstairs,
-no matter what he came upon. He was determined to quarrel with Hugh,
-anyway. It might as well be to-night as in the morning.
-
-He went back to his book. At the first stroke of the half-hour, he
-bounded to the door and opened it once more. All was dark below. Hugh’s
-room was near his. He went to it. The brilliantly lighted transom was
-open. He knocked softly on the door and opened it. Hugh, turning about,
-faced a gentleman in his shirt-sleeves with a scarlet face, rumpled hair,
-and a generally wild and angry appearance.
-
-“Anything wrong, Mr. Ogden?” he asked.
-
-“Anything wrong!” John Ogden was speechless. He had never seen Hugh look
-like this. The boy’s face was alive with—was it hope? It was certainly
-gladness, satisfaction.
-
-“I’ve been frank with you, Hugh,” he said in a lowered voice; then to be
-more certain that there was no eavesdropping, Ogden turned and closed
-the transom. “I told you she was a person of no principle, knowing no
-law but her own will, and, to say nothing of the bad taste and danger of
-playing with such a woman, you risk outraging Miss Frink’s strict ideas
-of decorum by staying down there alone all this time. I’m thoroughly
-disgusted. I must be honest. Right at the time when you are wanting to
-disclose yourself, to have you play the fool like this, it’s painfully
-disappointing. That’s what it is, painfully disappointing. I shall
-leave for New York to-morrow, and you can conduct your affairs to suit
-yourself.”
-
-The effect of this intense speech on his listener surprised Ogden even
-while he was delivering it. Was Hugh so fatuous, so impervious?
-
-The boy, smiling and looking exasperatingly handsome and happy, seized
-the smaller man and pulled him down beside him on the couch at the foot
-of the bed.
-
-“It is true,” he said. “I’ve been party of the second part in a
-love-scene downstairs, and I owe it all to you, Ogden.” Hugh threw an arm
-around his companion’s shoulders. “I’ll never, never forget it.”
-
-Ogden with open mouth stared into the violet eyes.
-
-“It’s Aunt Susanna. I’ve been hugging Aunt Susanna.”
-
-Ogden went limp. He still stared. He brushed his hand across his eyes.
-
-Hugh laughed low. “Yes; she’s known it ever since Ally held that letter
-of Carol’s in her lap; and she forgives us, and she understands.”
-
-“What—where—when did you exchange Ally for Miss Frink?”
-
-“Aunt Susanna couldn’t understand the lights, and she came downstairs.”
-
-“Where—where is Ally?” asked Ogden, still stunned.
-
-“Asleep, I suppose,” Hugh sobered.
-
-“Intact, then?” Ogden looked questioning.
-
-“Of course. She shared in the big surprise. Aunt Susanna told her I was
-her nephew—Ally had seen Carol’s letter, too.”
-
-Ogden’s alert brain grasped the possible scene. “Ah! Perhaps she had
-thought that she was the one to provide the surprise.”
-
-“Perhaps,” said Hugh vaguely; then impulsively, “Don’t go home, Ogden.
-Stay and be happy with us awhile. I told Aunt Susanna I wanted to go
-away, but the idea seemed to hurt her.”
-
-John Ogden began to nurse his knee, and rock back and forth reflectively,
-keeping up occasional bursts of low, nervous laughter.
-
-“It won’t hurt her to have _me_ go away,” he said. “That explains all
-those side-winders and innuendoes. Ha, ha, it is a good joke on the
-lady. It gives her the nettle-rash that I got away with it, at the same
-time that she’s glad of it.” Ogden’s eyes were bright as he continued
-to consider. “And Grimshaw! Oh, Grimshaw! Draw a veil.” At this, his
-laughter threatened to grow violent. He buried his face in the satin
-cushions.
-
-The secretary awoke the morning after the recital with a confused but
-happy sense that the world was a pleasant place to live in. He had not
-sounded many of its pleasures, and it was time he began. What a wonderful
-companion in all that was gay, in all of life that he had avoided, was
-the niece of his employer, the talented young creature about whom all
-Farrandale would be talking to-day!
-
-How quietly and demurely Adèle had taken the adulation of last
-evening: creeping off modestly to her room at the last, without even
-a good-night. Where had Stanwood been at the time? Grimshaw frowned
-a little in his effort to remember where Stanwood had been while the
-guests were departing. John Ogden had stood beside Miss Frink while the
-good-byes were being said. He, himself, had had too much to attend to in
-supervising the departure of the caterer’s retinue, and other household
-movements. He gave it up finally. Probably Hugh had been with the Duanes.
-Grimshaw had never liked Millicent since her mild defiance of him in the
-matter of taking the records to the White Room. A suggestion from any one
-that he was not in full authority in Miss Frink’s house put the culprit
-in his black books.
-
-Getting out of bed, he now crossed the room and observed a white folded
-paper pushed beneath his door. He picked it up, opened it, and read as
-follows:
-
- DEAR LEONARD: A strange thing came to my knowledge last night,
- and, fearing that it may be a shock to you to learn it, I
- thought I would prepare you and I hope you will not consider it
- presumptuous on my part. If it does seem so, pardon me, because
- it is only my solicitude for you. It seems that Hugh Stanwood’s
- real name is Sinclair, and that he is a nephew of Miss Frink.
- She will doubtless tell you immediately her discovery of
- his identity; and we shall see if she resents his obtaining
- entrance to her under a false name.
-
- Yours ever
-
- ADÈLE
-
-The secretary’s face became scarlet as he read. The shock was all his
-friend could have anticipated, and he felt grateful to her for the
-preparation. This interloper and liar to have had the damned luck to save
-Miss Frink’s life; to command her gratitude and regard! There was the
-chance now that his duplicity might antidote that gratitude. Grimshaw’s
-face became more hopeful as the thought grew. He saw Miss Frink, in her
-intolerance of falsity, sending the fellow about his business. Happy
-dénouement to the past afflicting weeks. Adèle was a sweet girl. Her
-thought was all of him, and for his protection.
-
-At the same moment in another room another gentleman was finding a folded
-paper on the polished wood of his threshold. Opening it he read:
-
- I am not responsible after playing. I am intoxicated, and a
- woman is as liable to tell the truth in her cups as a man. Can
- you forgive and forget, Hugh? You can imagine how deeply I
- regret that hysterical outburst. Be generous to me.
-
- ADÈLE
-
-
-Hugh frowned as he read. Poor Adèle! What lay before her now? He dreaded
-to meet her at breakfast, and hoped that she would decide to leave
-Farrandale. Ogden had assured him, before they parted last night, that
-she had no more idea of teaching in this town than she had of flying to
-the moon.
-
-Adèle did not come to breakfast, and, as for Ogden, it took some
-hardihood for him to present himself to his hostess that morning. His
-gay, debonair look was the same as usual when she greeted him. She was
-already seated behind the coffee percolator when he came in, and, instead
-of going to his place, he came to her and held out his hand, with an odd
-chuckle.
-
-“I’m as nervous as a cat this morning,” he said, meeting her bright eyes.
-
-After a little hesitation she gave him her hand for a quick shake. “What
-is it: your conscience or your digestion?” she inquired.
-
-Leonard Grimshaw was in his place watching their every move as a cat
-watches a mouse; and here Hugh came into the room. He, too, approached
-Miss Frink’s chair, and she held his hand while she addressed her
-secretary.
-
-“Leonard,” she began—and it was only in her most serious moments that she
-thus addressed him—“I have a great surprise for you. This young man who
-put me under such obligation and to whom we are so much attached, is my
-grand-nephew, Hugh Sinclair. I have known it only a short time.”
-
-Grimshaw felt that but for Adèle’s warning he should have collapsed. As
-it was, he turned pale under the discovery of his employer’s attitude
-toward the culprit.
-
-“I suppose _he_ knew it,” he returned, with a carefully respectful manner.
-
-“Yes, he knew it,” returned Miss Frink, smiling up at Hugh and still
-retaining the hand that clasped hers closely.
-
-“Why didn’t he tell us sooner?” asked Grimshaw politely.
-
-“Pretty good aim,” reflected Ogden.
-
-“Because he thought of me as an old dragon,” returned Miss Frink. “We
-don’t beat about the bush in this matter any more than in any other. Go
-and sit down, Hugh, and I’ll give you a really good cup of coffee.”
-
-The boy obeyed, scarlet humiliation upon him again. He knew the
-secretary’s thoughts. He knew what would leak out all through Farrandale,
-and that no one would ever realize how he had hated it. He gave a
-glowering look at Ogden.
-
-That gentleman spoke up cheerfully. “That was my doing, Mr. Grimshaw,
-that feature of the matter, not telling Miss Frink at first. Mr. Sinclair
-would have infinitely preferred telling her at once, and I think the full
-explanation of my not being crippled for life lies in the fact that he
-has been bedridden and weak; but my motto is always, ‘All’s well that
-ends well.’ Isn’t it yours, too, Mr. Grimshaw?”
-
-“Has it ended?” returned the secretary, as lightly as he was able.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-A PARTING INTERVIEW
-
-
-Although Miss Frink had presented herself so promptly at breakfast that
-morning, she had been as sleepless as Adèle. Waves of wonder and joy
-had passed over her in the consideration of her happiness, and kept her
-awake. That honest boy—honest in spite of the part he had been induced to
-play—admired her, loved her. He had said so, and she believed him. She
-had not thought her life empty before, but now she felt compassion for
-her past. Her brain seethed with plans and possibilities, and certain
-charitable institutions lost a great deal of money that night.
-
-As she thought thus, the remembrance of Adèle clouded the radiance of
-her reflections. She had yet this problem to meet. If the young woman
-would solve it by leaving town, what a mercy it would be! Of course,
-she had fallen in love with Hugh, head over heels. So, thought Miss
-Frink, sighing, would probably every girl who met him; but Adèle had
-hazarded all, tried to rush the boy off his feet, and, if she had known
-that he was related to Miss Frink, it would not have deterred her. Her
-sort fears neither God nor man. Miss Frink shrank into her pillow and
-closed her sleepless eyes as she recalled Adèle’s bitter attitude toward
-herself, and the young woman’s triumphant hope of wounding her.
-
-Miss Frink was a strong woman; but her excitement as she dressed that
-morning was not sufficient to lift her above her sense of weariness.
-Explaining the situation to Leonard Grimshaw was before her. It rankled
-that he would believe her splendid boy to be blameworthy. Then there was
-John Ogden to be met, and, looming dark above all these, was Adèle to
-be dealt with. She had been intending to have a final talk with Adèle
-this morning in any case; so, when the waitress at last went up to Mrs.
-Lumbard’s room with her breakfast, she carried a message that Miss Frink
-would come in to see her at ten o’clock.
-
-“Pleasant prospect!” thought Adèle as she sat up in bed to receive the
-tray. “Thank you, Janet,” she said sweetly to the maid.
-
-“You look awful tired, Mrs. Lumbard,” said the girl, “and so does Miss
-Frink. There’s all sorts of doings down in the breakfast room.” Janet’s
-eyes were big. “What do you think! Mr. Stanwood’s name is something else
-and he’s some sort of relation to Miss Frink all this time, and nobody
-knew it!”
-
-“Are you sure, Janet?” Adèle put the cream in her coffee.
-
-“Yes, ma’am,” returned the excited girl. “Stebbins heard Miss Frink say
-so herself to Mr. Grimshaw.”
-
-“Did Miss Frink seem pleased?” Adèle broke off a piece of toast, speaking
-languidly.
-
-“Oh, yes, indeed, and holding his hand.”
-
-“Mr. Grimshaw’s?” Adèle smiled wanly.
-
-“No, Mr. Stanwood’s; and she seemed so happy over it.”
-
-“Who wouldn’t be happy holding Mr. Stanwood’s hand?”
-
-Janet giggled. “Yes, ain’t he awful handsome?—and now he’ll be the
-biggest catch in Farrandale; but I guess there won’t any o’ the girls
-have a chance when you’re around, Mrs. Lumbard.”
-
-Janet’s head fell to one side in sentimental admiration as she regarded
-Adèle.
-
-The latter smiled and nodded at her: “You’d better run along, Janet.”
-
-The maid disappeared, and Adèle again clamped down the lid on the
-humiliating memories of last evening. She must not be humiliated when
-Miss Frink came in. She remembered the violence of her own attack upon
-that lady and regretted it as most unwise; nevertheless, her head might
-be “bloody,” but it should be “unbowed.” It had been quite evident for
-some time that Miss Frink’s hospitality was being strained; Adèle could
-not in any case have hoped to remain here much longer. Why should she be
-ashamed of loving Hugh? Why should she be ashamed of trying to get him?
-She was not. It was all in the game. She had lost for the present, but
-who could tell?
-
-By the time Miss Frink’s knock sounded on the door, the young woman was
-dressed and ready to open it with an attempt at a smile.
-
-“Good-morning, Aunt Susanna.”
-
-“Good-morning, Adèle.” Miss Frink regarded the calm face and unfallen
-eyes uncomfortably; and felt her own self-possession strengthened by such
-control.
-
-“Well,” she began, as they sat down in neighboring chairs, “we have come
-to the parting of the ways, Adèle.”
-
-“Have we? Where are you going?” was the astonishing reply.
-
-Miss Frink grimaced her glasses off the eyes beneath which were dark
-shadows, and at once replaced them.
-
-“You certainly help me not to beat about the bush,” she said. “I thought
-perhaps last night’s experience would make you feel you did not care to
-stay in Farrandale.”
-
-“After your giving such an expensive advertisement for me?” Adèle smiled.
-
-Miss Frink’s own deep happiness embarrassed her. Hugh’s earnest “Be kind
-to Ally,” rang in her ears. This adventuress, pale and defiant, seemed to
-her so pitiful that, in spite of the other’s audacity, she had to summon
-her customary directness with an effort.
-
-“That wouldn’t be good economy, would it?” added Adèle.
-
-There was a pause; then Miss Frink spoke again: “I must tell you that I
-have discovered, quite by accident, that you are not the granddaughter
-of my dear friend. Her son married a lady with a little girl, a little
-pianist.”
-
-Color stole over Adèle’s pallor.
-
-“Ah, Mr. Ogden is a regular god in the machine, isn’t he?” she said
-lightly. “Delightful man!”
-
-“My informant was unaware that he was telling me any news,” went on Miss
-Frink; “but, this being the case, I feel that it would be rather foolish
-for us to keep up the pose of aunt and niece.”
-
-“Especially,” returned Adèle “since you have found some one with the
-right of blood to call you ‘Aunt Susanna.’”
-
-Miss Frink regarded her composed companion in silence. Not with her could
-she exchange words concerning her heart-warming miracle.
-
-“A few days ago,” she said, “I obtained the refusal for you of a room at
-the Coopers’: cousins of Leonard’s. If you decide to stay in Farrandale,
-he will take you over there to-day and introduce you. Mrs. Cooper is
-ready for you to take possession at any minute. They have a very good
-piano.”
-
-“I thought,” said Adèle, with unabashed eyes, “that I should like to go
-to the Duanes’. I hear they have such a pleasant garden, and I believe
-they are poor and might like a paying guest.”
-
-Miss Frink regarded her incredulously. Was there, then, no limit to her
-audacity?
-
-“Colonel Duane was very nice to me last evening,” added Adèle. “Such a
-courtly old gentleman.”
-
-“They keep no maid and would not take any one,” said Miss Frink briefly.
-
-“I shouldn’t be any trouble, for I would help Miss Duane like one of the
-family.”
-
-Miss Frink felt a sort of horror of the smooth, fair speaker. She had
-been prepared to be very kind to the poor woman who had blundered
-so pitifully, but her own assurances to Hugh came back to her: the
-occurrence was no tragedy to Mrs. Lumbard, evidently to her while there
-was life, there was hope. To suggest going to the Duanes’! The image of
-Millicent rose before Miss Frink as the antithesis of all that Adèle
-represented.
-
-The latter smiled now, wan, but still unembarrassed.
-
-“If you are thinking that it will be awkward for me to meet Hugh, you are
-mistaken. He hasn’t lived all his life in a small town. He knows his way
-about. No man ever thought less of a woman for caring a lot for him, and
-Hugh and I will always be pals. I don’t think any the less of him for
-coming into your house under false colors. He carried his point.”
-
-Miss Frink’s cheeks flushed. “Why, indeed, should you criticize him? You
-did the same.”
-
-“Only I didn’t carry my point. You never liked me.”
-
-“Nor were you really my niece,” said Miss Frink briefly. “Adèle,” she
-added—and there was appeal in her voice—“in this nine days’ wonder that
-is coming upon Farrandale I wish that, for the sake of such hospitality
-as I have shown you, you would help to give the true explanation of
-Hugh’s manner of introducing himself here. It was Mr. Ogden’s idea
-entirely, inasmuch as I had not been friendly to Hugh’s family. The
-sequel you know.”
-
-Adèle’s stolid expression did not change, and she did not speak.
-
-Miss Frink sat, looking at her and waiting.
-
-“The truth generally comes out about everything,” said the young woman at
-last.
-
-“Adèle, Adèle,” said Miss Frink solemnly. “Why won’t you try to make your
-life measure up to the beauty of your art? What I heard last evening will
-be buried forever, as you know, unless you yourself force a remembrance
-of it.” She looked at her watch. “Leonard will take you over to Mrs.
-Cooper’s as soon as you are ready.”
-
-Miss Frink went out and closed the door. For the first time in her life
-she quivered with feeling. Her cheeks were flushed.
-
-At the foot of the stairway she met John Ogden.
-
-“Just the lady I want to see!” he cried cheerfully.
-
-“Very well—my benefactor,” she said slowly.
-
-“Do my ears deceive me? How good that sounds!” He seized both her hands
-for a quick moment. Her flushed face and subdued tone impressed him.
-
-“I’m afraid you’re very tired, Miss Frink. Too much excitement, perhaps.”
-
-“Yes; in this world we must accept the bitter with the sweet, but—nothing
-is any matter. What did you want of me?”
-
-“Why, I’m leaving for New York to-night, and I wish to ask a privilege
-before I go. I’ve no doubt there are numbers of gentle-folk in
-Farrandale, but I happen to have made the acquaintance of only two:
-Colonel Duane and his granddaughter. Tongues are going to buzz for a
-while now, and I would like to beat the gossips to it with those fine
-people. I should like to tell them my own part in what has taken place.”
-
-“Very well; I have no objection. Open confession is good for the soul.”
-Miss Frink smiled wearily.
-
-“Now you go to bed, Miss Frink. Please do. Let Grimshaw run the city of
-Farrandale to-day.”
-
-“He is very soon going to escort Mrs. Lumbard to her new abiding-place at
-Mrs. Cooper’s.”
-
-“That will rest you, eh?” asked Ogden appreciatively. “She really intends
-to stay here and teach the young idea?”
-
-“I don’t know. Perhaps I ought not to let her,” returned Miss Frink,
-and her companion saw her hold her lip under her teeth to still its
-quivering. “I seem to be sponsoring her, you see.”
-
-“My dear Miss Frink, don’t you worry,” returned Ogden, speaking low but
-emphatically, for they were still standing at the foot of the stairs.
-“Don’t worry a minute. She won’t stick to that teaching a month.”
-
-Miss Frink gave him a rather tremulous smile of gratitude; and, before
-Ogden took his hat to run out on his errand, he went up to Hugh’s room
-where the latter was busy with his books.
-
-“Say, boy,” he said, “I’ve just come from Miss Frink, and she had just
-come from a talk with your friend Ally; and I tell you she was all in.”
-
-Hugh wheeled around in his chair and fixed a troubled look on his friend.
-
-“Yes, Miss Frink looked old and tired. Her pep was gone. Mrs. Re—Lumbard
-is leaving to-day, it seems.”
-
-“Leaving Farrandale?” asked Hugh, with an eagerness which his friend
-misunderstood.
-
-“No; don’t be afraid. I think Miss Frink is worrying about her being
-turned loose among the Farrandale lambs; and I just want to say, Hugh,
-that if you continue to pal with Mrs. Lumbard you’ll make a great mistake
-from every point of view. You owe it to Miss Frink to ease off and not
-encourage her. Miss Frink doesn’t want her coming here.”
-
-Hugh continued his troubled stare. “I hope you didn’t tell her the
-damaging thing you told me—about the courts.”
-
-“Of course not,” said Ogden impatiently; “but Miss Frink has the woman’s
-number all right. I don’t know what their good-bye talk was like, but
-this fine aunt of yours came out of it wounded. I tell you she was
-wounded; and you want to think of her and protect her, boy.”
-
-“I’m going to, Ogden. Thank you,” replied Hugh, with a submissiveness
-that surprised his friend.
-
-John Ogden stared at him for a silent moment. “Well, then,” he said,
-vaguely, and left the room.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI
-
-PAVING THE WAY
-
-
-Ogden went on thinking about the unusual docility with which Hugh had
-received his exhortation. Also there was the devotion to his studies at a
-moment when Ally was about to depart from the house. How about that?
-
-As he swung along he began to smile, his retrospective reflection
-visualizing that slipping away into the moonlight which he had witnessed
-and worried over last evening. After a minute in a rush of thought his
-smile broadened. It seemed probable that the siren, in the excited
-reaction from her performance, might have thrown a scare into the heir
-apparent. At what juncture had she slipped away from Hugh’s arm and Miss
-Frink slipped into it? Something had gone on, to flush Miss Frink’s
-cheeks and weary her eyes this morning. All the time that he himself was
-reading and fretting in his room last evening, things had been happening
-downstairs. Anyway, the net result had been a joyous one, as transpired
-unmistakably, later.
-
-As Ogden tramped along, he was roused from his reverie to realize
-that many persons he met greeted him. Realizing that they remembered
-him as the busy master of ceremonies on the night before, he responded
-cordially, and at last a short man in a checked suit forced him to a
-standstill by his effusive manner.
-
-“Goldstein, Mr. Ogden. I. K. Goldstein. We had but a minute’s talk last
-night—”
-
-“Ah, good-morning, Mr. Goldstein.” Ogden endeavored to edge away from the
-plump hand with the diamond ring, after yielding to its determined grasp.
-
-“I cannot let you go without speaking again of that won-derful evening.
-Such an artist you have there, that Mrs. Lumbard; she is amazing. In a
-town the size of Farrandale we are all one family. You put us all under
-obligation bringing such an artist here!”
-
-“Oh, not I at all; Miss Frink—”
-
-“Miss Frink! Oh, she is the genius of our city!” Mr. Goldstein made
-known by gestures and upturned eyes that Miss Frink’s glories were
-indescribable. “You come any time to see me, Mr. Ogden, and I wish you
-would bring Miss Frink, and I show you both all over the Koh-i-noor, our
-theater—”
-
-“Thank you, Mr. Goldstein, but I am leaving town to-night—”
-
-“But can’t you spare a little time, a half an hour this afternoon?—it is
-a palace equal to any in the country. An organ—oh, such an organ I have
-installed!—we open in less than a month; you would be happy to see those
-velvet furniture in the lobby.”
-
-“No doubt I should; but I have—”
-
-“That young man at your house, the one who saved our wonderful Miss
-Frink’s life, he should be in the pictures, you must see that. There’s
-the story right there, too. I give him introductions; you send him to me.”
-
-John Ogden disengaged the clinging hand from his lapel as best he could,
-and, mindfully thanking the manager of the Koh-i-noor, contrived to
-escape with an apology for his pressing business.
-
-Mr. Goldstein called after him cordially as long as he could hear.
-
-Millicent Duane, enveloped in an apron, had brought out some vegetables
-to prepare for the noon dinner and was sitting on the porch with a large
-tin pan in her lap.
-
-Her grandfather, who had been as usual working about the garden, finally
-came slowly up the steps and sank restfully into his favorite chair with
-the calico cushion.
-
-“I can’t get that last piece she played out of my head,” he said. “Mrs.
-Lumbard said it was a _Marche Militaire_. I should say so.” The speaker
-drummed the rhythm on the arms of his chair.
-
-“It was splendid,” agreed Millicent. She had been hearing all the morning
-about the recital, and the English “fed up” but faintly described her
-satiation.
-
-The morning was so beautiful, the birds so tuneful, everything that had
-not unfolded was so busy unfolding, and the air so full of sweetness,
-Millicent could not understand why she felt at odds with a world that was
-so amiably putting its best foot forward. She forced herself to respond
-with ardor to her grandfather’s comments. She was glad he had had such an
-unusual treat. He had seen nothing but charm in Mrs. Lumbard’s manner;
-while Millicent still felt the perfunctoriness of the star’s response
-to her own effort to express her appreciation. Hugh had been beside
-her at the time, and as usual Mrs. Lumbard had implied, or at least
-Millicent felt the implication, that she was negligible, and the sooner
-she effaced herself the sooner could life really go on. And it had gone
-on. The stinging remembrance was that, before the Duanes left, Millicent
-had seen Hugh and the star disappear together. The girl’s annoyance,
-and resentment that she could feel it, made her an extra lively and
-agreeable companion to her grandfather on the way home. He remarked
-affectionately on the good the evening had done her, and how she needed
-such outings; and she laughed and hugged him, then went to bed, strains
-of music flowing through her hot head, while her wet eyes buried in the
-pillow still saw the moonlight sifting through the great trees with their
-black shadows, shadows through which _they_ were walking. She wanted—she
-knew now how desperately she wanted—to walk in the moonlight with Hugh
-herself, and her feeling that it was a contemptible wish did not help the
-situation in the least.
-
-Now, this morning, she sat there, enveloped in her pink checked apron,
-the bright tin pan in her lap and her hands busy, while her grandfather
-watched her fleeting smiles.
-
-“Seems to me you look sort of pale this morning, honey,” he said.
-
-“Dissipation,” she returned. “You know I’m a country girl.”
-
-“It wasn’t late,” he returned reminiscently, still evidently enjoying his
-memories. “How she did play the ‘Spring Song’! Simplest things are the
-best, aren’t they, Milly? I think you look sweeter in that pink apron
-than in your party dress,” he added.
-
-“Didn’t I look nice last night?” asked the girl with unexpected gravity.
-
-“I should say so. Quite the up-to-date girl, standing there with Miss
-Frink in her august dignity.”
-
-“Grandpa, here comes Mr. Ogden.”
-
-Colonel Duane rose as the caller opened the gate, and came to the head of
-the steps to meet him.
-
-“Don’t you move now, Miss Millicent,” said Ogden as the girl started to
-put aside the big pan. “You make the most charming domestic picture.”
-
-“I can’t shake hands,” she returned, as he approached, and her cheeks
-matched the gay hue of her apron while her eyes welcomed him.
-
-“This is my P.P.C.” he remarked, taking the chair Colonel Duane offered.
-
-“Oh, are you leaving us?” asked the old gentleman, returning to his
-calico cushion. “I don’t know what they’ll do without you at Miss
-Frink’s. That was a great treat she gave us last night. We haven’t talked
-about anything else this morning; and your announcements, and the general
-pleasant informality with which you managed the occasion, gave it the
-last touch of charm. How is that delightful, bright particular star, this
-morning?”
-
-“Mrs. Lumbard? I haven’t seen her. She didn’t come down to breakfast.”
-
-“Well, she certainly earned that luxury,” responded the Colonel, while
-Millicent’s gaze fell demurely to her busy hands. “I’d like to have Milly
-take some lessons of her,” he added.
-
-The girl flashed a quick glance up at the caller. “But I’m not going to,”
-she said. “You can’t teach an old dog new tricks.”
-
-The men laughed.
-
-“What makes you go away, Mr. Ogden?” she added.
-
-“Oh, life can’t be all Farrandale, you know. There’s business waiting for
-me over there in the suburb of New York. I only came to see Hugh because
-he was ill.”
-
-“Hugh seemed quite proud of his brilliant friend last night,” remarked
-the Colonel.
-
-“Oh!” thought Millicent, “will he ever get through talking about her!”
-
-“I shouldn’t blame him if he lost his heart—so handsome and so talented
-she is.”
-
-Down went the young girl’s gaze again to the contents of her pan.
-
-John Ogden saw the compression of her soft lips.
-
-“Mrs. Lumbard is leaving Miss Frink to-day also,” he said.
-
-Millicent looked up quickly again.
-
-“Why is that? Not leaving Farrandale, I hope,” said the Colonel.
-
-“No. I heard some one say something about the Coopers’. Of course, Mrs.
-Lumbard has only been visiting Miss Frink.”
-
-“The Coopers’!” echoed Millicent. “Is Mrs. Lumbard going to live at the
-Coopers’?”
-
-Ogden shrugged his shoulders. “Don’t quote me. I may be all off, but I
-understood that.”
-
-“Of course, they are Mr. Grimshaw’s cousins,” said the girl reflectively.
-
-“Another one of her satellites,” remarked the old gentleman, smiling. “It
-was easy to see last evening that Grimshaw’s steady head was all off its
-balance. I don’t believe you attractive bachelors are going to let that
-charmer teach very long. One of you will snatch her up.”
-
-“I had to leave her to my rivals last night,” said Ogden. “I probably
-lost out for good.”
-
-Millicent’s grave large gaze was upon him, trying to discover whether
-he was serious. She liked Mr. Ogden, but she would have been perfectly
-willing he should snatch up Mrs. Lumbard.
-
-“You’re quite a matchmaker, Colonel,” he went on. “I don’t know how that
-rosebud over there behind the tin pan escapes your machinations.”
-
-Millicent threw a glance over her shoulder in evident search for the
-rosebud, and Ogden laughed.
-
-“Oh, she,” returned the old man regarding the girl with eyes of placid
-love; “she has a heart like a flint. We have a lot of the nicest boys
-you’d ever care to know, in Farrandale. She used to like them, Milly did.
-When she was in the store, I used to have to complain of the way she let
-them bother around and keep her up late; but now she has left the store,
-and could sleep in the morning if she wanted to, she won’t have a thing
-to do with them. They can’t do anything right. One laughs too loud, one
-brings his mandolin and she hates it, one parts his hair in the middle,
-and they all varnish their locks—”
-
-“Grandpa!” Millicent interrupted him with rather unnecessary severity,
-Ogden thought. “I don’t like to be discussed.”
-
-Her grandfather laughed toward her affectionately, and raised his
-eyebrows. “Gracious!” he exclaimed. “What a grown-up baby I have.”
-
-“Well, I must get at my business,” said the visitor. “I came this
-morning, not only to say good-bye, but to let you nice people be the
-first to know something concerning our friend Hugh.”
-
-Millicent’s collection of knives hit the tin pan and clattered to the
-floor. The pan so nearly fell after it that Ogden, springing forward,
-caught it just in time. The girl’s hands trembled as she grasped it, and
-murmured some inarticulate thanks.
-
-“Ah, many a true word spoken in jest,” said the Colonel. “That is why
-the lovely pianist is leaving Miss Frink’s; but conventionality can be
-carried too far, I think.”
-
-John Ogden was busy restoring Millicent’s goods, wares, and chattels to
-her lap, and he camouflaged her tremor by laughing allusion to Uncle
-Remus, and Brer Rabbit’s clatter with his seben tin plates, and seben tin
-cups.
-
-“No, nothing of that kind, Colonel Duane,” he said as he took his chair
-again. “This is a story that I will make brief. Long ago there was a feud
-in Miss Frink’s small family.”
-
-Millicent tried to moisten her dry lips, and ceased attempting to use the
-knife which seemed determined to beat a rat-a-plan against the side of
-the pan.
-
-“She had a nephew, Philip Sinclair, whom she loved; but his opposition to
-her plans for him angered her to such a degree that it made a complete
-break. She never met his wife or children, and refused to know them. I
-was a friend of that family, and Hugh was one of the children. When he
-returned from the war, I hunted him up.”
-
-Ogden glanced at Millicent. She was leaning back in her chair, her lips
-parted, her face very pale, and her eyes full upon him. He looked back at
-once to Colonel Duane, who was giving him similar fixed attention.
-
-“When I met Hugh, whom I had last seen as a child, you can understand
-what an impression he made on me, and how I thought of his lonely
-great-aunt whom I had come to know well in the way of business. Hugh was
-alone, and drifting, like so many of the returned boys, and a scheme
-came into my head which I suggested to him. It was to come here with a
-letter of introduction from me, and, using only his first two names,
-Hugh Stanwood, apply to Miss Frink for a job in Ross Graham Company.
-I knew there was no hope of her receiving him if she knew he was the
-son of the man who had so bitterly disappointed and offended her, and
-I trusted to his winning her esteem before the truth came out. I had
-a lot of difficulty in getting Hugh’s consent to this, but at last I
-succeeded. I fitted him out for the experiment, which, of course, put
-him under some obligation to me: an obligation which was my weapon to
-hold him to our compact. He has had times of hating me, because Hugh is
-essentially honest; and the remarkable coincidence which threw him into
-his aunt’s house as a guest, instead of allowing him to be an employe in
-her store, gave him many a weary hour of thought which he used mostly
-for condemnation of me and himself. I came on as soon as I learned of
-his illness, and found that Miss Frink had become very fond of the boy.
-When she at last experienced the shock of discovering who he was, she
-suspected me at once as being the instigator of the plan, and for a
-time she was torn: undecided as to whether I should be cannonaded or
-canonized. I judge she has decided on the latter course, for this morning
-she called me her benefactor.”
-
-Ogden paused.
-
-“Extraordinary!” said Colonel Duane. “I’ll warrant the old lady is happy.”
-
-Millicent said nothing; just gazed.
-
-“My reason for coming to tell you this”—Ogden addressed Millicent
-now—“is that, as the affair is known and discussed, Hugh is going to be
-misunderstood and condemned. Thoroughly disagreeable things are going to
-be said about him. He is going to be called a fortune-hunter.”
-
-“He was, wasn’t he?” broke in Millicent suddenly.
-
-“I was. It was I. Please remember that. I exacted from him at the time a
-promise that he would not reveal their relationship to Miss Frink until I
-gave him permission; so, chafe as he might and did, he kept that promise.
-He’s a fine youngster; and to my relief and pleasure his aunt realizes
-it, and they understand each other.”
-
-Colonel Duane nodded and smiled. “A story that ends well. Eh, Milly?”
-
-She assented with another of the fleeting smiles. This change in Hugh’s
-fortunes put him still farther away. No one could tell to what lengths
-Miss Frink’s pride and joy would go, and what advantages now awaited him.
-
-“What did you say Hugh’s name is?” asked the Colonel.
-
-“Sinclair. Hugh Stanwood Sinclair, and one of the finest,” returned
-Ogden. “I hope I have set him right in your eyes and that you will defend
-him as occasion arises.”
-
-“We’re fond of Hugh,” returned the old gentleman quietly, “and I don’t
-think you need dread unkind comments on him. You know the way of the
-world, and Miss Frink’s handsome heir is going to be _persona grata_ to
-everybody, except, perhaps”—Colonel Duane laughed—“Leonard Grimshaw.”
-
-Ogden smiled. “The nephew was introduced to him this morning at
-breakfast; and, except for a look which endangered the sweetness of the
-cream, he took it very calmly.”
-
-After the caller had departed, Colonel Duane came back to his chair.
-
-“Well, well,” he said. “So the hero wasn’t called Prince Charming for
-nothing, was he? A story that ends well. Eh, Milly? He’ll grace the
-position, eh? I like the idea. Indeed, I do. Isn’t it fine?”
-
-And Millicent said it was, and gathered up her paraphernalia and went
-into the house.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII
-
-ADJUSTMENTS
-
-
-As soon as she had parted from John Ogden, Miss Frink went to her study.
-Her secretary was in his place. Could this possibly be the world of the
-barren yesterdays? The same world in which she and Leonard Grimshaw had
-sat at their adjoining desks in this room and opened mail, dictated
-letters, and considered investments, for so many years? Her welling sense
-of gratitude gave her a novel attitude of sympathetic comprehension. If
-her secretary, so long the sole partner and confidant of her days, were
-suffering now from being to a degree usurped, it would not be surprising.
-She felt a sort of yearning toward him.
-
-He rose at her entrance, grave and businesslike as usual. She took her
-customary place beside him, and he seated himself, drawing toward him the
-morning’s mail.
-
-“Never mind that now, Grim. We will attend to it this afternoon, if I can
-keep awake.” She gave a little laugh.
-
-He glanced around at her. Miss Frink, flushed and laughing, unmindful of
-the mail! From bad to worse!
-
-“The gayety of last evening too much for you?” he responded, with a
-gravity so portentous as to be a rebuke.
-
-“I suppose so. Say, Grim, how did Goldstein get in here?”
-
-“I asked him. I knew your desire not to have anybody overlooked.”
-
-“But we have never had any contact with him.”
-
-Grimshaw cleared his throat, and drew forward a bunch of pencils and put
-them back again.
-
-“He is one of our stirring citizens,” he said.
-
-“I know he stirs me,” remarked Miss Frink.
-
-“He enjoyed the evening greatly,” declared Grimshaw.
-
-“All right; but, if he ever comes to make his party call, remember he is
-your guest.”
-
-“Very well, Miss Frink.”
-
-“Now, my dear boy,” she went on, and she laid a hand on her secretary’s
-arm. He regarded it under dropped lids. “I feel I want to say a few
-things to you in this great change that has come into my life.”
-
-“I have anticipated it,” he returned. “You wish to dispense with my
-services?”
-
-Miss Frink withdrew her hand. “What could put such a wild idea into your
-head, Grim? So far from dispensing with you, I feel it an occasion to
-speak of my appreciation of your faithful service. In the great joy that
-has come to me I long to give happiness. If it pleases you to know that
-your efficient work is not taken for granted, but that it is given its
-full value, I want you to realize that I thank you.” She paused and the
-secretary bowed silently.
-
-“In the changes that will result from the discovery of my nephew, I want
-you to know also that none will affect you. You are mentioned in my will,
-and nothing regarding you in that will be changed.”
-
-Grimshaw did not alter his position, but some pulse leaped to his throat.
-It was not a leap of gladness. If that were the case, then his employer’s
-plans for him had fallen below expectations.
-
-“In short,” said Miss Frink, “since this great blessing that has come to
-me should make me a better woman, I hope to be a better friend to you and
-to all.” As her companion did not break the pause that followed this, she
-added: “I hope you don’t begrudge it to me, Grim?”
-
-“By no means, Miss Frink,” he responded, without looking up. “Pardon me
-for a moment, I am much moved.”
-
-Miss Frink was touched. “The good boy!” she thought. “Probably constant
-contact with me has made it impossible for him to express any feeling
-that does not regard dollars and cents.”
-
-“My narrow life could not fail to narrow you,” she said humbly. “I hope
-we may both expand after this.”
-
-Neither spoke for a minute. Grimshaw continued to look down, one hand
-toying with a paper-cutter.
-
-At last she spoke: “I told Adèle you would take her over to Mrs. Cooper’s
-as soon as she was ready.”
-
-“I shall be glad to,” he returned. “Adèle made a great impression last
-night.”
-
-“Indeed, she did. There is no doubt that she can teach here if she wishes
-to. I have just been saying to her that I hope, when the subject comes
-up, she will aid in letting it be known what a passive part Hugh played
-in the camouflaged way he came to Farrandale. Mr. Ogden was the motive
-power of it all, and you must help, too, Grim, in giving the right
-impression.”
-
-The secretary turned to her with a strange smile. “Do you think that your
-nephew and heir will need any apologies?” he asked slowly. Miss Frink
-felt uncomfortably the inimical attitude back of the words. “If he does,
-he will never know it, and you will never know it. That is the advantage
-of being the Queen of Farrandale.”
-
-“The boy is jealous!” she thought.
-
-“I hope,” he continued, “that your absorption is not so great that you
-cannot use your influence to help Adèle, even though she is leaving your
-house.”
-
-Miss Frink felt the criticism in this. She was silent for a space.
-
-“Adèle came here camouflaged also, Grim,” she said quietly. “She will
-tell you about it.”
-
-The secretary flashed a quick look around at her. “Perfectly innocent in
-one case, I suppose,” he said, “and unpardonable in the other.”
-
-Miss Frink was too deeply troubled about Adèle’s future in Farrandale to
-be ruffled by this. “It was her own idea,” she said. “That makes some
-difference. I am glad she has a friend in a truly upright man like you,
-Grim. Help her to be a good woman.”
-
-The secretary frowned in surprise at the earnestness of this appeal;
-but, before he could speak, Adèle entered the room dressed for driving,
-smiling, and with head held high.
-
-Her departure with Grimshaw a few minutes later was decorous. Miss Frink
-was at the door.
-
-“Hugh will want to say good-bye to you,” she said. “Won’t you call him,
-Grim?”
-
-“Oh, no,” interrupted Adèle. “He is at his studies. Don’t disturb him. We
-shall always be meeting.”
-
-Miss Frink stood on the veranda and watched the motor drive away. She
-drew a long breath of the sweet air. Whatever should come now, Adèle was
-gone from the house. The relief of it!
-
-In the motor, the two, sitting side by side, exchanged a mutual regard.
-
-“It was very, very sweet of you to write me that note,” said Grimshaw.
-
-“I thought it would help.”
-
-“There has been some trouble between you and Miss Frink,” he pursued.
-
-Adèle lifted her eyebrows and gave a little laugh. “Yes. Mr. Ogden kindly
-tipped her off that I was merely the step-grandchild of her beloved chum.”
-
-“Step-grandchild?” repeated Grimshaw.
-
-“Yes. Complicated, isn’t it?—and not worth while trying to understand. It
-served her as well as anything else as an excuse to get rid of me.”
-
-Grimshaw frowned. He was angry with his employer for sending this lovely
-creature away from the luxurious home, the Steinway grand, and himself;
-but Miss Frink’s novel gentleness in their interview chained his always
-cautious tongue; then, if Adèle had really deliberately misrepresented
-facts, he knew how that must have offended Miss Frink’s rigorous
-principles.
-
-“You will find the change to the simplicity of the Cooper home rather
-hard, Adèle.”
-
-“No harder than your discovery that henceforward you are second-best in
-your home,” she returned; but her voice was sympathetic, even tender.
-“Perhaps you will have to go away.”
-
-“No; she doesn’t want me to leave,” he answered dispiritedly. He turned
-again suddenly to his companion: “You must tell me, Adèle, how I can help
-you. How about this teaching business?”
-
-She smiled at him, her sweetest. “Leonard, can you see me trudging around
-in all weathers and teaching youngsters how to play scales?”
-
-He shook his head.
-
-“Hu—somebody said it was like harnessing a blooded horse to a coal wagon
-to make me teach.”
-
-Color rushed to Grimshaw’s face. “Adèle, it can’t be! You know I—”
-
-She interrupted him with a laugh. “Look out! You nearly ran into that
-Mr. and Mrs. Rube in their light wagon. Now, I’ll talk to the motor man
-if he doesn’t look at me.” Grimshaw kept eyes ahead, and she continued.
-“I never had the dimmest idea of teaching. I knew something would turn
-up, and it has. Did you notice Mr. Goldstein draw me aside for a few
-minutes last night?”
-
-“Yes; confound his impudence, keeping everybody else waiting.”
-
-“Not at all. Mr. Goldstein is a highly important friend. He wants me to
-take charge of the music at the Koh-i-noor. He’s mad about the new organ,
-and he says I’m just the person they have been looking for.”
-
-“Can you play the organ?”
-
-“Oh, yes, I’ve played one; and I have three weeks before they open. He
-wants to add an orchestra later, and he wants me to take full charge of
-the musical end of the theater.”
-
-“Pretty fine—but Miss Frink—”
-
-“Who is Miss Frink?” asked Adèle saucily. “Leonard”—she leaned toward
-him, and her pressure thrilled him—“you and I have our own lives to live.”
-
-“That arrangement would make you very independent, Adèle.”
-
-“I can never be independent of the people I’m fond of,” she answered
-softly, and withdrew from him.
-
-“Strange that Goldstein should be the one to approach you just now. I
-have had some business dealings with him, and he is all right; he has
-big, generous ideas. There is nothing small about Goldstein. He is after
-me now to put through a deal for him, but I don’t know. He makes it very
-tempting for me, but I’m afraid Miss Frink—”
-
-“Oh, don’t be tied to her apron-string. What is the deal?”
-
-“Well, then, mum’s the word,” said Grimshaw, smiling.
-
-“Oh, yes, mum as an oyster,” she returned.
-
-“He wants to buy that place where the Duanes live.”
-
-Adèle’s heart leaped. “What does he want of that little shanty?”
-
-“He wants to tear it down and put up a flat building to cover the whole
-lot.”
-
-“Splendid idea,” responded Adèle. “It’s high time Farrandale had
-something handsome in the way of an apartment building, and Mr. Goldstein
-would do something with class.”
-
-“But Colonel Duane’s garden. He is wrapped up in the place, and they
-haven’t any money for another. It just happened that the cottage fitted
-their needs and was cheap.”
-
-Color brightened Adèle’s pale face. Lady Luck was coming her way. To get
-rid of Millicent Duane was a rosier prospect than even the music at the
-Koh-i-noor.
-
-“They could find a place in the country,” she said. “It would be
-something new if Miss Frink wanted to throw over such a chance to turn a
-few honest thousands. You ought not to let her. You ought to look after
-her better than that.”
-
-“I told Goldstein that there was a probability that sentiment might enter
-into this matter; and he has offered to make it very much worth my while
-to put the sale through. It is the biggest temptation I ever received.”
-The speaker’s eyes shone.
-
-“I’ll give you another,” said Adèle, leaning toward him again. “If you
-will put through the sale of the Duane place, I will—forget that there is
-another man in the world but you.”
-
-Grimshaw flushed, and the road being clear just then, he met her soft
-gaze.
-
-“Is that a promise, Adèle?” he asked.
-
-“A solemn promise,” she answered.
-
- * * * * *
-
-John Ogden returned to his hostess in time for luncheon. Leonard
-Grimshaw had remained for lunch at his cousin’s, for Adèle wanted him to
-go with her afterward to see Mr. Goldstein and talk over her contract. So
-it was that the three who felt very close to one another to-day sat at
-the table alone. Stebbins was dismissed, to his regret, for he had found
-breakfast very interesting and he wished to continue gathering data.
-
-Ogden noted that the flush on Miss Frink’s cheeks, and Hugh’s subdued
-manner, persisted.
-
-“I had a delightful call this morning,” he said in his usual cheerful
-tone. “I dropped my little bomb on the Duanes’ piazza with great effect.”
-
-Hugh glanced up at him sharply.
-
-“I do like those people. They have a distinctly pleasant atmosphere.
-Colonel Duane, always looking like somebody in particular, and so
-hospitable, and Miss Millicent more like a rosebud than ever this morning
-in a pink apron, delving in a big tin pan.”
-
-“He went to tell them what a happy woman I am,” explained Miss Frink,
-looking across at Hugh. He met her eyes, and smiled acknowledgment, the
-more gently for the mutiny within. At last he was honest, but he was more
-than ever conspicuous and discussed. He hated it. His ears burned now.
-
-“I suppose they nearly fainted,” he remarked. “I’m sure you told them
-that I was a puppet and you pulled the wires.”
-
-“Don’t put it that way, Hugh,” pleaded Miss Frink.
-
-“I can’t help it, Aunt Susanna! It’s a mess!”
-
-“Don’t say so, dear boy.” Hugh met her bright, speaking eyes. “I have
-always been a successful woman, that’s what the world calls it; but I
-never was a happy one until last night.”
-
-“I’m not much to make you happy,” said the boy restively. “Just a pawn in
-a game, not a penny in the world of my own, in debt to Ogden, and a sneak
-in the eyes of your town—”
-
-“Oh, my boy! Oh, Hugh!” There was such pain and longing in Miss Frink’s
-tone that it checked him. Beside all that he expressed was the constant
-irritation and humiliation that remained from the scene with Adèle.
-
-“Hugh, you told me last night that you—” Miss Frink stopped because
-something rose in her throat. No one broke the silence. “I know how your
-young pride is hurt,” she went on at last, “but it will be restored.”
-
-“Colonel Duane said,” put in Ogden, “that there would be very little
-talk: that wherever you went, Miss Frink’s nephew would be always
-welcome.”
-
-“That is true,” she agreed; “and, Hugh, if you can be so unselfish, don’t
-spoil this great joy of mine—a child belonging to me; but take it as if
-we had known all along that you were mine. In perfect frankness let me do
-for you what it is my right to do. In the presence of Mr. Ogden, who has
-accomplished such wonders for us, let me say that he and I shall together
-settle such of our obligation to him as can be paid, and then you, Hugh,
-until you are admitted to the bar, will accept from me your education,
-and your allowance, without a thought of dependence—”
-
-Hugh regarded the earnest speaker with a mixture of resistance and
-appreciation.
-
-“Ross Graham Company—” he began—
-
-“Can take care of itself,” said Miss Frink with a return of her brisk,
-curt manner. “You can always get competent managers.” John Ogden’s mind
-took a leap back to the day when he told Hugh that the department store
-might belong to him. “Now I know,” went on Miss Frink, “that you’re a
-bit afraid of your old aunt, a little afraid that in my pride I may want
-to put you into a velvet suit and lace collar à la Fauntleroy, or its
-equivalent; but you needn’t be afraid. I haven’t lived seventy-two years
-for nothing, and I didn’t make a mess of my treatment of your father for
-nothing. Neither am I in my second childhood. I have all my faculties,
-and, with so much now to live for, I expect to keep them until I’m one
-hundred. I don’t want to make an idol of you. I want you to be a man
-among men, and stand on your own feet; but it’s my right to give you a
-start, and I like to believe that you have enough common sense to accept
-it in the spirit in which it is offered, without any fuss or foolish
-hair-splitting.”
-
-Hugh looked around at Ogden, who nodded at him.
-
-“Put that in your pipe and smoke it,” remarked Ogden.
-
-Hugh, pushing back his chair, rose and came around to Miss Frink.
-
-“There’s only one answer a fellow can make to all that, Aunt Susanna,” he
-said, and, stooping, he kissed her.
-
-“Now, then,” she, too, rose, “please go on the veranda and watch for
-Millicent. I want to see Mr. Ogden a few minutes in the study, and I’ll
-let her know when I’m ready for her.”
-
-Hugh wandered through the hall, pausing between the portières of the
-drawing-room and looking at the piano. Was it only last evening that Ally
-had done her brilliant work? He shook his head, went out to the piazza,
-and started to take the swinging seat, but changed his mind, and,
-throwing himself on a wicker divan, lighted a cigarette. He was conscious
-of a deep soreness in the thought of Adèle. What a series of foolish
-moves her life had been! He shrank in distaste from it all.
-
-What a different specimen of girlhood was Millicent Duane! Of course,
-she was nothing but a child, with her ready tears and blushes; still,
-it was better to be crude, and sweet, and pure, than sophisticated and
-audacious. He wished he could have seen her face when Ogden told them his
-news. A certain looking up to himself which the girl had evinced in their
-daily meetings, he suddenly found was valuable to him. Colonel Duane
-had said Miss Frink’s nephew was always sure of a welcome. He knew what
-that meant, and the implication again stirred his rebellion. He would
-know when he saw Millicent to-day if he had much to live down in her
-transparent soul.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII
-
-MILLICENT
-
-
-Very soon Millicent’s familiar figure appeared at the iron gate. Before
-she started from home she had talked with her grandfather.
-
-“You’re sending a message to Hugh by me that it will be more convenient
-for you to see him in the morning after this,” she said.
-
-“But it wouldn’t.” Colonel Duane looked surprised.
-
-“Yes, it will be,” returned Millicent firmly.
-
-The old gentleman blinked. “What’s this? Tired of the walks over here
-together?”
-
-“Never mind details, dear.”
-
-“You’re a funny child, Milly. Hugh will feel something unfriendly in the
-change, just at the present time.”
-
-Millicent seized her grandfather’s arm. “Dearest, everything wonderful is
-going to come to Hugh, now,” she said earnestly, “and I would like to be
-out of it. I don’t want to hear him talk about it. Hugh Sinclair isn’t
-Hugh Stanwood. He won’t be anything to us; not even a friend except at
-long intervals and—can’t you understand? I’d rather be the one to do the
-dropping.”
-
-She released him suddenly and ran out of the house. Her grandfather stood
-in the same spot for some minutes, considering.
-
-“It’s the most natural thing in the world,” he said to himself at last.
-“I don’t see how she could help it; but Milly has plenty of spirit, and
-I’ll take the hint till he goes away. Of course, he’ll be going away to
-law school.”
-
-Now, as Millicent entered Miss Frink’s grounds and discerned Hugh on the
-porch, she saw him rise and throw away his cigarette. He came down the
-steps to meet her, looking unusually grave. His eyes studied her as if he
-must know her attitude before she spoke. She put her hand in the one he
-offered.
-
-“How now that the cat is out of the bag?” he asked.
-
-“What difference can it make to me?” she returned with a coolness that
-did not satisfy him.
-
-“I’m glad if it doesn’t make any. I thought perhaps there wouldn’t be any
-route sufficiently roundabout for you to take me home this afternoon.”
-
-His gaze continued to study her as they ascended the steps.
-
-“Oh, I was to tell you that Grandpa can’t have you to-day. He will be
-glad to see you to-morrow morning if you can come—and always in the
-morning hereafter.”
-
-Hugh nodded. Millicent started to go into the house.
-
-“Sit down a few minutes,” he said. “Aunt Susanna and Mr. Ogden are busy
-in the study. He is leaving to-night. She said she would call you as soon
-as she was ready.”
-
-Millicent seated herself in the swinging couch and Hugh promptly took the
-place beside her.
-
-“So our walks are over, are they?” he asked, still grave.
-
-“Yes. Life is just like chapters in a story, isn’t it?” she replied
-hurriedly. “One closes and another begins. This swing makes me think of
-Mrs. Lumbard. Grandpa is perfectly wild about her ever since last night.
-Mr. Ogden said she was going to live at the Coopers’, and on my way
-over here I met a friend who said he had heard that the manager of the
-Koh-i-noor is going to try to get her to provide their music.”
-
-Hugh nodded. “That would solve a problem for her,” he said.
-
-There was nothing natural about Millicent to-day, and he had seen her
-shrink when he took the place beside her in the swing.
-
-She went on: “Something big like that would seem more fitted to Mrs.
-Lumbard than teaching. I wonder if she will take the position. You’ll
-miss her here, won’t you?”
-
-“Yes, another of those chapters that close while another begins. If only
-the story grows more interesting as life goes on.”
-
-“I’m sure it will for you.” That was too personal. She hurried headlong.
-“And I think it does for all of us. You talked to that cute girl Damaris
-Cooper last night. She will be delirious with Mrs. Lumbard living there,
-and playing at the Koh-i-noor. Who said Farrandale was dull!” Millicent
-laughed.
-
-Hugh had not smiled since she came, and she was so uncomfortable under
-his questioning eyes that she welcomed the opening of the door and the
-appearance of John Ogden who took in the deceptively intimate appearance
-of the swing.
-
-“Your sleepy lady awaits you, Miss Duane,” he announced, “and you
-certainly will do a missionary act to make her rest. She needs it.”
-Millicent sprang up. “So I’ll say good-bye once more.” He held out his
-hand, and the girl gave him hers.
-
-“Farrandale will be very glad to see you back some day, Mr. Ogden.” She
-vanished into the house.
-
-“It’s just as I expected,” said Hugh gloomily. “Millicent is entirely
-changed, and Colonel Duane can see me only in the mornings after this.
-It’s significant of the whole spirit that I shall have to meet.”
-
-John Ogden viewed the downcast gaze.
-
-“You crazy—” he began—“I’ll say I hate to leave you. You’ll be deserting
-Miss Frink between two days, as likely as not.”
-
-“No, I won’t,” returned Hugh decidedly. “I’ve made up my mind to stay
-with her.”
-
-“Well, I’m glad to hear that.”
-
-“But it makes me—if Millicent had cried or done anything natural, I could
-stand it; or if she would say right out that she is disgusted, I could
-stand it; but to have her feel that it is too bad to talk about; that
-gets me because what she feels is what everybody worth caring about will
-feel.”
-
-John Ogden regarded the boy as he sat there in the swing, dejected, and
-his own lips twitched.
-
-Hugh looked up suddenly. “Don’t you think she’s a fine girl, Ogden?”
-
-“I do. Pure as a drop of dew; fine as a rose-leaf, softly iridescent as a
-bird’s wing, transparent as crystal—”
-
-Hugh frowned in displeased surprise.
-
-“I wish you could do anything but chaff,” he said.
-
-“I’m not chaffing,” replied Ogden; “but I must modify that a little, I
-should have said, _sometimes_ as transparent as crystal.”
-
-“Are you in love with her?” blurted out Hugh.
-
-“Perhaps I should be if I hadn’t known Carol. The man that she loves will
-be in luck, for though tender as a flower she’s as stanch as an oak tree.”
-
-“You should write poetry,” said Hugh dryly. “After all that, you can’t
-blame me for preferring that that sort of person should approve of me.”
-
-Ogden, sitting in a hammock and swinging his foot, regarded the other
-quizzically for a silent moment.
-
-“Your lions in the way are going to turn into kittens, boy,” he said at
-last. “And if they didn’t, isn’t it worth something to have transformed
-the life of another human as you have Miss Frink’s? Isn’t it worth
-meeting with some annoyance?”
-
-Hugh shrugged his shoulders in silence.
-
-When Millicent entered her employer’s room, the lady was not lying down
-as usual. She met the girl with a sort of smiling exaltation.
-
-“Do I look any different to-day?” she asked.
-
-“You do look different. You have such pink cheeks. I suppose you are
-still excited from last night.”
-
-“Perhaps so.” As she spoke, Miss Frink drew the girl down beside her on
-the divan and looked blissfully into her face. “What a comment it is on
-me, Millicent, that you are the only woman friend I have to pour out to
-at a time like this—and you not a woman yet, just a little girl who can’t
-appreciate happiness, because you’ve never had anything else.”
-
-“Oh, I have, Miss Frink, I’ve been terribly unhappy—is it because you’re
-happy that you look so rosy?” Millicent’s heart beat under the full,
-bright gaze bent upon her.
-
-“Yes, all at once. The last time you saw me I was nobody. I was grubbing
-along the way I have all my life, nobody caring about me except to get
-the better of me in a business deal, and now to-day—do you wonder my
-cheeks are pink? I’m a grandmother, Millicent.”
-
-“You are!” The girl’s lips were parted.
-
-“You know it’s even nicer than being a mother. Everybody knows that
-grandmothers have the best of it. Mr. Ogden has told you that Hugh
-belongs to me, and at midnight last night we, Hugh and I, were alone
-together, and—and we talked of it. He seemed to be glad. He kissed me
-like a real grandchild. Millicent, it seemed too wonderful for words that
-I should be really happy! Those young arms around me made me feel richer
-than—doubling my money on a corner lot.”
-
-Millicent began to swallow fast.
-
-“I’m so—so gl-glad,” she said. “I’ll try—not to cry.”
-
-“You’re very sweet to care, child. You and Hugh are so well acquainted I
-feel you will always take an interest.”
-
-“It was wonderful!” said Millicent. The eagerness in the bright eyes
-impelled her on. “Hugh is—my grandfather thinks he is an unusual fellow.
-He has always seemed so frank, and kind, and simple. He takes an interest
-in Grandpa’s garden and is so nice about it. He often says he wishes he
-owned a little place just like ours.”
-
-“Oh, he does, does he?” returned Miss Frink dryly. “Well, you’re ahead of
-me. I have never heard him express a wish for anything.”
-
-“Now, Miss Frink, you must lie down,” said the girl. “Mr. Ogden told
-me to be sure to make you rest.” She arranged the pillows just as her
-employer liked them, persuaded her to change her dress for a negligée,
-and soon the happy woman was settled on the couch.
-
-“You’ll guarantee I won’t wake up and find it all a dream?”
-
-“I promise it,” she said.
-
-Hugh was still on the piazza and alone when she went out. He rose at
-sight of her. She had never seen him look so serious. He did not advance,
-just looked at her in silence. She went to him, her hands outstretched.
-
-“I’ve been talking with her,” she said. Her own repressed feelings, the
-remembrance of Miss Frink’s exaltation, and the wonder of Hugh, himself,
-overcame her. She could not speak; but her smile and her suddenly flooded
-eyes made his gravity break into sunshine.
-
-“It’s all right, then, is it, Millicent?” he asked eagerly.
-
-She tried to pull a hand away to get her handkerchief, but he held it
-fast and, seeing the corner of linen protruding from the low neck of her
-dress, he took it out and dried her eyes himself.
-
-“I’m not going to cry—much,” she said, smiling, “but she is so happy.”
-
-“I’m a lucky dog, Millicent—if you think I am,” he answered. “It hasn’t
-been easy.” His eyes clouded.
-
-“I know it, Hugh. I can see it all, now.”
-
-“And I mustn’t walk home with you?”
-
-She hesitated. “I suppose you shouldn’t leave Mr. Ogden alone. He goes
-so soon and Miss Frink is asleep.”
-
-Hugh smiled down at her. She wished he wouldn’t. She could hardly bear
-it. “A good excuse for you not to have to try to hide me,” he returned.
-
-“No; I shall never wish to hide you again,” she said.
-
-“You think I’m all right, then, eh, Millicent?”
-
-“I know you are,” she answered, and, releasing herself and giving him an
-April smile, she ran down the steps.
-
- * * * * *
-
-It was no small undertaking for Miss Frink, in the days that followed,
-to keep her word about not idolizing her grand-nephew. What she did for
-him she tried to clothe in such a matter-of-fact manner as to disarm him.
-Almost at once invitations began to come to Hugh from the young people
-of Farrandale for tennis parties, dances, picnics, and so on. Miss Frink
-saw that he was declining them all. She went to his room one morning with
-another envelope in her hand.
-
-“This has just come from the Tarrants,” she said, “and I suppose it is
-another invitation. I hope you will accept, Hugh, for they are among our
-best people.”
-
-“I don’t know much about society, Aunt Susanna. I’d rather keep off the
-grass if you don’t mind.”
-
-“Yes, I do mind,” she answered pleasantly. “People will misunderstand if
-you refuse to mix. They will think that either you don’t know how, or
-else that you feel superior.”
-
-“Both of them correct,” replied Hugh, laughing.
-
-“Neither of them correct,” returned Miss Frink. “The first thing for
-you to do is to get suitable clothes for the different sorts of things.
-Sports clothes, evening duds, and so on.”
-
-“Remember, Aunt Susanna. It was agreed. No Lord Fauntleroy.”
-
-“Exactly,” she returned briskly. “Don’t get a velvet suit. I forbid it;
-but please order the other things at once. Then, if you want to decline
-an invitation, it won’t be because you haven’t the proper things to wear.”
-
-“I didn’t know you were so vain.”
-
-“I am, very. Now here is your bank book.” She laid the little leather
-book on the table. “And here is your check book.” Hugh stepped toward
-her. “Now, not a word,” she warned. “You know that was agreed upon. The
-first of every month I shall deposit your allowance to your account.”
-
-Hugh had reached her now. He put his arm around her and kissed her cheek.
-
-“And this afternoon I want you to go on an errand with me. I’ve waked up
-lately to what a hidebound person I’ve always been: unwilling to move
-with the world. I’ve decided that I want an automobile.”
-
-Hugh raised his eyebrows. “Well, I can’t see Rex and Regina thrown into
-the discard.”
-
-“No, neither can I; but there are times when the convenience of a motor
-cannot be gainsaid. I borrow Leonard’s occasionally, and it is absurd,
-when you come to think of it, to let a foolish prejudice deprive one of a
-convenience. A motor is a great convenience.”
-
-“It can’t be denied,” said Hugh, restraining himself from claiming to
-smell a large and obvious mouse. She was having such a good time.
-
-He hugged her once more, and she left the room as one whom business is
-driving. He looked at the record in his bank book and gave a low whistle.
-
-When the rumor of Adèle’s new position reached Miss Frink, she did not
-have to assume approval in speaking to her secretary about it. The fact
-that the young woman was going to play to the young people of Farrandale
-from a distance, instead of standing toward them in the intimate
-relation of a teacher, was a distinct relief. She still felt that new
-kindness toward Grimshaw which came from the belief that he felt usurped,
-and, perceiving in him a champion of Adèle, she took pains to express
-herself pleasantly, as they sat together at their desks.
-
-“I suppose the Koh-i-noor engagement will be a good arrangement for
-Adèle,” she said. “It comes as a surprise.”
-
-“Yes. I don’t think she is fitted for the drudgery of teaching,” he
-returned.
-
-“No one is who considers it drudgery,” declared Miss Frink. “When is the
-theater to open?”
-
-“A week from to-night.”
-
-“Well, they have secured a real musician.”
-
-“Adèle will be glad to hear that she has your approval,” said Grimshaw.
-He took from his pocket an envelope. “Mr. Goldstein asked me to give you
-these tickets for the opening. He hopes you will honor him with your
-presence.”
-
-Miss Frink took the offered envelope. Across it was written: “For the
-Queen of Farrandale.”
-
-“You know I don’t go to the movies, Grim. Why didn’t you tell him so?”
-
-“Because this is different. He intends to give only artistic
-entertainment. Everybody will go.”
-
-“I—I don’t expect to be in town a week from to-night.”
-
-“Ah? I didn’t know you were planning to leave. Is Mr. Sinclair
-accompanying you?”
-
-The secretary always clung to the formal title.
-
-“No, he isn’t. You and he can divide these tickets and take your best
-girls. Perhaps he will have one by that time.”
-
-She put the envelope back on Grimshaw’s desk.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV
-
-A SHOCK
-
-
-Miss Frink had instinctively felt that during the first weeks of his new
-status in the town Hugh would not wish to be seen driving with her in her
-well-known equipage, and she had desisted from asking him; but to-day he
-was beside her as the handsome bays jingled toward that large salesroom
-where reposed their hitherto unsuccessful rivals.
-
-“Now I have picked out a car,” said Miss Frink as they neared their goal,
-“but I didn’t want to buy it without your approval because, of course, I
-hope you would like to drive me a good deal.”
-
-“I understand,” replied Hugh. “I certainly should like to.”
-
-As they entered the salesroom, a man came forward to welcome them eagerly.
-
-“Mr. Godfrey, this is my nephew, Mr. Sinclair, and I want him to see that
-roadster I was looking at.”
-
-“Yes, Miss Frink, I’ve been watching for you.”
-
-He led the way to where a low, rakish, canary-colored machine shone
-gayly.
-
-Hugh stared at it.
-
-“Is this the one, Aunt Susanna?”
-
-“Yes,” she replied, rather defiantly. “You know I don’t do things by
-halves. If I’m going to have a motor, I want to go the whole figure. I
-told Mr. Godfrey I wanted a snappy, classy car: even if it was extreme:
-even if it was to cars what jazz is to music.”
-
-Hugh looked at the salesman, but no sense of humor could be discerned in
-his earnest countenance. Hugh struggled with his own risibles and also
-with a desire to hug his aunt in public. It seemed the only way to deal
-with her.
-
-“How were you going to get into it, Aunt Susanna?” he asked.
-
-She gazed at the machine, observing for the first time that it had no
-doors.
-
-“I—why—” she began.
-
-“You wouldn’t want to turn a somersault every time you went for an
-outing, would you?”
-
-She looked at him helplessly. “Don’t you like it, Hugh?” she asked
-faintly.
-
-He looked again at the salesman to see if he was human. Apparently the
-depth of Miss Frink’s pocketbook was the only feature of the transaction
-which he was taking in.
-
-“Let’s find something a little less sporty,” he continued. “You’ve a fine
-assortment here.”
-
-“That’s right, Hugh, you choose,” said Miss Frink, her spirits rising,
-“and don’t think too much about me. One that you would like to drive is
-what I want.”
-
-They chose one at last. It was very dark blue, and very shiny, and low
-hung, and very expensive, and it had embryo doors, and could be delivered
-promptly, and Hugh’s eyes shone at the prospect of being its chauffeur.
-Miss Frink was tremulous with happiness at seeing his pleasure, and they
-returned home to dinner, her hand in his.
-
-“I don’t know what to do with you, Aunt Susanna,” he said.
-
-“Now, Hugh, you’re doing me injustice,” she returned firmly. “I do want
-to drive in an auto. I want to progress, and not be a clam. Besides, I’m
-going away, and I thought you could learn all about the machine while I
-am gone.”
-
-“Where are you going?”
-
-“To Waveland Beach. It is only a few hours from here. I guess I’m tired.
-At any rate, I’m not sleeping very well, and I’ll get down there and not
-hear a word about business for a few weeks.”
-
-“I’m sorry you’re not feeling all right. Can’t I do something? Don’t you
-want me to go with you?”
-
-Of course, she did, but she denied it. “No, you stay here and go on with
-Colonel Duane. Shan’t you choose Columbia in the fall? I’ve been writing
-to Carol and telling her we are going to have a full-fledged lawyer of
-our own pretty soon.”
-
-So a few days later Miss Frink departed to her resort, and it fitted in
-so well with Leonard Grimshaw’s plans that she should go away, that he
-was quite affable about the new automobile, and in his first tête-à-tête
-dinner with Hugh was less taciturn than usual.
-
-He talked of the cleverness with which Adèle handled the Koh-i-noor
-organ. He gave him the tickets for the opening of the Cinema Palace, and
-Hugh took Millicent and her grandfather and Damaris Cooper, and they had
-a delightful party. They talked with Adèle afterward. She was in the
-highest spirits, and Leonard Grimshaw stood beside her with an air of
-proprietorship which Hugh discerned with satisfaction.
-
-The secretary had not yet qualified for that reward of hers, promised
-when he should have evicted the Duanes; and seeing Millicent with Hugh
-to-night created in Adèle a tigerish eagerness for its fulfillment.
-
-“Have patience,” Leonard told her when the others had gone. “Everything
-is working toward the desired end; but why are you so interested?” he
-added.
-
-“Can you ask?” she returned with one of the looks he dreamed about. “Is
-it nothing to—to us that Goldstein wishes to be so generous?”
-
-Grimshaw smiled. “We may be living in that apartment house ourselves,
-Adèle. Who knows?”
-
-One afternoon there appeared in Colonel Duane’s garden an alien growth
-in the shape of the manager of the Koh-i-noor. The owner saw him walking
-along the garden paths and in surprise went out to meet him.
-
-Mr. Goldstein held out his hand. “It looks like intrusion, I’m sure,
-Colonel Duane, but you excuse me if I look this ground over; I have a
-strong personal interest.”
-
-Colonel Duane mechanically shook hands.
-
-“Yes; I am about to buy this property.” The visitor smiled into the old
-gentleman’s startled face.
-
-“I’ve heard nothing of this,” said the Colonel, and his voice was not
-steady. “Miss Frink is away.”
-
-“Ah, who so progressive as Miss Frink!” said Goldstein devoutly. “This
-property is too valuable for its present use. I will put an apartment
-building here that you will be proud to live in—proud, Colonel Duane.”
-
-“I—I can’t realize that what you say is true.”
-
-“Oh, there is nothing to worry you,” said Goldstein soothingly. “You will
-not be required to leave before the autumn. I’m sure we would not do
-anything to disturb or annoy so respected a citizen.” The speaker’s eyes
-wandered afield. “I wanted to see what the chances would be of retaining
-that old elm in the corner there. You know, Colonel Duane, to me a fine
-tree is an asset. There is something money cannot buy. It is worth a
-sacrifice to retain it. It is a thing that the years only can produce. It
-is—” He turned to face his companion, but the old gentleman had gone.
-
-Colonel Duane entered the room where his granddaughter was, and Millicent
-started up in alarm.
-
-“What is it Grandpa? Are you ill?”
-
-“I’ve had a shock, Milly. Miss Frink is going to sell our place.”
-
-“Oh, I can’t believe it! Not without any warning.”
-
-“Mr. Goldstein, of the Koh-i-noor, is going to buy it. He is out there
-now, looking the ground over.”
-
-Millicent ran to the window. She could see the purchaser, his hands
-folded behind him looking up at the fine old tree. She turned back to her
-grandfather with eyes that flashed. Her soft lips set in a hard line.
-
-“How can she do it with all her money! How can she take your garden away,
-Grandpa?”
-
-“He is going to put up a flat building.” Colonel Duane sank into a chair.
-“We can’t expect the world to stand still for us, Milly. Business is
-business. Mr. Goldstein says this land is too valuable to be left for an
-old man to go puttering about in.” He smiled pitifully.
-
-“That is why she has gone away,” said Millicent acutely. “She was ashamed
-to do this to you, Grandpa.”
-
-“Being ashamed is not in Miss Frink’s line,” he answered, and his pale,
-still face gave the girl the heartache. “It is the habit of her life to
-take advantage of business opportunities. Here came along a man with the
-money, and the plan. I suppose it was the natural move for her to make.”
-
-“But she knows you, Grandpa. She knows what it will mean to you. I tell
-you she went away because she was ashamed to own it. There he goes, the
-mean thing.” Millicent watched the future owner’s departure up the
-street, and at once from the other direction appeared Hugh Sinclair
-driving the very new, very blue, very shiny roadster.
-
-“Oh, there is Hugh!” she exclaimed, her hands clasping together. “He has
-come to take me driving, Grandpa. Your news put it out of my head.”
-
-The horn of the motor sounded, and the girl waved her hand toward Hugh’s
-blowing hair.
-
-“Now be very careful, Milly,” said Colonel Duane. “You’re excited, and
-you’re liable to say the wrong thing to Hugh. This property is Miss
-Frink’s, and she has a right to do just what she pleases with it. Don’t
-make Hugh unhappy over a matter he can’t do anything about.”
-
-The girl caught the speaker in her strong young arms and kissed him.
-
-“Promise me, Milly.”
-
-“Yes, dear, yes,” she said breathlessly, and ran out to the waiting motor.
-
-“My word, you’re all lit up, Millicent,” laughed Hugh at sight of her
-sparkling eyes. “You must like this little gas buggy as much as I do.”
-
-They were off before she answered. “Yes, I love it; but I wanted, I
-needed, so much to see you, Hugh.”
-
-“I like that all right. What do you want of little Johnny-on-the-spot?”
-
-“Just to talk to you. Of course I know you can’t do anything, and Grandpa
-told me to be very careful and not make you unhappy—”
-
-“It can’t be done, Millicent. An afternoon like this, and the car, and
-you. What’s going to make me unhappy?”
-
-“Perhaps it won’t, but—we’re going to lose our home, and Grandpa’s
-garden.”
-
-Hugh met her bright, dry eyes. Tears wouldn’t do this subject justice.
-
-“How are you going to lose it?”
-
-“Miss Frink is selling it to Mr. Goldstein. He has just been in the
-garden looking it over. He told Grandpa, and when Grandpa came in to me
-he looked old. I never saw Grandpa look old before.”
-
-“There must be some mistake.”
-
-“No. Mr. Goldstein is going to put up a flat building.”
-
-Hugh’s brow was puckered in a puzzled frown. “Aunt Susanna would have
-spoken of it to me.”
-
-“Oh, think what a wonderful business woman she is. She wouldn’t talk of
-her business deals to any one, would she?”
-
-“Perhaps not,” returned Hugh.
-
-“But Miss Frink likes Grandpa. I believe she would be sorry for us, and
-I think, Hugh, it really makes me more sure that she is selling us out,
-that she has gone away.”
-
-“Oh, pshaw, Millicent. Aunt Susanna isn’t any coward.”
-
-“No,” agreed the girl ruefully, “the Queen of Farrandale doesn’t have to
-be; but she seemed to like us, and I feel she would be sorry and perhaps
-would rather be away.”
-
-“My opinion is that Goldstein was talking through his hat. He probably
-wants the place—but so do I.” Hugh turned with the Prince Charming smile
-to his companion. “Not for his purpose, though. I want it always to stay
-full of apple blossoms and nice girls in blue gowns.”
-
-“Oh, Hugh, it’s like a bad dream.”
-
-“Let us pretend it is a nightmare until I see Grimshaw at dinner. He will
-know the inside facts, and I will run over this evening and tell you all
-about it.”
-
-There had been a humorous side, to Hugh, to the tête-à-tête meals he and
-the secretary had been obliged to take in Miss Frink’s absence. They
-seldom met at breakfast or luncheon, but at the formally correct dinners
-Hugh comported himself with care not to be irritating.
-
-To-night he approached the subject on his mind with circumspection.
-
-“I heard to-day that Mr. Goldstein wants to purchase the Duane place,” he
-said.
-
-Grimshaw nodded. “Yes; it will be a very advantageous move for Miss
-Frink. The ground is too central to be used any longer in the present
-fashion.”
-
-“You have charge of the transaction?” ventured Hugh.
-
-Grimshaw did not lift his eyes from his plate. “Naturally. I have charge
-of all Miss Frink’s business moves. I am always watching her interests.”
-
-“That sale would work something of a hardship,” remarked Hugh.
-
-“Yes,” agreed Grimshaw, with a nonchalant rising inflection; “but there
-would be nothing sudden or violent about it. There are plenty of places
-farther out where the Duanes can go, and it is my duty to think only of
-Miss Frink.”
-
-“You have her full authority?”
-
-“Certainly. I have her full authority.”
-
-“It is a little strange,” said Hugh, “that she never mentioned the
-proposition of this sale to me.”
-
-“You think it strange?” returned Grimshaw, and there was a scarcely
-veiled sneer in the retort. “I believe Miss Frink has not considered you
-on the business side as yet.”
-
-Hugh said no more; but less than an hour later he ran up on the Duanes’
-piazza. The evening was warm, and they were sitting out.
-
-Millicent jumped up eagerly at sight of him and he grasped her
-outstretched hand and held it.
-
-“I am not satisfied, Colonel Duane, with my talk with Grimshaw,” he said.
-
-The old gentleman looked up, patiently.
-
-“Shall you wire Miss Frink?” asked Millicent eagerly.
-
-“Of course not,” said Colonel Duane. “Hugh shouldn’t interfere.”
-
-“Yes, I shall, to the extent of finding out what’s what.”
-
-Millicent released her hand and sat down.
-
-“The thing to do is for Millicent and me to motor down to Waveland
-to-morrow. I learn that we can do it in four hours. We’ll talk with Aunt
-Susanna, and, if we find that she is content to let Grimshaw do his
-darndest, we’ll motor back again; but if it turns out that she is from
-Missouri, we three will come back on the train.”
-
-“That’s fair enough, Grandpa?” asked Millicent anxiously.
-
-“I don’t know that it is. Miss Frink has gone away to rest and probably
-left instructions with her secretary, and for you to go, Milly, and throw
-yourself on her sympathy—”
-
-“She shan’t throw herself on anything, Colonel Duane. I promise it; but
-it will be so much more satisfactory for Millicent to see Aunt Susanna
-face to face, and hear just what she says—”
-
-Colonel Duane was thoughtful. “If Miss Frink does not return with you, I
-don’t like the idea of your motoring back here late in the evening. It
-would be midnight, probably.”
-
-“I’ll see to that,” returned Hugh. “If Aunt Susanna doesn’t return with
-us, she has two rooms down there, and Millicent will spend the night with
-her; and I’ll wire you. We’ll motor back the next morning.”
-
-“You wish to do it, Milly?” asked Colonel Duane.
-
-“It seems as if I should fly out of my skin if I couldn’t.”
-
-“If we come back on the train with Aunt Susanna, it will be late, and
-Millicent will spend the night at our house.”
-
-“No!” exclaimed the old man. “Bring her home, whatever hour it is.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV
-
-JOURNEY’S END
-
-
-Miss Frink was sitting on the porch of the Sea View Hotel, rocking as all
-good Americans do, and thinking, as usual, of Hugh.
-
-The expanse of ocean lay before her, and, as she watched the sailboats
-careening, she wondered if her nephew cared for sailing and if he was a
-good swimmer. She thought of the desirable girls in Farrandale. Some of
-them had had European educations. She hoped Hugh would accept the Tarrant
-invitation. As Miss Frink passed in review the young people she had seen
-grow up without noticing them, Inez Tarrant stood out in her mind as the
-most attractive. She shook her head as a memory of Hugh’s father struck
-athwart her thought.
-
-“I won’t,” she reflected. “I won’t interfere this time, whatever the boy
-does. He shall never think of his old aunt as a wet blanket. Never!”
-
-She was in a blissful dream when suddenly a car drew up before the hotel
-porch directly in front of her rocking-chair. She didn’t recognize it
-at first. All its shiny blueness was dust-laden. So were its occupants.
-One of them saw her instantly, and waved his cap. Millicent was out as
-quickly as Hugh, pulling off her veil and looking up with a beating heart
-at Miss Frink, who started to her feet.
-
-“We’ve come to lunch with you, Aunt Susanna.” Hugh embraced her, and she
-took Millicent’s timid hand.
-
-“Well, if this isn’t fine of you children! What sights you are! Take the
-car to the garage, Hugh, while I help Millicent to brush up. You must
-have started very early,” she added to the girl when they had reached her
-room.
-
-“We did, and it has been such a beautiful morning. The car runs like
-velvet.”
-
-“You look tired, child. Are those shadows under your eyes, or is it
-all dust? Now I’ll leave you here. Make yourself at home. Don’t hurry.
-There’s plenty of time. Come down to the porch when you’re ready.”
-
-Miss Frink returned to her rocking-chair, and soon Hugh joined her,
-washed and brushed to her heart’s desire.
-
-“I’m your letter to-day, Aunt Susanna,” he said, pulling up a chair
-beside her.
-
-“Well, I’ll take you”—she regarded the vital light in his eyes—“and read
-you, too.”
-
-“The X-ray still working?” he laughed.
-
-“Certainly. Here is a very happy boy.”
-
-“With everything to make him happy,” he returned.
-
-“The car pleases you?”
-
-“Perfect. The company, too.”
-
-“Me or Millicent?” Miss Frink’s lips twitched. “My! That girl’s hair was
-pretty when it tumbled down just now, upstairs.”
-
-“Both of you,” replied Hugh.
-
-“Have you accepted Miss Tarrant’s invitation?”
-
-“No—yes—Oh, yes, I remember now, I did, to please you.”
-
-“It will be to please yourself, later.”
-
-Hugh gave her a brilliant smile in which eyes and lips coöperated with
-great effect.
-
-“It won’t matter much, Aunt Susanna. There is only one perfect girl in
-Farrandale, and I’ve found her.”
-
-Miss Frink grasped the arms of her chair.
-
-“Hugh Sinclair!” she gasped. “Why, I never even thought of Millicent
-Duane!”
-
-He leaned toward her and spoke low. The smile vanished under his aunt’s
-aghast eyeglasses.
-
-“Set your X-ray going, Aunt Susanna. See the modesty, the honesty, the
-purity, the frankness, the unselfishness, the charm of total goodness—”
-
-“Did you come down here to tell me this?”
-
-“No. I never said a word to her until this morning on the way; and she
-refused me. She’s afraid of you. She believes herself too humble and
-obscure to suit you, and she says she’d rather die than marry me if it
-didn’t please you. She loves you, too, Aunt Susanna. She appreciates you.”
-
-Miss Frink’s firm resolution of an hour ago recurred to her. Her surprise
-was so absolute that she leaned back in her chair, speechless.
-
-“We just made up our minds suddenly last night to come, and it has been a
-most lovely drive.”
-
-“H’m. Millicent looks as if she had been through the war.”
-
-“She has. We’ll tell you about it, later.”
-
-Millicent appeared from the doorway, and Miss Frink noted the expression
-in Hugh’s face as he started up to meet her.
-
-“I know you are both famished,” she said. “Let us go right in to lunch.”
-
-Poor Millicent, with her double burden of apprehension and embarrassment,
-made a valiant attempt to eat, and Hugh saved her from the necessity of
-talking by keeping up a busy conversation with his aunt. As for Miss
-Frink, she was constantly fighting a sense of resentment.
-
-“Just like me,” she thought. “Just because I didn’t plan it, I suppose I
-can’t approve it. Just because I can’t have him all to myself, I suppose
-I wouldn’t like it, whoever it was. Just like you, Susanna Frink. Just
-like you!”
-
-When they rose from the table, Hugh spoke.
-
-“We did come down here on an errand, Aunt Susanna. Is there some place
-where we can be entirely by ourselves?”
-
-“We will go up to my room,” she returned. What could their errand be if
-it was not on that rending subject?
-
-“She didn’t eat anything,” reflected Miss Frink as they went up in the
-elevator. “I suppose they don’t when they’re in love.”
-
-Her heart pleaded a little for Millicent, just then. Even if it were
-presumptuous for the girl to fall in love with Hugh, was it within
-youthful feminine human nature to help it when they had been thrown
-together daily for so long? What had been nearly superhuman was to refuse
-him, shut in with him in that very new, very blue, shiny roadster with
-all the early summer surroundings of romance. The girl had some strength,
-anyway. And how sweetly she had sympathized with herself at the exciting
-time of the discovery!
-
-She sat down now, however, with an entirely non-committal expression,
-and Millicent took a place facing her. Apparently she was the one with
-the message. Hugh wandered to a window overlooking the sea.
-
-How pale the girl was! The shadows under her hazel eyes had not been
-dust. Those eyes had apparently started out to be brown, but thought
-better of it. They were surpassingly clear, and they looked now directly
-into Miss Frink’s.
-
-“I don’t know even yet if it was right for me to come,” she began.
-“Grandpa thought it wasn’t, for we haven’t the least right to trouble
-you in your affairs; but it means so much to Grandpa I couldn’t content
-myself without knowing from your own lips if you are selling our home.”
-
-Miss Frink’s face continued set. A little frown came in her forehead.
-
-“Not that we wouldn’t get used to the thought, but—just at first, it—he
-made Grandpa look so old—”
-
-“Who did?”
-
-“Mr. Goldstein. He wants to put up an apartment house and he was looking
-the ground over to see if he could save the elm.”
-
-“Oh, yes. Mr. Goldstein. He is Adèle’s—Mrs. Lumbard’s employer, I
-believe.”
-
-“Yes, Miss Frink”—the hazel eyes searched the bright eyeglasses—“did Mrs.
-Lumbard ask you to sell the place?”
-
-“Certainly not. Why do you ask such a question?”
-
-“Because—I’m ashamed to say so, but I’ve thought so much about it. Mrs.
-Lumbard hates me. I can’t imagine why. I’ve met her on the street. Nobody
-ever looked at me the way she does.”
-
-Miss Frink threw a quick glance over her shoulder at Hugh, who came back
-from the window, and stood near Millicent.
-
-“This only came to light yesterday,” he said. “Of course, if you are
-selling the place, it is all right; but I talked with Grimshaw last night
-at dinner, and I was not satisfied with his replies, although he claimed
-to have your authority. If there was anything for you to look into, I
-thought it best for us to come in person; but, if everything is being
-done by your order, there is nothing for us to do but kiss you and leave
-you.”
-
-“I suppose,” Millicent’s voice wavered, “I suppose it would be dreadful
-to ask you to change your mind, but Grandpa—I don’t know what he will do.
-He loves every little sprout, and—and there isn’t any other place—”
-
-“Your grandfather seems to be your whole thought,” said Miss Frink. She
-was definitely frowning now, and her expression was severe.
-
-“He is. I’d do anything—I’m doing something almost disgraceful now in
-begging you—” The voice stopped, and color came up in the pale cheeks.
-
-Hugh watched his aunt, but there was no change in her expression.
-
-“We thought if there was any question in your mind,” he said, “that we
-would leave the car here, and you would return with us on the train.”
-
-Miss Frink looked at her watch. “The train went while we were eating,”
-she said. “There isn’t another until evening, but I think I will go back
-with you. Meanwhile”—her set face lightened—“I suggest that this girl lie
-down and rest while you take me for a drive.”
-
-“That’ll be bully!” agreed Hugh.
-
-Millicent tried to control her trembling lips as she followed Miss
-Frink’s movement and rose. The latter went into the next room to put on
-her hat.
-
-Hugh took the young girl’s hands, and she drew them away gently. “Don’t
-you see,” he said softly, “that that is hopeful?”
-
-“I don’t know. Oh, she looked so hard. I’m afraid of her when she is the
-Queen of Farrandale.”
-
-“But she wouldn’t go with us if it were settled. You see that?”
-
-“Then, why couldn’t she say one encouraging word?”
-
-“Because she doesn’t know how far Grimshaw has gone. He said he had full
-authority. Perhaps now she wishes she hadn’t given it to him.”
-
-Miss Frink came back. “Think how many times you’ve put me to sleep,
-Millicent. Now you let the ocean do the same for you. Go right into that
-room and make yourself comfortable. Lie down on my bed and don’t think
-about anything but the waves.”
-
-They left her, and Miss Frink looked at the car admiringly as Hugh drove
-it around to the hotel steps. It had been cleaned into new blueness
-again, and she sank into the low seat and breathed a sigh of satisfaction
-as it rolled smoothly away.
-
-“Poor Millicent,” said Hugh. He meant it as a gentle hint that now they
-were alone his aunt might confide in him on the affair that had brought
-them. Evidently nothing was further from her intention.
-
-“Yes, I hope she gets to sleep,” she returned. “Could anything run
-smoother than this, Hugh?”
-
-The brisk ocean breeze swept past them. Hugh accepted the dismissal of
-his little love. He glanced around at his companion’s strong features,
-set now in perfect contentment.
-
-“I’m the lover she never had,” he reflected, “and the husband she never
-had, and the son she never had, and the grandson she thought she had, but
-he comes right away and tells her he loves somebody else. Tough, I’ll
-say.”
-
-They were speeding along the road near the sea, and passing summer homes
-set far apart.
-
-“You will like to have the car in New York this fall, Hugh.”
-
-“It sure would be a big luxury.”
-
-“You and Mr. Ogden would enjoy it—when I wasn’t there.”
-
-Miss Frink looked around at her chauffeur and smiled, and he smiled back,
-valiantly, though he was thinking that Millicent was probably not asleep,
-but staring at the sea with dry, troubled eyes.
-
-“You will come, of course, Aunt Susanna, if I go to law school there?”
-
-“Yes, I think I should cultivate quite an intimacy with New York under
-those circumstances. I’d bring her with me sometimes, too.” Again she met
-Hugh’s eyes, and the sudden light in them rewarded her.
-
-There was no other reference to Millicent during the long drive, and they
-returned to find the girl sitting on the porch. Her white face pulled on
-Hugh’s heartstrings.
-
-Miss Frink asked her if she had slept, and she replied that she had had a
-fine rest; and she asked interested questions about the drive until Miss
-Frink went into the house to pack her bag.
-
-“Did she say anything more?” asked the girl eagerly.
-
-“Nothing—except that when I am in New York at the law school she will
-bring you to see me.”
-
-Millicent’s questioning expression faded. “I shan’t be there to bring,”
-she said quietly; “we shall have to move away into the country somewhere.”
-
-“But that showed that she likes you, Millicent—that all those absurd
-ideas about your not satisfying her don’t amount to anything. I told her.
-She knows what I want.”
-
-“I understand better than you do.” Millicent smiled faintly. “She knows
-you haven’t met girls of your own kind yet, and what changes a year may
-bring; but she wants to keep you happy.”
-
-They were able to get a chair car on the train that night. Miss Frink
-and Hugh sat in adjoining seats, and Millicent in the third leaned back
-with closed eyes and thought of her grandfather, and tried to make plans
-for their future. She worked to exclude the radiant possibility which had
-dawned on her in the wonderful ride of the morning. Every joy she had
-ever dreamed of was embraced in the thought of a life with Hugh; but it
-was too sudden, he was too young to know what he wanted, and she was sure
-that Miss Frink’s plans and ambitions for him made the idea of little
-Milly Duane an absurdity. The Queen of Farrandale should see that her
-attitude was completely shared by Millicent herself.
-
-The train was late in starting, and, by reason of detention along the
-way, it was after eleven o’clock when it pulled into Farrandale. They
-took a station taxicab and drove to Miss Frink’s house, intending that,
-after the lady had entered, Hugh, mindful of Colonel Duane’s exhortation,
-would take Millicent home; but as they approached, they were surprised
-to see the lower floor of the house brightly lighted, and an automobile
-parked before it.
-
-“Come in with us, Millicent,” said Miss Frink. “We may as well see what
-this illumination means before you go home.”
-
-Hugh let them into the hall with his latch-key, and laughter from the
-end of the corridor showed that the study was occupied. Miss Frink led
-the way and was first to enter the room. She stood for a moment while
-the gay laughter died on the lips of her secretary and Adèle Lumbard as
-they stared at the apparition. Mr. Goldstein was standing by Miss Frink’s
-flat-topped desk, and apparently had just laid upon it a handful of gold
-pieces. Millicent would have shrunk back, but Hugh held her firmly by the
-arm and they followed Miss Frink as she moved into the room.
-
-Besides herself, Mr. Goldstein was the only unembarrassed member of the
-company.
-
-“In the nick of time, Miss Frink,” he said, advancing with an air of
-cordial welcome. He made a move toward shaking hands, but the expression
-on the face of the Queen of Farrandale discouraged him.
-
-There succeeded a silent space while she walked to the desk and picked up
-a paper bearing her signature.
-
-Her dark, bright gaze jumped to Grimshaw.
-
-“I just wondered,” she said. The secretary had grown very pale, and it
-was difficult to face her; but he did so. Adèle stepped nearer to him.
-“So you did use your power of attorney,” she added.
-
-“Certainly,” replied Grimshaw, with all the dignity he could command. “As
-you know, I am always looking out for advantageous business moves for
-you. Here was one that was extraordinary. The sale of that corner where
-the Duanes have been living, to be used for an apartment house, could
-only be made to a man of Mr. Goldstein’s means—”
-
-“And generosity.” Miss Frink’s interruption was curt to fierceness. She
-grasped the gold coins and let them jingle back on the desk.
-
-The purchaser spoke cheerfully. “Oh, it was all the same to me,” he said.
-“Mrs. Lumbard, she is the lady that loves the gold.” He laughed toward
-Adèle and wagged his head. “She likes her salary in those good little
-solid pieces. Isn’t it so, lovely lady?”
-
-Miss Frink’s glance flashed at Adèle. “But this is not her salary, I
-judge.”
-
-Mr. Goldstein shrugged deprecatingly. “Oh, no, Mr. Grimshaw has been very
-obliging.”
-
-“Leonard, I feel that you had help in all this.” The speaker regarded her
-secretary with deep feeling. “You would not have done it, alone.”
-
-Grimshaw could not speak; and Adèle saw it. She cast a defiant, angry
-glance at Hugh and Millicent, silent spectators of the scene. The girl’s
-hands were unconsciously on her heart as hope sprang in it for her
-grandfather’s deliverance.
-
-“Miss Frink,” cried Adèle, “you have no right to be speaking to Leonard
-as though he were a criminal when he never thinks of anything but your
-good. You were not here, and he acted for you.”
-
-“Yes, madam,” said Mr. Goldstein, grave now that he saw the transaction
-was displeasing, “I certainly understood that everything was correct. I
-have acted in good faith.”
-
-“I have no doubt of it,” returned Miss Frink. “Gather up that gold, if
-you please. My employes do not receive bribes.”
-
-Mr. Goldstein mechanically obeyed, and his troubled gaze rested on her.
-
-“But I have paid good money down to clinch this bargain,” he said.
-
-Miss Frink’s genuine distress at her secretary’s sordid action lightened
-at some thought.
-
-She smiled at her young people, and Grimshaw cast a baleful look at Hugh
-who had precipitated this scene. Anxiety again clutched at Millicent’s
-heart. Miss Frink had not been mercenary. She had not ignored the love of
-Colonel Duane for his simple, happy life, and she was powerful. The girl
-studied her face now for encouragement that, no matter how far matters
-had gone, she could save them.
-
-“You should not withdraw from this, Miss Frink,” said Grimshaw, inspired
-by a fiery look from Adèle. “Indeed, it is not at all certain that you
-can do so, legally.”
-
-The lady’s smile faded. “You didn’t delve into this matter quite far
-enough, Grim. Had you happened to examine my deposit box, you and I would
-both have been spared something. Mr. Goldstein”—the speaker turned to
-the would-be purchaser—“your money will be returned to you. Mr. Grimshaw
-was unaware that the Duane homestead does not belong to me any longer. I
-learned rather recently that some one dear to me had expressed admiration
-for it, and the last thing I did before leaving town was to transfer that
-property. I did not speak of the transaction to any one: not even to the
-new owner.”
-
-The secretary’s spectacles regarded her, shining in a very white face.
-
-Mr. Goldstein returned to the charge. “Then the property might still be
-for sale,” he said argumentatively.
-
-“I think not,” returned Miss Frink. “I have reason to believe that it
-will be held for—well, it will not be regarded commercially. I am sorry
-for your disappointment, Mr. Goldstein, and I will bid you good-night.”
-
-“Good-night, then, madam, and I shall hope for a more fruitful meeting
-some day,” he returned.
-
-Hugh and Millicent were blind to the exit of the three, who moved quickly
-out of the room.
-
-In that minute Hugh’s heart leaped, for the Queen of Farrandale, who
-never did anything by halves, drew Millicent away from him and, passing
-an arm around her, held her close. The girl flushed with pleasure in the
-loving caress, for the bright old eyes that met hers were blurred.
-
-“Come here, Hugh.” Her free hand drew him. “He is your landlord now,
-Millicent. I hope he will be a good one.”
-
-The boy threw his arms around the pair, and held them. “I don’t know what
-to do with you, Aunt Susanna,” he said unsteadily.
-
-“Why, of course, I had to give you an engagement present,” she returned.
-
-The surprise and relief of the moment seemed to center in the radiant
-young creature whose rosy cheek Miss Frink’s lips were pressing.
-
-“Millicent!” cried the lover softly, and there was a wealth of joy
-present, and joy to come, in the exclamation. “Millicent!”
-
-
-
-***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE QUEEN OF FARRANDALE***
-
-
-******* This file should be named 60983-0.txt or 60983-0.zip *******
-
-
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
-http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/6/0/9/8/60983
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/60983-0.zip b/old/60983-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 7d8e5b0..0000000
--- a/old/60983-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60983-h.zip b/old/60983-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 5b010ff..0000000
--- a/old/60983-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60983-h/60983-h.htm b/old/60983-h/60983-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 205e8a1..0000000
--- a/old/60983-h/60983-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11725 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml">
-<head>
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=UTF-8" />
-<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Queen of Farrandale, by Clara Louise Burnham</title>
-<link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-<style type="text/css">
-
-a {
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-h1,h2,h3,h4 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr {
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- clear: both;
- width: 65%;
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- text-indent: 1em;
-}
-
-table {
- margin: 1em auto 1em auto;
- max-width: 40em;
- border-collapse: collapse;
-}
-
-td {
- padding-left: 2.25em;
- padding-right: 0.25em;
- vertical-align: top;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-.tdr {
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.tdpg {
- vertical-align: bottom;
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.blockquote {
- margin: 1.5em 10%;
-}
-
-.center {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.gothic {
- font-family: 'Old English Text MT', 'Old English', serif;
-}
-
-.larger {
- font-size: 150%;
-}
-
-.noindent {
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- right: 4%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
-}
-
-.right {
- text-align: right;
- margin-right: 1em;
-}
-
-.smaller {
- font-size: 80%;
-}
-
-.smcap {
- font-variant: small-caps;
- font-style: normal;
-}
-
-.tb {
- margin-top: 2em;
-}
-
-.titlepage {
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 3em;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-@media handheld {
-
-img {
- max-width: 100%;
- width: auto;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-.blockquote {
- margin: 1.5em 5%;
-}
-}
-
-
- table.pg { max-width: 80%; }
- hr.full { width: 100%;
- margin-top: 3em;
- margin-bottom: 0em;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- height: 4px;
- border-width: 4px 0 0 0; /* remove all borders except the top one */
- border-style: solid;
- border-color: #000000;
- clear: both; }
- </style>
-</head>
-<body>
-<h1>The Project Gutenberg eBook, The Queen of Farrandale, by Clara Louise
-Burnham</h1>
-<p>This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States
-and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
-restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
-under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
-eBook or online at <a
-href="http://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you are not
-located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this ebook.</p>
-<p>Title: The Queen of Farrandale</p>
-<p> A Novel</p>
-<p>Author: Clara Louise Burnham</p>
-<p>Release Date: December 20, 2019 [eBook #60983]</p>
-<p>Language: English</p>
-<p>Character set encoding: UTF-8</p>
-<p>***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE QUEEN OF FARRANDALE***</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<h4>E-text prepared by<br /> the Online Distributed Proofreading Team<br />
- (<a href="http://www.pgdp.net">http://www.pgdp.net</a>)<br />
- from page images generously made available by<br />
- Internet Archive<br />
- (<a href="https://archive.org">https://archive.org</a>)</h4>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<table class="pg" border="0" style="background-color: #ccccff;margin: 0 auto;" cellpadding="10">
- <tr>
- <td valign="top">
- Note:
- </td>
- <td>
- Images of the original pages are available through
- Internet Archive. See
- <a href="https://archive.org/details/queenoffarrandal00burn">
- https://archive.org/details/queenoffarrandal00burn</a>
- </td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<hr class="full" />
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage larger">THE QUEEN<br />
-OF FARRANDALE</p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>A Novel</i></p>
-
-<p class="titlepage"><span class="smaller">BY</span><br />
-CLARA LOUISE BURNHAM</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter titlepage" style="width: 100px;">
-<img src="images/tp.jpg" width="100" height="120" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="titlepage"><span class="smaller">BOSTON AND NEW YORK</span><br />
-HOUGHTON MIFFLIN COMPANY<br />
-<span class="gothic">The Riverside Press Cambridge</span><br />
-1923</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage smaller">COPYRIGHT, 1923, BY CLARA LOUISE BURNHAM</p>
-
-<p class="center smaller">ALL RIGHTS RESERVED</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage smaller"><span class="gothic">The Riverside Press</span><br />
-CAMBRIDGE · MASSACHUSETTS<br />
-PRINTED IN THE U.S.A.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<h2>CONTENTS</h2>
-
-<table summary="Contents">
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">I.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">The Ne’er-do-well</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_I">3</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">II.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">For Carol</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_II">10</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">III.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">An Introduction</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_III">26</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IV.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">A Bobbed Head</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">39</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">V.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Mrs. Lumbard</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_V">53</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VI.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Visiting the Sick</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">68</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">At Ross Graham’s</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">77</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VIII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">A Telegram</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">92</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IX.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">The New Reader</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">103</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">X.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">John Ogden arrives</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_X">114</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XI.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">A Mutinous Actor</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">125</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">The Console</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">135</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Millicent Duane</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">150</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIV.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Alice</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">161</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XV.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Apple Blossoms</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XV">174</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVI.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Miss Frink makes a Call</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI">187</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Adèle</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVII">197</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVIII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">The Recital</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII">210</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIX.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">John Ogden</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">223</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XX.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">A Parting Interview</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XX">233</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXI.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Paving the Way</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXI">244</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Adjustments</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXII">258</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXIII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Millicent</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIII">273</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXIV.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">A Shock</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIV">287</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXV.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Journey’s End</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXV">300</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1">[1]</a></span></p>
-
-<h1>THE QUEEN<br />
-OF FARRANDALE</h1>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2" id="Page_2">[2]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 50px;">
-<img src="images/dots.jpg" width="50" height="35" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">[3]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I<br />
-<span class="smaller">THE NE’ER-DO-WELL</span></h2>
-
-<p>“I’ve never had any luck,” said Hugh Sinclair,
-lifting a stein of beer and emptying it in one
-steady draught.</p>
-
-<p>The fashionably dressed man, with graying
-hair on his temples who sat opposite him at the
-table, left his own foaming mug untouched as
-he watched the handsome, rough-looking boy
-of twenty-four with a half smile.</p>
-
-<p>“Nor my father before me,” added Hugh, as
-he set down the empty stein. “No silver spoons
-in the mouths of our family when they are
-born.”</p>
-
-<p>“Your father was a pretty fine man,” remarked
-the other.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, I suppose so,” said the boy carelessly.
-“I remember, Mr. Ogden, that you and
-he were a sort of pals. I suppose it was on his
-account that you looked me up to-day. I’m
-sorry I haven’t any better hospitality to show<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">[4]</a></span>
-you than a near-beer joint. These hot dogs
-aren’t so bad, though. Try ’em.”</p>
-
-<p>The young fellow drove his fork into the food
-on his plate and his companion followed his
-example, while a brazen automatic piano in the
-corner crashed out “The Virginia Blues.”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden began to eat. “I love that clever
-human who cursed the man that put the din
-into dinner, and took the rest out of restaurant,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p>“M’h’m,” agreed Hugh with his mouth full.</p>
-
-<p>“Who are left in your family?” asked Ogden.
-“The last time I saw you was twelve years ago,
-and do you know why I remember the date?”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh looked up. “Can’t imagine. Something
-about father, I suppose.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, about your sister Carol.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good old Carol?” said the boy with surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. How much more time have you
-before you must go back to the store?”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh looked at his wrist watch. Its dilapidated
-leather bracelet matched the carelessness
-of its owner’s general appearance. “Half an
-hour.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then let us eat quickly and get to some
-quiet spot.”</p>
-
-<p>They found it in a hotel lobby on the way to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">[5]</a></span>
-Hugh’s place of business, and in transit John
-Ogden took further mental note of his companion’s
-shabbiness. Not only were his clothes
-in need of brushing, but he had not shaved
-to-day; his shoes were dusty and by industry
-the boy finished several cigarettes before, in the
-hotel lobby, they found a couple of neighboring
-chairs, and he lighted another.</p>
-
-<p>“Hard luck to tote you around this way, Mr.
-Ogden, but all I’ve got is a hall bedroom in a
-hash house.”</p>
-
-<p>“You talk a lot about luck, don’t you?”
-remarked the older man. “You don’t look as if
-you had ever gone after it very hard.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes,” responded Hugh; “I’ve batted
-around considerable after jobs.”</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t keep them very long, eh?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, and the devil can take them for all me.
-I’ve never had anything worth keeping since I
-got back from France. I care for nobody and
-nobody cares for me. That’s about the size of
-it, and most of the other fellows are the same
-way. My friends are all Bolshevists.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, come now,” said the older man, regarding
-the frank young ne’er-do-well with some
-disgust, “that isn’t worthy of your father’s
-son.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps not; but what do you care?” turning<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">[6]</a></span>
-upon his well-dressed, well-groomed companion;
-nettled by the shade of contempt in his
-tone. “My father’s dead and that’s the end of
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>“I was going to tell you why I care,” said
-Ogden, meeting the inimical look in the exceedingly
-handsome blue eyes bent upon him. He
-paused a minute, then added, “I am glad I
-stopped over and hunted you up. You remind
-me of her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes,” said Hugh listlessly, “Carol.
-You said something about Carol.”</p>
-
-<p>“I did,” returned the other quietly. “Twelve
-years ago to-day I asked her to be my wife.”</p>
-
-<p>“<em>You</em>—Carol?” The boy’s voice was so
-incredulous that Ogden smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; I wasn’t always forty-two, you know.
-I was thirty then, and she was eighteen.”</p>
-
-<p>“That was the reason you hung around
-father, then?”</p>
-
-<p>“One of the reasons, yes,” said Ogden slowly.
-“She was a sober little head for eighteen, and it
-was largely because for years she had had to be
-a mother to her little brother.”</p>
-
-<p>The tone and manner in which this was said
-caused Hugh to remove his cigarette for a
-thoughtful moment. “Good old Carol,” he
-said; then, restoring the cigarette, he added,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">[7]</a></span>
-“I wish to thunder she had married you. That
-guy Morrison carried her off to Colorado. She
-hated to leave me like the devil. She wrote me
-every day while I was over there.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t light another cigarette, Hugh,” exclaimed
-the other in irrepressible impatience.
-“Don’t you know you never will hold a position
-if you’re one of these coffin-tack slaves?”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh flared up. The flare showed in his
-beautiful eyes and darkened them to violet.
-Who was this glass of fashion to dictate to a
-decent Bolshevist like himself!</p>
-
-<p>“And don’t I tell you I don’t give a damn
-how many dinky positions I lose?” he retorted.</p>
-
-<p>Ogden put a soothing hand on the boy’s big
-arm and was nervously shaken off. “I’m sorry,
-old man. Don’t take it that way. Of course
-you’re free, white, and twenty-one; but I can’t
-help taking an interest in you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Better cut it. I thank you, of course, for
-looking me up”—Hugh rose—“but I’ve got
-to trot along now. Good luck to you.”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden rose, too. “It won’t be good
-luck for me unless I see you again. I’m staying
-at this hotel. Come to dinner with me to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no. Thank you just the same, but I’ve
-no togs decent to dine in a place like this.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">[8]</a></span>
-The boy was somewhat touched by the older
-man’s invitation and manner, and he smiled
-grudgingly, revealing perfect teeth and more
-than ever causing Ogden a twinge of memory.
-“I can dress for a dinner of Reds in some
-cellar. That’s my size.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wait a minute, Hugh. Listen. This is my
-anniversary. I never could love another girl
-after Carol. I’ve gone lonely for twelve years
-for her sake. If she could have felt differently
-I should have been your big brother all this
-time. Won’t you dine with me to-night? This
-is always a hard day for me.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh looked down on his immaculate companion
-curiously. How could a man, with hair
-graying around the temples and growing thin
-on the crown, nurse memories of love? It
-seemed absurd. But the face regarding him so
-steadily was a strong one. An idea suddenly
-occurred to the boy.</p>
-
-<p>“Were you in the big shindy?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“What were you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Major of infantry.”</p>
-
-<p>“Get any bumps?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I achieved a little limp. Didn’t you
-notice it?”</p>
-
-<p>“I hated the officers,” remarked Hugh.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">[9]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Will you come to-night?”</p>
-
-<p>There was only a trifle more of hesitation
-before the boy answered: “Well—I’ll come.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden slapped him on the back and he
-moved off with long, deliberate strides. The
-older man looked after him. The boy’s splendid
-build and the grace with which his head was set
-on those firm shoulders attracted many a glance
-wherever he appeared.</p>
-
-<p>The man sighed. He was familiar with the
-type of disillusioned returned members of
-the A.E.F., who went out surrounded by the
-incense of hero-worship, and came back to the
-shock of finding themselves negligible.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">[10]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II<br />
-<span class="smaller">FOR CAROL</span></h2>
-
-<p>At the appointed hour Hugh came. He had
-made the concession of blacking his shoes, and
-shaving, and the unkempt hair of the noon
-hour, though obviously still in need of the
-barber, had been brushed until its dark auburn
-waves lay thickly in place.</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden had secured a table for two in a
-retired corner and ordered a dinner, the first
-couple of courses of which seemed to cheer the
-gloom of his guest.</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose I ought to call you Major,” said
-the boy.</p>
-
-<p>“Not if it does violence to your feelings. I
-am plain John Ogden again, you know. I
-would like to forget the war.”</p>
-
-<p>“Same here,” returned Hugh, swallowing a
-mighty mouthful of red snapper.</p>
-
-<p>When the meat course was well under way,
-Ogden began his investigation again.</p>
-
-<p>“You haven’t told me much about yourself,”
-he said. “It seems as if you must have
-relatives in town. Why should you be living in
-a boarding-house? It’s too bad. I thought I
-remembered connections of your father’s.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">[11]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“There were some odd cousins of his about
-when I was a kid,” said Hugh, “but they have
-disappeared. I wouldn’t live with ’em on a bet,
-anyway.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then there was some one else,” persisted
-the host. “Your father had a very wealthy
-aunt, I remember.”</p>
-
-<p>The filet was so extremely good that under
-its influence Hugh smiled at this reminiscence.
-“Oh, that old dame,” he remarked. “Yes,
-she’s still in the ring. You couldn’t kill her
-with an axe. She must be a hundred and fifty
-by this time; but she doesn’t live here, you
-know.”</p>
-
-<p>“I thought she did.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, old Sukey lives in Farrandale”—naming
-a rural city some hundred miles distant
-from the metropolis.</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden admired beauty in man, woman,
-or child, and the light of contemptuous amusement
-which now played over the face of his
-guest so relieved its habitual sullenness that the
-host allowed himself the pleasure of staring for
-a silent space. He was very conscious of the
-glances bent upon Hugh from other tables, but
-the boy himself was entirely engrossed in the
-best dinner he had enjoyed for many a moon.</p>
-
-<p>“There was some quarrel, I remember,” said<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">[12]</a></span>
-Ogden; “some trouble between her and your
-father.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, slightly,” returned Hugh. “She
-didn’t have any children, so my father, being
-her nephew, she set out to run him. Dad had a
-pretty stiff upper lip, and she claimed he ruined
-her life by disobeying her in his marriage, and
-in his business, and in the place he chose to live,
-and so on <i lang="la">ad infinitum</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>“So she let him die without forgiving him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let him die! She’d have made him die if
-she could.”</p>
-
-<p>“And she ignores the existence of you and
-Carol.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, rather.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is all very vague in my remembrance
-because I didn’t notice anything much but
-Carol in those days. So”—the speaker paused
-again—“you are very much alone in the
-world, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said the boy carelessly. “What’s the
-difference? I don’t want any relatives bothering.”</p>
-
-<p>When the meat course was finished, he took
-out a package of cigarettes. “Have a tack on
-me?” he said, and his host accepted one, but
-offered his guest a cigar which the boy refused
-with a curt shake of the head.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">[13]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Of course, if I could have Carol, I’d like
-it,” he went on. “Carol’s never a nuisance. It
-would be good for me, too. I know that. If the
-Volstead Act hadn’t been sneaked in on us, I
-know perfectly well I wouldn’t last long. I
-haven’t any way of making hootch and no
-money to buy it, so I still cumber the ground.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t like to hear a young fellow talk like
-that,” said John Ogden, and he was not so
-unconscious of the servant class as to feel easy
-under the waiter’s entertainment.</p>
-
-<p>“A young fellow doesn’t like to talk that
-way either,” retorted Hugh, “but what is there
-in it? What’s the use of anything? Of course,
-I’ve thought of the movies.”</p>
-
-<p>“What?”</p>
-
-<p>“Thought of going into the movies.” Hugh
-did not lower his voice, and the waiter was
-indefatigable in his attentions.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m a looker,” went on the boy impersonally,
-as he attacked the salad. “Wallie Reid
-and Valentino—any of those guys wouldn’t
-have anything on me if I chose to go in for it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why don’t you, then?” John Ogden
-thought he might as well share the waiter’s
-entertainment.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, it’s too much bother, and the director
-yells at you, and they put that yellow stuff all<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">[14]</a></span>
-over you when you know you’re yellow enough
-already.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy laughed, and sending out a cloud of
-smoke from his Grecian nose again attacked his
-crab-meat.</p>
-
-<p>After they had finished the ices and while
-they were drinking their coffee, Ogden succeeded
-in driving off the reluctant waiter.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m interested in that inexorable grand-aunt
-of yours,” he said. “What is her name?”</p>
-
-<p>“Susanna Frink,” returned Hugh, “affectionately
-known in the bosom of the family as
-‘Old Sukey the Freak.’”</p>
-
-<p>His host sat up and leaned forward. “Not
-possible! Susanna Frink your aunt?”</p>
-
-<p>“’Tisn’t my fault,” said Hugh, raising the
-smooth dark eyebrows his host had been admiring.</p>
-
-<p>“But I know her,” said Ogden. “There’s a
-masterful old lady for you!”</p>
-
-<p>“You bet your life,” agreed Hugh. “I’ve
-always believed she must be a descendant of
-that old galoot—I mean Canute, that commanded
-the proud wave—thus far and no
-farther!”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I never knew that Susanna Frink was
-Mr. Sinclair’s aunt. He never said much about
-her to me, but Carol used to laugh about a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">[15]</a></span>
-family fortune that was so near and yet so far.
-Miss Frink is a personage, Hugh. I’ve had
-business dealings with her, and she prides herself
-on being a lady of the old school. She told
-me so herself. All alone in the world, and feels
-it, I know, for all her proud front.”</p>
-
-<p>“False front probably,” put in Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps.” Ogden smiled. “Anyway, it is
-dark—”</p>
-
-<p>“What did I tell you!”</p>
-
-<p>“And faultlessly waved, and she is straight
-as an arrow and slender, and she drives about
-in her victoria with the bay horses in the
-fashion of fifty years ago, scorning automobiles
-with her whole soul. Her bonnet ties under her
-chin, and her eyeglasses are attached to a black
-ribbon. She has personality plus. You ought
-to meet her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Meet her!” Hugh leaned forward with a
-scowl of incredulous disgust. “Wrinkled old
-harridan in a black wig! What should I want
-to meet her for?”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden studied him thoughtfully—“You
-don’t resemble your father. Neither did Carol.
-You must have had a beautiful mother.”</p>
-
-<p>“We did.” Hugh felt in an inside pocket and
-took out a small rubbed morocco photograph
-case. Opening it, he handed it to his friend.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">[16]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Color came into the latter’s face as he looked
-at it. “Carol!” he exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p>“No. Mother. What do you think of old
-Sukey for trying to lay father off that peach?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d give a thousand dollars for this picture,”
-said Ogden, upon which Hugh took it from him
-without ceremony and returned it to his inside
-pocket.</p>
-
-<p>“It was Carol’s,” he said. “She gave it to me
-to take over there. I guess it was a mascot, for
-I pulled through some tight places.”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden continued to gaze at him for
-sheer pleasure in the way his lips curved
-over the faultless teeth in an occasional smile,
-bringing back his romance with the gentle girl,
-who liked him, but not well enough—</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Hugh, rising, “I mustn’t take
-any more of your time, Mr. Ogden. I had
-forgotten there were dinners like that in the
-world, and I thank you, I’m sure, for bothering
-yourself.” He held out his hand, but his host
-took him by the sleeve.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t be in a hurry, old man,” he said.
-“The party isn’t over yet. Have you any best
-girl you want to go to see?”</p>
-
-<p>“Divil a girl. I called up one that I’d met
-one evening, and asked if I could drop in, and
-she said, ‘Certainly,’ and went on to ask what<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[17]</a></span>
-we were going to do—what were we going to
-see? ‘Good-night,’ said I, and hung up with a
-click. My first and last offense.”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden laughed. “Sit down, then, if
-there is no meeting of the Reds to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh laughed and dropped back into his
-chair.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve had an idea,” said his friend. “You
-liked the dinner. How would you like to have
-one like that every night?”</p>
-
-<p>“Foolish question number 13,” responded
-Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“I know a way you can get it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well”—the boy regarded his dignified
-companion curiously—“so do I; but Bolshevism
-and safe-cracking aren’t the same thing.”</p>
-
-<p>“A sufficient number of good dinners cure
-Bolshevism, I’ve noticed,” said Ogden. “I
-have hopes of you if you will do what I say.”</p>
-
-<p>“Shoot,” remarked Hugh, still gazing at him
-imperturbably.</p>
-
-<p>“You have had some thought of being an
-actor. I’m offering you a part.”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t know what business you were in,
-Mr. Ogden. Are you a producer?”</p>
-
-<p>“No; I’m in the wool business, and I’ll give
-you some to pull over your Aunt Susanna’s
-eyes.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[18]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He smiled, and Hugh shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose you know what you are talking
-about.”</p>
-
-<p>“The question is how much stamina have
-you, Hugh? Could you, for instance, stop your
-cigarettes? I believe that is the eighth you’re on
-now.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can do anything I want to, of course,”
-said the young fellow coolly, “but I don’t believe
-you can make me want to do that.”</p>
-
-<p>“Are you so in love with your present way of
-living?” asked Ogden dryly. “Your hall bedroom
-wouldn’t seem to indicate a very valuable
-business position.”</p>
-
-<p>“I haven’t any position. I’ve got a job,
-packing boxes in the basement of a department
-store.”</p>
-
-<p>“She owns the biggest department store in
-Farrandale.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who?”</p>
-
-<p>“Your Aunt Susanna.”</p>
-
-<p>“What in thunder do I care what she owns?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because, if you have any sporting blood,
-you can own it some day.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh leaned back in his chair. “Well, you
-know how to get around Volstead all right.
-I’d like a shot myself.”</p>
-
-<p>“I won’t hint any longer. I’m willing to bet<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[19]</a></span>
-a thousand dollars that you can make Susanna
-Frink change her will in your favor.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh gave a bored smile and did not change
-his easy position. “Sorry circumstances
-prevent my taking you up.”</p>
-
-<p>“You can pay me when you get the money.”
-Ogden was leaning forward in his chair and
-smiling, and Hugh turned his head to face
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’ll say Carol made an escape,” he
-remarked with such unction that his companion’s
-smile became a laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Here’s the idea,” he said. “Your six feet
-of good looks nearly sent you into the movies.
-Now there’s a stage in Farrandale where you
-can vault right into a star part without having
-to go through the drudgery of atmosphere
-work.”</p>
-
-<p>He paused and Hugh stared at him, no enthusiasm
-in his pensive eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“You get yourself some good clothes—Miss
-Frink’s leery of the needy; she’s had a diet of
-them for fifty years—”</p>
-
-<p>“I haven’t any money,” growled Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“I have. Don’t interrupt me. You must be
-very scrupulous about your personal
-appearance. You shave every day. Your shoes are
-always blacked.” Hugh looked down. “You<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[20]</a></span>
-go every Sunday to the same church Miss
-Frink does, and you apply for a position in the
-Ross Graham department store. Miss Frink is
-Ross; likewise she is Graham. I supply them
-with blankets and I am on sufficiently good
-terms with the old lady.”</p>
-
-<p>“Supposing I don’t get the position—and
-then again supposing I do,” contemptuously.
-“What of it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Here, here, boy, brace up. Did you leave
-all your fighting blood in France? You will get
-the position, for I shall make it plain that be it
-ever so humble, there’s no job so good for your
-purposes as one in Ross Graham’s.”</p>
-
-<p>“<em>You’ll</em> make it plain. Say, do you think
-you’re writing a play?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, my dear boy, you’re going to carry a
-letter of introduction from me that will explain
-to Miss Frink that you are a young man whose
-connections have large dry-goods interests,
-and, as you wish to learn the workings of
-an up-to-date, perfectly equipped department
-store, I have advised you to examine the Ross
-Graham establishment as an example of
-thoroughly good management and success. Your
-desire is to begin at the bottom and learn the
-business from A to Z.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, still pack boxes in a basement,” remarked<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[21]</a></span>
-Hugh, but a light of curiosity began to
-shine in his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“I know Miss Frink; I know what she likes.
-She hates dawdlers; she hates failures. She
-herself is an example of a successful business
-woman. She didn’t inherit money. I have
-heard that a tea-room and a peculiarly delicious
-candy started her fortune fifty years ago. She
-is in the early seventies now, not a hundred and
-fifty as you estimated;—and what are the
-seventies in these days? Just the youth of old
-age.”</p>
-
-<p>“Are you kidding?” returned Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“I never was more in earnest.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy grunted. “Why, the very name of
-Sinclair would give Sukey hydrophobia.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is why you can’t use it,” returned his
-mentor promptly. “What was your mother’s
-maiden name?”</p>
-
-<p>“Draper, and I suppose that would be anathema,
-too.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps. She has a wonderful memory.”</p>
-
-<p>“My middle name is Stanwood.”</p>
-
-<p>“That would do. Then the initial on your
-clothing would be all right.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh’s attention was caught. John Ogden
-noted that his guest was letting his cigarette go
-out.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[22]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He waited a moment to allow cerebration to
-go on.</p>
-
-<p>The boy finally met his eyes again. “You
-seem to mean all this business,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Money talks,” returned Ogden sententiously.</p>
-
-<p>“You really want to put up money on this
-fool idea?”</p>
-
-<p>“It will only be a fool idea if you’re a fool.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, probably I am.” The boy’s broad
-shoulders relapsed against the back of his chair.</p>
-
-<p>His companion frowned and sat forward
-more tensely in his own.</p>
-
-<p>“You are Miss Frink’s legitimate heir,” he
-said, in a low voice, “but, believe me, there is
-no hope of her dying intestate. Are you going
-to continue tamely taking one cheap job after
-another, being a disgrace to the finest sister a
-boy ever had, listening to the disgruntled talk
-of a lot of grouchy fellows until you become as
-spineless as they are”—</p>
-
-<p>“Say, now,” Hugh sat up, crimsoning.</p>
-
-<p>“Keep still. Are you going on living in a
-cloud of cheap tobacco smoke, in a hall bedroom
-on a back street, with no ambition for
-anything better—”</p>
-
-<p>“Look here—”</p>
-
-<p>“No one stands still,” declared John Ogden<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[23]</a></span>
-curtly. “You’re going down if you’re not going
-up. You, with your splendid physique, allowing
-your backbone to slump like boiled macaroni.
-Aren’t you man enough to take a brace
-and go to Farrandale and shove that pussy-footing
-secretary of your aunt’s out of the place
-that should be yours?”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh regarded the suddenly fiery speaker
-with open lips.</p>
-
-<p>“He expects to be her heir; everybody knows
-he does. He has Miss Frink under his influence
-so that the whole household are afraid of him.
-There she lives in this great house, with her
-servants and this secretary—Grimshaw, his
-name is. He has wormed himself into her confidence
-until she scarcely makes a move without
-him, though she doesn’t realize it herself. Will
-you stay here and let him have it all his own
-way?”</p>
-
-<p>The speaker scowled into the dark eyes with
-the deep, pensive corners that were giving him
-their full attention.</p>
-
-<p>“As soon as you told me you were Miss
-Frink’s nephew, I saw what you could do; and
-for the very same reason that you felt you
-could succeed in the movies. Isn’t it Shakespeare
-who said: ‘She is a woman, and therefore
-to be won’? They’re not a bit different at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[24]</a></span>
-seventy from what they are at seventeen when
-they get hold of a man like you.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh still gaped, and was silent.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course, there must be something inside
-your head as well as out. You’ll have to make
-self-denials and sacrifices; but who doesn’t who
-gets anywhere?”</p>
-
-<p>“You want me to go to Farrandale under an
-assumed name,” said Hugh slowly. “I know
-what Carol would say. She would say I was
-living a lie.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then I should remind your sweet sister that
-Stanwood is your own name, and that you are
-going on an honorable mission—a rescue
-party of one: rescuing yourself from hookworm,
-and your aunt from the influence of a smooth-tongued
-hypocrite.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hookworm, is it?” said Hugh, frowning,
-those curving lips taking a set line.</p>
-
-<p>“Describes it to a T,” returned Ogden
-promptly. “Now to-morrow morning, give up
-your job. I’ll stay over another day, and we’ll
-fit you out and plan details.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh put out his hand impulsively, and the
-older man grasped it.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Ogden, why do you take all this
-trouble?”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden smiled. “I’m a sport,” he returned.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[25]</a></span>
-“I’m enough of a gambler for this.”</p>
-
-<p>“I do thank you,” said the boy. “I’ve never
-made good in my life—”</p>
-
-<p>His companion could see that the strong
-teeth set together to hold the lips firm.</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s do this, then,” Ogden returned in a
-low voice. “Let’s do it—for Carol.”</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[26]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III<br />
-<span class="smaller">AN INTRODUCTION</span></h2>
-
-<p>The town of Farrandale was <i lang="fr">en gala</i>. It was the
-annual day of rejoicing in its own success and
-prosperity. Everybody was happy except Miss
-Frink’s horses. The new coachman had drawn
-the check reins too tight. They didn’t like the
-streamers of bunting; they had objected to the
-band; and just as Miss Frink, always the queen
-of the occasion, rose in her carriage to say a
-few words to her fellow townsmen, a corner of a
-temporary platform near them gave way, and
-the celebrated bays, Rex and Regina, did what
-for some minutes they had been nervously
-contemplating: they bolted. The coachman’s
-efforts irritated them still more. Miss Frink
-was thrown violently against the side of her
-chariot, and in the mad, crashing gallop that
-ensued she saw her end in the sharp curve of
-the railroad they were heading for, and the
-advance of an oncoming express train. Some
-one else saw it, too, and, springing from the side
-of the road, caught the bridle and was dragged
-until one of the horses fell down entangled in
-the reins the coachman had dropped when he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[27]</a></span>
-jumped. The shouting crowd leaping after the
-runaway found a very much-shaken queen of
-the fête, and an unconscious man lying in the
-road with a gash in his head, his hair matted
-with blood. The express train crashed by. It
-was a flyer that ignored even the thriving little
-city of Farrandale. Never was Miss Frink’s
-indomitable spirit more regnant than in the
-present catastrophe. Somebody picked up the
-dazed coachman, who proved to be intact and
-able to help disentangle the fallen Rex and get
-him to his feet; while others lifted the unconscious
-hero. Motors came flying to the scene.
-In one was Miss Frink’s secretary, Leonard
-Grimshaw, and a pretty young woman with
-pure white hair. The latter fell upon Miss
-Frink with horrified exclamations; while the
-secretary also rushed to the victoria and stood
-beside it.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, had you only allowed me to drive with
-you, dear lady!” he mourned.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, probably the horses wouldn’t have run
-away,” returned Miss Frink irritably. She readjusted
-her fallen eyeglasses. “Adèle, kindly
-leave my bonnet alone.”</p>
-
-<p>“But it is on the side, dear Aunt Susanna.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink looked past them to the unconscious
-burden being lifted from the ground.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[28]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Has any one sent for the ambulance?”
-exclaimed the secretary nervously. “Oh, how
-shocking, dear Miss Frink! What might have
-happened! It makes my blood run cold.”</p>
-
-<p>“It must run cold if you think I’m going to
-send that man off in an ambulance,” announced
-Miss Frink. “Here, lift him into your car,
-Grim, and Adèle, you go for Dr. Morton and
-bring him to the house.”</p>
-
-<p>“The house, Miss Frink?” asked the secretary.
-“Don’t you mean the hospital, dear
-lady?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, I do not,” snapped the “dear lady.”</p>
-
-<p>One of the gathering crowd came up with a
-dusty suitcase. “This must be his,” he said,
-and the secretary accepted it, gloomily.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle Lumbard gave one look at the unconscious
-face of the rescuer as he was lifted into
-the waiting car and Miss Frink took the place
-beside him, then she jumped into an eagerly
-offered motor and sped away.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink leaned out and addressed the
-shaken coachman.</p>
-
-<p>“Get the horses home somehow, Foley.”
-Then to the increasing crowd: “It is my wish
-that you go on with the programme. I am not
-hurt in the least, and later Mr. Grimshaw or
-Mrs. Lumbard will represent me.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[29]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>She steadied the form of the injured man
-beside her while her secretary drove toward the
-house on the outskirts of the town. His brow
-was exceedingly dark. He was afraid the cut on
-the stranger’s head would stain the upholstery
-of the car. Once he turned toward his employer
-and made a last effort.</p>
-
-<p>“You know they give them the very best
-care at the hospital,” he suggested.</p>
-
-<p>“Leonard Grimshaw, I am a lady of the old
-school,” returned Miss Frink. “Everybody
-was not rushed off to a hospital in my young
-days. I probably wouldn’t be here if it was not
-for this young man, and I am going to supervise
-personally every bone in his body. Drive carefully.
-We’ll get there as soon as Dr. Morton
-does.”</p>
-
-<p>Her secretary resigned himself, and gave his
-attention to avoiding the bumps as a matter of
-self-preservation.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink was attired in her best in honor of
-the state occasion. Her bonnet of black maline
-was decorated with white roses, and the maline
-lace-edged strings were tied under her chin.
-Her handsome dress and wrap were of black
-satin. Her hair, though streaked with silver,
-still gave the impression of being dark, and it
-was crimped in the even waves which had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[30]</a></span>
-framed her face for forty years. The face itself,
-though lined, was still firm in texture, and her
-dark, alert eyes were bright. If she ever wore
-spectacles, it must have been in the privacy of
-her own room. The eyeglasses on their slender
-black ribbon were as inseparable from her
-appearance as a feature of her face.</p>
-
-<p>She looked through them now at the unconscious
-form beside her, and her spontaneous
-thought was: “He is too handsome! I hope I
-haven’t killed him!”</p>
-
-<p>The stranger’s long legs were stretched out in
-the spacious car, and, as his shoulders slid, Miss
-Frink put her arm around them the better to
-steady him, and looked anxiously at the matted
-hair, relieved to see that it seemed to have
-stanched the wound.</p>
-
-<p>“Grim,” she called, “it seems to have
-stopped bleeding.”</p>
-
-<p>“I hope so,” was the reply, fears for that
-upholstery soothed. He turned about enough
-to behold the amazing sight of his employer
-holding in her embrace the stalwart and fallen
-figure.</p>
-
-<p>“Did you ever see such a beauty, Grim?”
-Miss Frink’s eyes were fixed on the face on
-her breast. “What a mercy he wasn’t disfigured!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[31]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The secretary’s nostrils dilated. “It won’t
-matter much, if it’s concussion of the brain,” he
-remarked curtly.</p>
-
-<p>“Grim! Don’t!” exclaimed the lady; and at
-the same moment the stranger’s eyelids flickered
-and the lashes she had been admiring
-lifted. The hero blinked and looked up, dazed,
-into the face bending over him. About her lips
-flickered a small smile of intense relief.</p>
-
-<p>In a weak voice Hugh spoke: “Have you got
-a cigarette?”</p>
-
-<p>“Grim, he wants a cigarette,” said Miss
-Frink, her voice wavering. “Have you got
-one?”</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink,” exclaimed the secretary,
-justly shocked. “You ought to know—”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I suppose so, but you see when the
-cat’s away, how do I know what you play? It
-would be convenient if you happened to—”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, the devil,” said Hugh, as he tried to
-move.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it? What hurts?” asked Miss
-Frink anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know, my shoulder, I guess. What’s
-doing, anyway?” inquired the sufferer feebly,
-beginning to realize his satin environment.</p>
-
-<p>“You caught the horses and were dragged.
-Don’t you remember? You saved my life.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[32]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Slowly Hugh cerebrated while his pensive
-eyes gazed up into the dark ones.</p>
-
-<p>“And I’m so thankful to hear you speak, I
-could weep if I ever did, but I don’t indulge.”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden came floating back into the
-dazed, aching head, and all that had preceded
-his coming here.</p>
-
-<p>“What did he call you just now?” asked
-Hugh with feeble incredulity.</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink. I’m Miss Frink,”—with
-energy, “and I don’t want to die, and you
-saved my life.”</p>
-
-<p>At this Hugh moved his head a little in the
-encircling satin, and he made an inarticulate
-sound. It was feeble, but it was trying to be a
-laugh, and Miss Frink appreciated the beauty
-of it.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, it is sort of funny saving an old
-woman, isn’t it, instead of a lovely young girl
-as it would be in the story-books?”</p>
-
-<p>“I was thinking—” said Hugh. “Are you—Susanna?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, yes. How did you know it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because I have a letter of introduction to
-you—that’s why I laughed.”</p>
-
-<p>“I should think you might,” dryly. “You
-are certainly introduced.—Grim,” sharply,
-“what are you doing!” The secretary’s feelings<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[33]</a></span>
-were such that he had increased his speed and
-jounced over a rough spot that made Hugh
-wince.</p>
-
-<p>“Better not talk,” said Miss Frink. “We’re
-nearly there.”</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Morton was waiting for them. Adèle
-Lumbard had told him that Aunt Susanna had
-a young Greek god in captivity, but that he
-needed some restoring.</p>
-
-<p>It proved that the cut in Hugh’s head required
-a few stitches, and that his left arm was
-broken. Miss Frink still insisting that her home
-should be Hugh’s only hospital, he found
-himself finally installed in a handsome, spacious
-room with a competent and peremptory
-nurse.</p>
-
-<p>On Miss Frink’s first visit to his bedside,
-where he lay with but one of the blue eyes
-peering out from his bandages, and his swathed
-arm resting on a pillow, he protested.</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink, it’s all absurd,” he said. “I
-don’t need a nurse any more than a toad needs a
-tail. I can take care of myself perfectly. I have
-my right hand. If you’ll just send up some
-chow once in a while—”</p>
-
-<p>“Chow,” interrupted Miss Frink thoughtfully.
-“You were in the war, of course.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course,” said Hugh, smiling at her tone,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[34]</a></span>
-but with teeth set owing to an assortment of
-twinges.</p>
-
-<p>“You must have been wonderful!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I was. Ask Pershing. Say, Miss
-Frink, I don’t like to be all this unnecessary
-expense to you.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink continued to look down at him
-reflectively. As John Ogden had said, she liked
-prosperous folk and had little patience with
-derelicts. Had she seen Hugh a few days ago
-shuffling along on his way to his job, unshaven,
-shabby, and careless, she certainly would not
-have looked at him twice, or if she had done so
-would have dilated disgusted nostrils at the
-odor of his cigarette; but John Ogden had sent
-his protégé forth from the hands of a good
-tailor and barber; and, had he known the disaster
-which befell that fine new suit, would have
-rubbed his hands in triumph.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t fret about expense,” said Miss Frink.
-“If it were not for you, I shouldn’t sign any
-more checks; and, speaking of checks, where is
-yours for your trunk? We must send for it.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s there in my pocketbook with my letter
-of introduction.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink, taking this as permission, found
-the pocketbook. She looked at the marking
-thereon. “Hugh Stanwood,” she read aloud.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[35]</a></span>
-“That is odd,” she said. “Stanwood is one of
-our family names.” She looked toward the bed
-with a little twitch of her lips. “Perhaps we are
-related.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who knows?” returned Hugh, who was
-longing for a cigarette.</p>
-
-<p>“May I read this letter of introduction?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is yours,” he answered.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink read it attentively. “John
-Ogden,” she said aloud as she reached the
-signature. “I congratulate you on your friend.
-I respect John Ogden very much.”</p>
-
-<p>“So he does you,” returned Hugh feebly,
-turning his bandaged head with a weary movement
-that his hostess was quick to notice.</p>
-
-<p>He was wishing he had never seen John
-Ogden, and that he was back, a free Bolshevist
-without the headache, packing boxes with both
-hands in a basement, to pay for his hall bedroom
-and hot dogs.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink, who had sent the nurse out of the
-room when she entered, went back to the bedside,
-and opened a package she had brought in
-with her. Hugh’s one violet eye rolled toward
-her listlessly. It suddenly brightened. Miss
-Frink had never looked so shame-faced in her
-life.</p>
-
-<p>“You see, I went out and bought them myself,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[36]</a></span>
-and not having the least idea what you
-liked I told the man to give me a variety.” The
-handsome box she opened held a number of
-packages of cigarettes, all of a different brand,
-and the lover-like smile Hugh gave her as his
-eager right hand shot out made color come up
-in the guilty face.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps the nurse won’t let you, I don’t
-know,” she said hurriedly—“here, let me
-strike the match for you, it is awful to have
-only one hand!”</p>
-
-<p>The cigarette was lighted, Miss Frink called
-the nurse, and fled to the study where her secretary
-was busily sorting papers at his desk. He
-was a smooth-shaven man in his late thirties,
-immaculate in appearance, his retreating hair
-giving him a very high forehead, and his small
-mouth with its full lips seeming an appropriate
-gateway for his voice and speech which were
-unfortunately effeminate.</p>
-
-<p>“Grim,” said Miss Frink upon her sudden
-entrance, “Mr. Stanwood has been put in the
-White Room and the nurse is with him—Hello,
-Adèle, I didn’t see you.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Lumbard rose from the floor where she
-had been sitting Turkish fashion near the book-shelves.</p>
-
-<p>“I was looking for that ‘Life of Mozart,’<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[37]</a></span>
-Aunt Susanna. I thought the ‘Lives of the
-Musicians’ were on this lowest shelf.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, upper. Take the ladder. Grim, I want
-you to go up to Mr. Stanwood’s room and get
-his suit of clothes, and pack them in a box and
-send them to his tailor with an order to duplicate
-the suit at once. Explain that he has been
-in an accident, and that the clothes and bill are
-to be sent to me. Here’s his trunk check. Get
-that, too. Adèle, why are you here? You know
-I wanted you to go back to the festivities.”</p>
-
-<p>“I did, Aunt Susanna,” said the young
-woman with conscious rectitude. “I listened to
-the speeches and applauded, and answered a
-thousand questions about you. Why, you’re
-perfectly wonderful, Aunt Susanna. Any other
-woman would be lying in bed in a darkened
-room with a bandage around her head.”</p>
-
-<p>“One bandage in the family is sufficient,”
-said Miss Frink, with a little excited laugh.
-“That poor boy upstairs looks as if he had been
-through the wars. And he did”—she turned
-acutely toward her secretary—“he did go
-through the war.”</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw lifted his high forehead in an
-injured manner. “If that is aimed at me, Miss
-Frink, I will remind you once again of my helpless
-mother and sister.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[38]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, yes,” said Miss Frink impatiently,
-“I know. Scuttle along, Grim, and do the
-errand. I believe I’ll jump into your car and
-just show myself at the supper at the City
-Hall.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you’re wonderful, Aunt Susanna!” exclaimed
-Mrs. Lumbard, clasping her pretty
-hands. “If you want me to, I’ll—”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t. I know how it would bore you.
-I’ll see that coachman first. I must get rid of
-him. I knew the checks weren’t right.”</p>
-
-<p>She swept out of the room as suddenly as she
-had entered it, and the two left standing there
-looked at each other, their expressions changing
-from the solicitude they had worn to gravity.</p>
-
-<p>“If the gods hadn’t intervened,” said Adèle
-softly, “to-night we should have been—”</p>
-
-<p>“Sh!” warned the secretary.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course, there would be some charities,”
-she went on, her brown eyes shining, “but you
-and I, you and I—”</p>
-
-<p>“Hush!” warned the secretary again. “We
-can’t be thankful enough that dear Miss
-Frink’s life was saved.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Lumbard laughed low. “You’ve said it,
-Leonard. I don’t think we can.”</p>
-
-<p>“Adèle!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I know.” She still laughed softly.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[39]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV<br />
-<span class="smaller">A BOBBED HEAD</span></h2>
-
-<p>As Leonard Grimshaw’s hair gradually deserted
-him, he brushed it up in a more and more
-aggressive tuft; and as he entered the White
-Room now he reminded Hugh of a cockatoo,
-with his crest and his slender, sharp nose and
-shell-rimmed spectacles.</p>
-
-<p>“Excuse the intrusion,” he said in his most
-dignified and ladylike manner, and, as he gazed
-at the one-eyed warrior, his nostrils dilated.
-Cigarette smoke was curling above the immaculateness
-of the bed. “I come at Miss
-Frink’s behest to get your suit of clothes,” he
-added coldly.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh removed his cigarette. “What you
-going to do with it?” he asked in a rather hollow
-voice. “Any needy scarecrows in Farrandale?”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary did not like the stranger’s nonchalant
-manner and he declined to smile.</p>
-
-<p>“I am to send it to your tailor to be duplicated.
-Miss Frink proposes to pay for it.”</p>
-
-<p>“She’ll have to if anybody does,” remarked
-Hugh feebly. “I’m broke. Awfully good of
-you, Mr.—Mr.—”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[40]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Grimshaw. I am Miss Frink’s private secretary
-and man of affairs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pompous little birdie,” thought Hugh, and
-he regarded his visitor closely with his one eye,
-remembering John Ogden’s reference to the
-pussy-footing secretary who was to be Miss
-Frink’s heir.</p>
-
-<p>The nurse brought the suit to the bedside for
-Hugh to empty the pockets. There was the
-photograph in its worn leather case, a card, a
-handkerchief, some keys, a knife, but the suit
-being new had not accumulated the usual
-papers and old letters. There was a spotless
-pocketbook or billfold, and Hugh smiled ruefully
-at sight of it. He knew its contents.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” he said, and left the lot in the
-nurse’s hands.</p>
-
-<p>The secretary continued to stare disapprovingly
-at the smoke-wreathed bed. As he accepted
-the dilapidated suit from the nurse, he
-spoke again:</p>
-
-<p>“I feel I should tell you, Mr. Stanwood, that
-tobacco is very offensive to Miss Frink, especially
-in the form of cigarettes. Of course, you
-have put us under great obligation” (Hugh
-noted the “us”), “but I must warn you that we
-cannot allow the atmosphere of the house to be
-vitiated and made disagreeable for Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[41]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Hugh smiled faintly toward the speaker.
-“Fine of you to look out for her,” he said.
-“Might shut the transom, nurse.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary’s full lips drew together and he
-glared at this self-possession. Insolence, he
-called it. Of course, the man was injured, but,
-in consideration of such hospitality as was being
-shown him, he might at least act promptly
-upon such information.</p>
-
-<p>Leonard returned to Mrs. Lumbard flushed,
-and with the little crack in his voice that came
-with excitement.</p>
-
-<p>“Lying there, smoking like a young nabob,”
-he reported. “I told him Miss Frink’s horror of
-tobacco, and he merely asked the nurse to close
-the transom. Such nerve!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” returned Adèle, interested, “we
-surely knew already that he had nerve: and
-isn’t he a beauty?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, certainly,” returned the other, throwing
-down the clothes on a table with a vigor
-that suggested a wish that the owner was occupying
-them. “Head all bandaged but one
-eye, arm bundled up, a general wreck.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let him smoke, then, poor thing, while
-Aunt Susanna is off showing Farrandale what
-she’s made of. It will be his last for one while.”</p>
-
-<p>It was, indeed, Hugh’s last indulgence because<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[42]</a></span>
-a high fever took possession of the young
-adventurer that night, and for a few days Miss
-Frink’s physician was a busy man. She paid
-scant attention to her other interests until the
-boy was sane again; and, although she kept to
-the usual hours in her study, the nurse was
-instructed to report to her at short intervals.</p>
-
-<p>“It does seem, Miss Frink, as if we ought to
-send for his Aunt Sukey,” said this attractive
-young woman on one occasion. “He calls for
-her incessantly.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink drew her features together in the
-sudden grimace which sent her eyeglasses off
-her nose.</p>
-
-<p>“How are we going to do that? You looked
-through that little trunk of his, I suppose, as I
-told you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. There wasn’t a scrap of paper in
-there, and this is all that was in his pockets.”</p>
-
-<p>The nurse produced the photograph case and
-a business card.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink examined them. “Yes, there’s
-John Ogden’s card. I could send for him, but I
-don’t care to have him see just what I managed
-to do to his protégé in a few hours. Unless the
-boy’s in danger, I won’t send, as yet.” Miss
-Frink looked long at the photograph.</p>
-
-<p>“Might be his sister,” she said. “There’s a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[43]</a></span>
-resemblance. I hope it isn’t a best girl. He’s
-too young to be hampered.”</p>
-
-<p>Leonard Grimshaw looked over her shoulder
-at the picture. His employer glanced at him
-with a humorous twist of her thin lips.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve kept free, eh, Grim?”</p>
-
-<p>“I had interests which came first,” responded
-the secretary, with the reproving tone which he
-reserved for implications that he had time for
-any thought separate from Miss Frink’s affairs.</p>
-
-<p>That lady returned the old morocco case and
-the card to the nurse.</p>
-
-<p>“Keep careful watch,” she said, “and ask
-Dr. Morton to report to me at his next visit.
-I wish to send for Mr. Ogden if there is occasion
-for anxiety.”</p>
-
-<p>The nurse left the room, and the secretary
-turned adoring eyes upon his employer.</p>
-
-<p>“If you ever thought of yourself, Miss Frink,
-you would see Dr. Morton on your own account.
-After the shock you have endured, and
-the heroism with which you returned to the
-excitement of the banquet, it stands to reason
-that your nerves should have a tonic.”</p>
-
-<p>“Fiddlesticks, Grim. I’m all right. All the
-tonic I need is to know that I haven’t killed
-that boy upstairs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t worry about him,” said the secretary,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[44]</a></span>
-looking severely through his dark-rimmed
-spectacles. “Other husky men have survived a
-broken arm and a bumped head, and I dare say
-he will. I feel that I ought to warn you that he
-is a person of no delicacy.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink regarded the speaker with narrowed
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“I rather suspected that,” she said slowly,
-“by the way he grabbed my horses’ heads.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary flushed, but continued indomitably:
-“Physical bravery is often allied with a
-thick-skinned mentality. I think for your own
-protection you should know what I found when
-I went to the White Room to get his suit.” He
-paused dramatically.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink winked off her glasses again and
-returned the spectacled gaze with deep interest.
-“He was kissing the nurse, perhaps,” she said.
-“She is a sweet thing.”</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink!” The exclamation was scandalized
-as her secretary regarded his lady of the
-old school with real amazement. “No. He
-was not kissing the nurse, but he was doing
-what would affect your comfort far more. He
-was smoking cigarettes.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink surprised her companion still
-further by laughing.</p>
-
-<p>“Didn’t you hear him ask me for one in the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[45]</a></span>
-motor? Now, I say he was clever, with only one
-arm and one eye, and laid low in bed, to manage
-to get cigarettes.”</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw stared. “It must have been Dr.
-Morton,” he said after a pause; “but the point
-is that, when I told him you detested them, he
-didn’t stop.”</p>
-
-<p>“He smiled, perhaps?” Miss Frink did,
-herself.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t remember; but I wasn’t going to
-stand for that, you may be sure, and I told him
-we couldn’t have the atmosphere of this house—your
-house, vitiated.”</p>
-
-<p>“Vitiated,” repeated Miss Frink musingly,
-“Fine word, Vitiated.”</p>
-
-<p>“Growing childish, upon my soul,” thought
-the secretary. “The first break!”</p>
-
-<p>“The point is,” he declared with dignity,
-“the significant point is, that he did not stop
-smoking. He asked the nurse to close the transom.”</p>
-
-<p>“Poor boy, he needn’t have done that,” said
-Miss Frink; “and, by the way, Dr. Morton
-didn’t give him the cigarettes.”</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose he got around the nurse, then.”</p>
-
-<p>“No. She isn’t guilty either; and, Grim”—Miss
-Frink paused and put back her eyeglasses
-through which she regarded the faithful one<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[46]</a></span>
-steadily—“I am entirely prepared to go
-around wearing a gas-mask if necessary. I
-might be needing one now for brimstone if it
-wasn’t for that boy, and he is going to have any
-plaything it occurs to him to want. Now, let’s
-get at these letters.”</p>
-
-<p>Her secretary blinked, and put one hand to
-his temporarily whirling head, while with the
-other he automatically gathered up the mail.</p>
-
-<p class="tb">When, toward the close of that eventful gala
-day at Farrandale, Miss Frink had courageously
-returned to the scene of the festivities,
-two girls witnessed the burst of applause which
-greeted her as she stepped from her secretary’s
-motor.</p>
-
-<p>One of them, a typical flapper, her hair and
-her skirt equally bobbed, gazed balefully at the
-apparition of the lady of the old school as she
-bowed in response to the plaudits of her townspeople.
-The other, a gentle-looking, blonde
-girl, smiled unconsciously at the black satin
-figure, as she joined in the applause.</p>
-
-<p>The eyes of the flapper snapped. “You
-shan’t do it, Millicent,” she said, pulling her
-friend’s clapping hands apart.</p>
-
-<p>“I must,” laughed Millicent. “I’m a loyal
-Ross-Grahamite.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[47]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>They were sitting in that part of the grandstand
-which had not embarrassed Rex and
-Regina by falling.</p>
-
-<p>“You can’t be loyal to her and to me, too.
-She fired me yesterday.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Damaris,” said the blonde girl sympathetically.
-“What happened?”</p>
-
-<p>“This,” said Damaris indicating her dark
-short locks.</p>
-
-<p>“Just because you had your hair bobbed?
-But you ought to have known. She won’t allow
-any clerk in the store with bobbed hair.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a wonder she doesn’t insist that all the
-men let theirs grow in a braid,” said Damaris
-scornfully. “Powdered hair and a queue would
-just suit her, I’ll bet.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m very sorry you lost the position,” said
-Millicent. “You really liked reading to her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, yes, in a way. I liked the salary; but
-it cramped my style awfully to go near the
-woman. I was always deadly afraid I’d say
-something that wasn’t in the book, and I used
-to repeat ‘prunes and prisms’ all the way from
-my house to her gate to get ready. I’ll never
-look at a prune again, nor go near a prism.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wasn’t she agreeable to work for? I never
-spoke to her, but she comes through the store
-quite often to look things over, and I think<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[48]</a></span>
-she’s wonderful. You can feel her power—something
-like Queen Elizabeth. Just think
-of her grit coming back here this afternoon.
-Everybody says she had a miraculous escape.
-It must have been an awful shock.”</p>
-
-<p>“I take a little comfort out of that,” remarked
-Damaris coolly. “You may be sure
-it was the man that was nearly killed. She’s
-indestructible, all right.”</p>
-
-<p>The girls glanced down at the seat of honor
-where Miss Frink was enthroned during the last
-speech of the afternoon, preluding adjournment
-of the leading citizens to the banquet.</p>
-
-<p>“How did you get the position, Damaris?”</p>
-
-<p>“Through my unbearable cousin, Leonard
-Grimshaw. He’s her secretary.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you’re an ungrateful rascal!” laughed
-Millicent. “I’ve seen Mr. Grimshaw often in
-the store”—the speaker caught her breath
-and turned grave. “He calls for grandpa’s rent,
-too.”</p>
-
-<p>“That nose of his,” said Damaris, “got its
-shape entirely from poking into other people’s
-affairs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who is the pretty lady with white hair who
-is with him so often?”</p>
-
-<p>“Adèle Lumbard, a <i lang="fr">divorcée</i>; no relation of
-Miss Frink’s, but calls her ‘Aunt.’ Think of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[49]</a></span>
-the lady of the old school having to house a
-<i lang="fr">divorcée</i>! It seems that Mrs. Lumbard’s grandmother
-was Miss Frink’s best friend, the only
-person, I guess, she ever loved in her life. So,
-when this girl’s marriage turned out unhappily,
-I rather think Miss Frink guessed the fault
-wasn’t all on one side, and I’m just sure Miss
-Frink took Mrs. Lumbard in as an offering to
-her friend who died long ago. I’m just sure of it
-because it’s so plain the old woman doesn’t
-love her any more than she does anybody else;
-only I think she wants to know where Adèle is,
-evenings.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Damaris! How imaginative you are.
-Why doesn’t Mrs. Lumbard read to her, then?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, why doesn’t she? Just because Adèle’s
-reading is one of the 157 varieties of things Miss
-Frink doesn’t like.”</p>
-
-<p>“And she liked yours,” said Millicent, her
-gentle voice sympathetic again.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; Leonard got her to try me, and though
-she didn’t throw me any bouquets she engaged
-me; but she informed me yesterday when we
-went to the mat, that my skirts had always distressed
-her by being so short, and now my hair
-settled it.” The speaker shook her fluffy mane.
-“I met Leonard when I went into the house,
-and he looked me over with his owl-eyes, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[50]</a></span>
-said: ‘You little fool, you’ve done for yourself
-now.’ And I had, you see.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is he always so affectionate?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, as affectionate as a snapping turtle;
-but Mother looks up to him as a great man
-because he’s closest to Miss Frink of anybody,
-and everybody believes he’ll be her heir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will he help you again?”</p>
-
-<p>Damaris shrugged her shoulders. “I suppose
-not. Why don’t you and I open a Beauty
-Parlor?”</p>
-
-<p>“One reason is that we haven’t any money.”</p>
-
-<p>“Would you if we had?”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent shook her head. “I can’t take any
-chances, Damaris, you know that. My best
-plan is not to bob my hair and stick close to
-Ross-Graham. Grandfather’s pension is so
-small, and our house is old and we have to keep
-it in repair, and that costs. Mr. Grimshaw says
-our rent is so small he can’t do anything; but
-not a day passes that we don’t remember to be
-thankful for the ground being big enough for
-Grandpa’s garden. We’re very happy.”</p>
-
-<p>Damaris looked curiously into the hazel eyes
-regarding her, so full of the warmth of sincerity.</p>
-
-<p>“You’d be a wonderful partner, Millicent.
-Even at school I used to feel there was a sort of—well,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[51]</a></span>
-a sort of perfume around where you
-were.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent laughed. “Damaris, is that a
-compliment?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, sweetness, anyway. You’d get around
-the customers every time. You’d really like
-them. I would, too, if I could make ’em look
-pretty. I’d like to have Miss Frink come in!
-Wouldn’t I do her up! Gosh, what she’d look
-like when she got out of the chair. Leonard,
-too. Wouldn’t I like to give Leonard scalp
-massage!” The speaker made a threatening
-gesture.</p>
-
-<p>“Damaris!”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t swear, dear. Say, you haven’t told
-me how snappy I look. ‘Chick’s’ the word,
-isn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent looked at the dark, sparkling face.
-“Yes, but I wish you hadn’t done it, dear.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” Damaris sighed. “I can’t put it
-back. Mother wept, but I bet I’ll get something
-just as good. Mother felt it was so refined
-to go to that grand house every day and get
-Miss Frink to sleep.”</p>
-
-<p>“To sleep?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I read to her after lunch every day,
-and I always left her asleep. That was my
-job.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[52]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Applause for the speech sounded, and Miss
-Frink rose.</p>
-
-<p>“There she goes,” said Millicent as they
-watched the tall black satin figure rise and take
-the arm of the Mayor. “Wonderful! She’s
-wonderful!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Damaris. “They say the man
-that stopped the runaway was awfully hurt.
-He may be dead by this time, but what cares
-she? She’s back on her job, Queen of Farrandale.”</p>
-
-<p>“But she took him to her own home,” said
-Millicent.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” Damaris smiled. “In Leonard’s car,
-they say. I’ll bet he writhed. Good enough for
-him. I hope—”</p>
-
-<p>“No, you don’t. Now, stop, Damaris. Let
-us get your mother, and both of you come
-home with me to supper.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, that would be awfully nice, Millicent,”
-returned the girl more gently. “You
-smell sweeter than usual.” The bobbed head
-was somewhat lowered. “You can comfort
-Mother if anybody can.”</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[53]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V<br />
-<span class="smaller">MRS. LUMBARD</span></h2>
-
-<p>Susanna Frink’s life had included little of the
-softer emotions. Of course, acquaintances and
-strangers had been voluble behind her back
-with suggestions as to what she ought to do.
-A woman, especially a rich woman, should have
-ties. Even the dignified, handsome, old-fashioned
-house she lived in had not been her
-family homestead, and it was declared an
-absurd purchase for a single woman when she
-moved into it nearly twenty years ago. The
-grounds, with their fine old trees, pleased her.
-The high iron fence, with the elaborate gates
-opening upon the driveway, pleased her. In the
-days of her restaurant—tea-house they would
-call it now—and candy-making, she had
-looked upon this house as fulfilling every idea
-she had ever had of elegance, and, when it fell
-to the possession of a globe-trotting bachelor
-who had no use for it, she bought it at a bargain
-as was her successful habit.</p>
-
-<p>Those early business days had been shared by
-another girl, gay Alice Ray, and to this partner
-of her joys and sorrows Susanna gave her heart.
-It almost broke when Allen Morehouse married<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[54]</a></span>
-Alice and carried her off to the Far West. The
-two corresponded for years, but gradually the
-epistolary bond dissolved. Miss Frink grew
-more and more absorbed in business, and the
-courageous, cheery chum of her girlhood came
-seldom to her mind until one day she received a
-letter signed “Adèle Lumbard.” It enclosed
-a picture of Alice Ray similar to one in Miss
-Frink’s possession, and the writer claimed to
-be Alice’s granddaughter. She stated that she
-was alone in the world having been divorced
-after an unhappy marriage, and, not knowing
-which way to turn, had thought of the friend
-her grandmother had loved so devotedly, and
-wondered if for the sake of auld lang syne Miss
-Frink would be willing to see her and give her
-advice as to what to do.</p>
-
-<p>Divorced! Susanna Frink’s eyebrows drew
-together. The lady of the old school had no
-patience with divorce. But here was Alice
-Ray’s granddaughter. Susanna looked at the
-picture, a smiling picture that through all the
-ups and downs of her life had stood on her
-dresser: an enlargement of it hung on her wall.
-There was no other picture in the room. Memories
-stirred. She had no sense of outgoing
-warmth toward the writer of the letter; but a
-divorce was a scandalous thing. What had the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[55]</a></span>
-girl done? Worse still, what was she likely to
-do if left to herself?</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink had no private charities. She
-gave through her secretary to the worthy
-organizations whose business it was to look
-after such matters, and troubled herself no
-further about them. Her secretary took care
-that the frequent letters of appeal should never
-reach her, but when he read Mrs. Lumbard’s,
-and saw the photograph, he knew that this did
-not come under the usual head; and so Miss
-Frink was now looking into Alice Ray’s sweet
-eyes, and the smile which seemed to express
-confidence that her good pal Susanna would not
-fail her.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink sent for Adèle Lumbard, and that
-young woman’s heart bounded with relief and
-hope. She knew all about Miss Frink—indeed,
-so closely had she kept apprised of her reputation
-for cold shrewdness that she had grave
-doubts as to the reception of her letter, and the
-curt lines of invitation rejoiced her. The old
-photograph was returned to her without comment.</p>
-
-<p>When she reached the big house, it was no
-surprise to have a maid show her to her room
-and tell her that Miss Frink would see her in
-the drawing-room in an hour.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[56]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>A sensitive soul would have been chilled by
-such a reception. Adèle Lumbard’s soul was
-not sensitive, but her body was, and she wholly
-approved of the linen in her bathroom and on
-her bed, fine in texture and all monogrammed.
-She liked the <i lang="fr">chaise longue</i> and the luxurious
-chairs. Her windows looked out on heavy-leafed
-maples and graceful birches rising from a
-perfectly kept lawn. A pergola and a fountain
-were charmingly placed.</p>
-
-<p>“If she’ll only take a fancy to me!” thought
-Adèle.</p>
-
-<p>Those piercing eyes of Miss Frink’s studied
-the pretty woman who entered the room at the
-appointed time. Perhaps there had been stirrings
-of hope that the newcomer might bring
-reminders of the one being she had loved with
-all her heart. If so, the hope died. Adèle’s dark
-eyes and ivory skin surmounted by the fluffy,
-snowy hair were striking, but as unlike the
-cheery brown and rose of sweet Alice Ray as it
-was possible to imagine.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s cold dry hand gave the plump
-smooth one a brief shake.</p>
-
-<p>“Be seated, Mrs. Lumbard!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, must you say that!” was the impulsive
-response. “Do call me Adèle for Grandmother’s
-sake.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[57]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I am sorry you got a divorce. I am a
-woman of the old school,” was the uncompromising
-reply.</p>
-
-<p>“You wouldn’t wish me to live with a bad
-man?” The dark eyes opened with childlike
-appeal.</p>
-
-<p>“No; but you needn’t have divorced him.”</p>
-
-<p>“If I didn’t, he would always be pestering
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>“You talk like a Southerner.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. Didn’t Grandmother tell you her son
-went South and married there?”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps. I don’t remember. How old are
-you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Twenty-eight. You’re looking at my hair.
-In a single night, Aunt Susanna—Oh, excuse
-me,” with apparently sudden shyness, “Grandmother
-always spoke of you to us all as our
-Aunt Susanna. We were taught to love your
-picture.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink felt slightly pitiful toward that
-“single night” statement and she kept the
-thought of her Alice in mind.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t like harrowing details,” she said
-curtly, “so I won’t ask for them.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you so much”—with a pretty
-gesture of outgoing hands—“I do so loathe
-going over it.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“No wonder. I’m glad to see you don’t
-paint your face or dye your hair.”</p>
-
-<p>The dark eyebrows lifted in surprise. “That’s
-the way I was raised, Aunt Susanna,” was the
-meek reply.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you’d better stay on here a while,”
-said Miss Frink at last, “and we’ll think what
-it will be best for you to do. Let us see. How
-long ago did Alice—did your grandmother
-die?”</p>
-
-<p>The dark eyes looked off in thought. “I was
-a little girl. It must be about fifteen years
-now.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink nodded.</p>
-
-<p>“What an old Tartar!” thought Adèle that
-night as she went to bed; but she had landed, as
-she expressed it to herself, and possession was
-nine points of the law. She hugged herself for
-her cleverness in eschewing rosy cheeks and
-having nothing on her hands but the slender
-wedding ring.</p>
-
-<p>In the careful study she had made of Miss
-Frink and her surroundings before coming here,
-she had learned about Leonard Grimshaw. The
-rumor was that, although Miss Frink had not
-really adopted him, he was the closest factor in
-her life; and when Adèle met him at dinner that
-first evening, and found that he was not a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[59]</a></span>
-guest, but living in the house, she realized still
-further his importance. Realized also that he
-might resent her claims, and so she set herself
-to win his regard; while he, hearing her call
-Miss Frink “Aunt Susanna” unrebuked, understood
-that she was to be accepted.</p>
-
-<p>They quickly formed a tacit alliance. Adèle’s
-efforts to get on intimate terms with the
-Queen of Farrandale were steadily repulsed, but
-her pride was not hurt as she observed that
-Miss Frink treated everybody with the same
-brusqueness. She discerned that the one sentiment
-of her hostess’s life was still a living
-memory. The two pictures Miss Susanna kept
-near her proved it, and one day, a week after
-Adèle’s arrival, when the lawyer came and was
-closeted alone with Miss Frink for an hour,
-Mrs. Lumbard felt jubilantly certain that the
-visit was for the purpose of inserting her own
-name in the old lady’s will.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle longed to become necessary in some
-way to her hostess. It was absurd for Leonard’s
-young cousin to be coming every day to read to
-her. She made an excuse to read something
-aloud one day, but Miss Frink interrupted her.</p>
-
-<p>“I am blunt, Adèle. I don’t have time for
-beating about the bush, and your reading
-makes me nervous. It’s all vowels.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[60]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry, Aunt Susanna,” returned the
-young woman meekly. “I do so wish I could do
-something for you—the little while I’m here.”
-The guest was always referring to the brevity
-of her visit, but weeks were slipping by. “Do
-you care for music?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, moderately,” said Miss Frink carelessly.
-“There’s a Steinway grand down in the
-drawing-room. I don’t know when it has been
-touched.”</p>
-
-<p>“I noticed that and was so tempted, but I
-didn’t want to play without your permission.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, go ahead any evening. I don’t want a
-racket in the daytime.”</p>
-
-<p>So that very evening Adèle, in the simple
-black georgette gown which made her white
-throat and arms dazzling, sat down at the piano
-in the empty drawing-room and had the triumph
-of seeing Miss Frink come through the
-portières in evident surprise, and sit down with
-folded hands to listen to the finished runs that
-were purling across the neglected keys.</p>
-
-<p>It was two weeks after Adèle’s arrival that
-Rex and Regina ran away; and, in the excitement
-of Hugh’s illness, Mrs. Lumbard had
-sufficient adroitness not to risk irritating Miss
-Frink’s rasped nerves. The piano was closed
-and she effaced herself as much as possible.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[61]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The secretary’s exasperation at the intrusion
-of the young hero beneath their roof amused
-her. He confided to her the paralyzing proof of
-Miss Frink’s indulgence in the matter of the
-cigarettes.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, if she would only go around the family!”
-sighed Adèle.</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw gave her one look of surprise, then
-shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“That would certainly be the shortest way
-out of the house for you,” he said dryly.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle colored. “You know very well you’d
-like it, too.”</p>
-
-<p>“If I did, that would be a very different
-matter. I’m disgusted with the women of
-to-day.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary was sitting at his desk, and
-Mrs. Lumbard was in the usual pose of hunting
-for a book which she always adopted in her
-visits to the study lest the lady of the old school
-should come in upon their interview. Grimshaw
-had a sort of fascination for her inasmuch
-as his position was certainly the one nearest the
-throne, and he had a large and undisputed
-authority in Miss Frink’s affairs. Adèle’s closest
-watch had never been able to discern any
-evidence of personal attachment in Miss Frink
-for her secretary, and he certainly had no<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[62]</a></span>
-cause of jealousy for Adèle on that score. This
-fact, more than her physical attractiveness,
-caused him to accept her friendly overtures
-and even to relieve himself occasionally in an
-exasperated burst of confidence.</p>
-
-<p>For the first five years of his employment by
-Miss Frink he had been youthfully docile,
-attentive, and devoted to learning her business
-affairs. At the end of that period she invited
-him for convenience to reside in her house, and
-from that time on he had been playing for the
-large stake which everybody believed he would
-win.</p>
-
-<p>He learned her likes and dislikes, never allowed
-his devotion to lapse into servility, and,
-with apparent unconsciousness of catering to
-her, kept early hours, read a great deal, and
-played with her endless games of double solitaire.</p>
-
-<p>She sometimes suggested that he seek a wider
-social life, but to such hints he always replied,
-with a demure dignity in amusing contrast to
-her brusque strength, that his manner of life
-suited him excellently, but that if she wished to
-entertain he was at her service. Miss Frink at
-times thought remotely that she should like to
-entertain. She had taken much interest in
-perfecting the details of her home, inside and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[63]</a></span>
-out; but, when she came up against the question
-of setting a definite date and issuing invitations,
-she was stirred with the same apprehensions
-a fish might be supposed to undergo if
-asked to take a stroll around the garden. She
-spoke of the matter sometimes, and her secretary
-bowed gravely and assured her that he was
-quite ready to take her orders; but the fish
-always turned away from such considerations
-and dived a little deeper into the congenial
-discussion of her business matters.</p>
-
-<p>Leonard Grimshaw thought very highly of
-himself in the present, and had many secret
-plans for an important and powerful future.</p>
-
-<p>He looked now scornfully at Adèle standing
-by the bookcase with her self-convicted blush.</p>
-
-<p>“I am disgusted with the women of to-day,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Why shouldn’t we smoke as well as you?”
-asked Adèle.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t,” he returned finally, his eyes fixed
-on the papers on his desk. “You try it once
-here, and you’ll find it will be a few degrees
-worse than Damaris bobbing her hair.”</p>
-
-<p>“Poor youngster,” said Adèle. “I must say,
-Aunt Susanna—”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what?” said Miss Frink, suddenly
-coming into the room, “Aunt Susanna what?”—she<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[64]</a></span>
-went to the desk and threw down some
-papers. “File those, Grim. Speak, and let the
-worst be known, Adèle.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary certainly admired his colleague
-as he rose to his feet. Without altering her
-pose, Adèle’s voice melted into the meek and
-childlike tone of her habit.</p>
-
-<p>“I was speaking of what a marvel it is that
-you have had no reaction from the excitement
-of that dreadful day. That is what it is to be a
-thoroughbred, Aunt Susanna.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thorough-nothing,” snorted the lady.
-“What was the use of my lying down and
-rolling over because I wasn’t hurt?”</p>
-
-<p>“And Rex is all right again, isn’t he?” said
-Adèle.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, he’s got over his scratch, and the new
-coachman does you credit, Grim. He has
-decent ideas about a check rein. Order the
-horses for me at three. Dr. Morton says it
-will not hurt Mr. Stanwood to go for a short
-drive.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink hurried out of the room, and the
-two she left in it stared at each other. Adèle
-smothered a laugh behind a pretty hand, but
-the secretary had forgotten her smooth diplomacy
-in his annoyance.</p>
-
-<p>“I wonder if she is going with him. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[65]</a></span>
-nurse is quite enough,” he said, as if to himself.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish she’d ask me to go,” said Adèle. “I
-haven’t had a glimpse of him since I saw him
-lifted out of the road.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nor she, much,” said Grimshaw. “She has
-had the nurse make frequent reports, but she
-hasn’t been in the sick-room at all. Why should
-she be bothered?”</p>
-
-<p>“No reason, of course. She is not exactly a
-mush of love and sympathy. What I was really
-going to say, Leonard, was that I don’t see how
-a young attractive man like you entombs himself
-away from his kind the way you do, and
-must have done for years.”</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw raised his eyebrows as one accepting
-his due, and brushed back his thin crest of
-hair, with a careless hand.</p>
-
-<p>“I work pretty hard,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle looked apprehensively toward the
-door, then back at him.</p>
-
-<p>“Is it always like this?” she breathed in a
-hushed voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Like what?”</p>
-
-<p>“Days all alike. Evenings all alike.” Adèle
-clenched her hands. “Nobody coming, nobody
-going. Why haven’t you dried up and blown
-away!”</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw regarded her. She had undoubtedly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[66]</a></span>
-become somewhat of a safety-valve for his
-feelings, since the day when Miss Frink brought
-a foreign body into the ordered régime of the
-big silent house, but he could do without her.
-He would rather do without everybody. His
-eyes behind the owl spectacles had a slight
-inimical gleam.</p>
-
-<p>“Why do you stay if you don’t like it?” he
-returned.</p>
-
-<p>The young woman straightened up resentfully.</p>
-
-<p>“For the same reason you do,” she retorted.</p>
-
-<p>“That is a very silly remark,” he said coldly.
-“A business man stays by his business interests.”</p>
-
-<p>She regarded him in silence, and her stiff
-posture relaxed. He was powerful and she was
-powerless. She had put herself in his power
-many times. He could undo her with Miss
-Frink any hour.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m alone in the world, Leonard,” she said,
-suddenly becoming self-pitying. “I’m so glad
-to have found a friend in you. Don’t desert me.
-I’d love Aunt Susanna if she would let me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Better not try it on,” returned the secretary
-dryly, and again seated himself at his desk.</p>
-
-<p>“But I’m human!” she exclaimed, suddenly
-appealing, “and I’m young. Can’t we ever<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[67]</a></span>
-have any fun? Aren’t there any trusties in this
-prison?”</p>
-
-<p>“Adèle!” He looked up suddenly and his
-voice cracked. “Keep these ideas to yourself,
-if you please. This is no prison. You can go
-free any day.”</p>
-
-<p>She caught her breath. She longed to tell
-him he was a cautious prig; but for the first
-time she felt afraid of him. He had confided in
-her somewhat in his irritation at the stranger
-upstairs, but that idea was no longer a novelty,
-and now she felt that he was safely withdrawing
-into his shell.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[68]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI<br />
-<span class="smaller">VISITING THE SICK</span></h2>
-
-<p>As her secretary had said, it was Miss Frink’s
-policy to keep away from the White Room.
-Experts, the doctor and the nurse, had charge
-of it. Why should she hover about like a fussy
-old hen, getting in the way and causing confusion?
-She had her business to attend to, and
-there was no reason why her life should not go
-on as systematically as before.</p>
-
-<p>So she argued. Nevertheless, this was more
-easily said than done. She had been shocked
-out of her rut, and so long as that stalwart
-figure in bed in the White Room remained
-recumbent, she knew she could not really settle
-into her usual state of mind.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Damon, the nurse, came to her three
-times a day with reports, and they were the
-interesting moments of the day to her. This
-noon she awaited the visit with unusual eagerness;
-and she hailed the young woman with a
-cheerful greeting.</p>
-
-<p>“Dr. Morton says Mr. Stanwood may go for
-a drive this afternoon,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; he is sitting up by the window now,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[69]</a></span>
-Miss Frink. I thought perhaps you would like
-to come in and visit him. He is rather low-spirited,
-you see.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is he? Is he?” responded Miss Frink
-tensely. “What do you think he wants?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, just to get well, I suppose. Convalescence
-is the hardest part after such a fever as
-he has had.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’ll come,” said Miss Frink, straightening
-herself valiantly, and she followed to the
-White Room, where in an armchair by the
-window sat a young man with long, pensive
-eyes. He was wearing, besides a gloomy expression,
-a small mustache and short beard carefully
-trimmed. A soft blanket was folded about
-his shoulders and another spread over the feet
-that rested on a cushioned stool.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s startled eyes drew from the
-nurse the explanation that Dr. Morton had not
-wished the patient to be shaved as yet, and
-there was no change of expression in the pale,
-handsome face as Hugh looked up at her
-approach.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you willing to shake hands with the old
-thing that got you into this mess?” inquired
-the visitor, and Hugh took her offered hand.</p>
-
-<p>“I see they let you look out of both eyes
-now.” She seated herself near him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[70]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, that scratch is all right,” he responded.</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Damon thought I would be a cheerful
-visitor; but I suppose I’ll never look cheerful to
-you. Now I just want to know if there is anything
-more we can do for you than is being
-done.” Miss Frink’s emphatic tone had its
-usual businesslike ring. “Don’t you want to
-smoke?”</p>
-
-<p>At this Hugh’s mustache did curve upward a
-little, showing a line of gleaming teeth.</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t like it,” he returned.</p>
-
-<p>“Who said so? Anyway, you’ll teach me.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh’s smile widened. “She is a good old
-sport,” he reflected.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want that now,” he said, grave
-again.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, is there anything on your mind?”
-pursued Miss Frink. The nurse had left the
-room. Her taciturn patient had never said an
-unnecessary word to her. Perhaps his hostess
-would have more success.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, your Aunt Sukey,” went on Miss
-Frink in a gentler tone than could have been
-expected from her. “Don’t be surprised that
-we know about your Aunt Sukey; for you
-called for her incessantly in your delirium,
-and I assure you if you would like to see her<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[71]</a></span>
-it will give me all the pleasure in the world to
-send for her and have her stay as long as you
-like.”</p>
-
-<p>The effect of this offer astonished the speaker.
-Color slowly flowed up all over the pale face,
-and Hugh grinned.</p>
-
-<p>“Did I really call for her? Priceless! No, no,
-Miss Frink. You’re a trump, but I don’t want
-her sent for.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not on good terms, then, I judge from the
-way you take it.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, we’re not. You’ve hit the nail on the
-head. I imagine that’s your way.” Still coloring,
-he met the solicitous eyes bent upon him
-as Miss Frink grimaced her glasses off.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps she is opposing a love affair. Don’t
-mind an old woman’s plain speaking; but, of
-course, we saw the sweet face in your photograph,
-and it doesn’t seem as if there could be
-anything wrong with that girl. I like the
-quaint way she does her hair. I’m a lady of the
-old school, and it’s refreshing to see a coiffure
-like that in this day of bobbed idiots. Did
-Aunt Sukey oppose her?”</p>
-
-<p>“With tooth and nail,” replied Hugh. “You
-are a mind reader.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well—dear boy”—Miss Frink hesitated—“I
-want to do anything in this world I can<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[72]</a></span>
-for you. Are you sure I can’t do anything in
-this matter?”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a little late,” said Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Never too late to mend,” returned Miss
-Frink stoutly and hopefully. She regarded the
-beauty of her companion, considering him in
-the rôle of a lover. “You look just as if you
-were ready to sing ‘Faust,’” she said. “I shall
-call her Marguerite until you tell me all about
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink little suspected that she had set
-fire to a train of thought which hardened her
-companion against her, and accented the repugnance
-to the part he was playing; a repugnance
-which had dominated him ever since the
-breaking of his fever.</p>
-
-<p>Many times he had definitely made up his
-mind that, the minute sufficient strength returned,
-he would disappear from Farrandale
-and repay John Ogden every cent of his investment
-if it took years to accomplish it. Two
-things deterred him: one, his last interview
-with Ogden in which the latter reminded him of
-his lack of initiative and self-control—in other
-words, his spinelessness. That stung his pride.
-“Remember,” said John Ogden, “of the unspoken
-word you are master. The spoken word
-is master of you.” The other incentive to continuing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[73]</a></span>
-the rôle in which he had made such a
-triumphant début was Miss Frink’s secretary.
-Hugh was a youth of intense likes and dislikes
-very quickly formed. In spite of himself he
-liked his brusque, angular hostess. To be sure,
-saving any one’s life creates an interest in the
-rescued, but it was not only that. Hugh liked
-the sporting quality of his great-aunt. He liked
-the way she had done her duty by him and not
-fussed around the sick-room. She was a good
-fellow, and he didn’t like her to be under the influence,
-perhaps domination, of the spectacled
-cockatoo who was also, in his own estimation,
-cock of the walk. If Miss Frink had kept away
-from the White Room, Leonard Grimshaw
-had not done so. He came in frequently
-with a masterful air and the seriousness with
-which he took himself, and his patronizing
-manner to patient and nurse grated on the
-convalescent.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll be darned if I’ll leave Aunt Sukey to
-him,” was the conclusion Hugh invariably
-reached after one of his visits.</p>
-
-<p>“There is something on my mind, Miss
-Frink,” said Hugh, now, “and that is Mr. Ogden.
-I’m sure he is wondering why he doesn’t
-hear from me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll write him at once,” said Miss Frink.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[74]</a></span>
-“It shall go out this afternoon. We’ll mail it together.”</p>
-
-<p>The patient’s long eyes rolled toward her
-listlessly.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. You’re going for a drive with me. Dr.
-Morton says you may.”</p>
-
-<p>“H’m,” returned Hugh. “Not until I get a
-little more starch in my legs, I guess. I can
-barely get to this chair from the bed.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, of course the butler and the coachman
-will carry you over the stairs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thanks, no. I prefer not to be handled like
-a rag doll.”</p>
-
-<p>“What have you got that blanket on for?”
-demanded Miss Frink, suddenly becoming conscious
-of the patient’s garb.</p>
-
-<p>“Why—” John Ogden in his preparations
-for his protégé had not had the foresight to prepare
-for inaction on his part. “I—I haven’t
-any bathrobe with me.”</p>
-
-<p>Here the door opened and Leonard Grimshaw
-walked in. It entertained Hugh to note
-the abasement of the uplifted crest as the secretary
-saw his employer.</p>
-
-<p>“I beg pardon. I didn’t know you were here,
-Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p>“Whether you knew it or not, you might
-have knocked,” she retorted. “Look here,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[75]</a></span>
-Grim, Mr. Stanwood doesn’t wish to drive to-day,
-so I am going now instead of later.”</p>
-
-<p>“Now, Miss Frink?” deferentially. “Luncheon
-will be served in fifteen minutes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Now,” repeated Miss Frink. “There is an
-errand I wish to do. Order the horses at once,
-please.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary bowed in silence and withdrew.</p>
-
-<p>“Bully for you, old girl. You know your own
-mind,” thought Hugh, and at that moment the
-nurse appeared with a tempting tray. The patient
-regarded it with a little less apathy than
-usual. The last few minutes had been an appetizer.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink rose. “Eat all you can, my boy. I
-shall let you see my letter to Mr. Ogden before I
-mail it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know his address?”</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly; Ross Graham buys of him. To
-tell the truth, I should have written him long
-before this if it hadn’t been I was ashamed to
-have him know the reception I gave his friend.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh smiled faintly. Age must have ripened
-Aunt Sukey. She was certainly a good sort.
-Grimshaw couldn’t put it over her whatever
-Mr. Ogden might think. Hugh still smiled as he
-thought of the depressed crest, and the deference
-of that voice so full of unction.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[76]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The secretary shook his head as he departed
-on his errand. To postpone luncheon—why,
-it was nearly as unheard of as to connive at
-cigarettes!</p>
-
-<p>“She’s breaking—breaking,” he reflected.
-“It’s the beginning of the end.”</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[77]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII<br />
-<span class="smaller">AT ROSS GRAHAM’S</span></h2>
-
-<p>The horses were at the door, likewise the secretary.
-He had encountered Mrs. Lumbard in
-the hall, and informed her that the luncheon
-gong would not sound at present.</p>
-
-<p>She lifted her shoulders. “Curfew shall not
-ring to-night! Why the <i lang="fr">bouleversement</i>?”</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink wishes to do an errand.”</p>
-
-<p>“It must be a marvelous one that won’t
-wait.”</p>
-
-<p>The crest was lifted high. “She behaves very
-strangely,” was the dignified reply. “She is”—Grimshaw
-tapped his temple—“somewhat
-changed since her shock. It betrays itself in
-many ways. My deeply beloved and respected
-Miss Frink!” He shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle gazed at him curiously, with little
-whimsical twitches at the corners of her lips.
-“We can’t expect anything else at her age,” she
-replied, in the low tone that he had used.</p>
-
-<p>The subject of their remarks now appeared at
-the head of the stairs, dressed for her drive.
-She looked a little annoyed to see the couple
-waiting below together.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[78]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, well,” she said testily. “I am not going
-on a journey. You look as if you were waiting
-to bid me a long farewell.”</p>
-
-<p>“Would you like me to go with you?”
-asked Mrs. Lumbard. “I can get my hat
-very quickly.”</p>
-
-<p>As Miss Frink reached the foot of the stairs,
-she returned the young woman’s eager gaze
-coolly. “I am not in the least shy of asking
-your company when I want you, Adèle,” she
-returned, pulling on her gloves. “Any last
-wishes, Grim?”</p>
-
-<p>“I am simply waiting to put you in your carriage,
-dear lady,” he returned, injured dignity
-again to the fore.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” brusquely. “Order lunch to be
-served in three quarters of an hour; and, Adèle,
-Mr. Stanwood doesn’t feel ready to come downstairs
-yet, but he’s sitting up, and you might
-open the piano again. There is no objection to
-your playing if you feel like it. He might like it—in
-the distance.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Lumbard lingered until the secretary
-had his employer safely ensconced and the glistening
-horses had driven away. She watched
-him come up the path, and then went out on
-the wide veranda behind the white columns to
-meet him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[79]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Grim by name and grim by nature,” she
-said, laughing. “You look funereal.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t make silly jokes,” he snapped. “I
-should think you had had a snub to last you for
-one while.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wasn’t it right between the eyes?” she returned
-cheerfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Everything that dear Miss Frink says is
-straight from the shoulder always,” said her secretary.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought you were going to say straight
-from the heart. No wonder you call her ‘dear.’
-So ingratiating, so affectionate.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is enough of that,” said Leonard
-curtly. “I am here to protect Miss Frink—even
-from her poor relations.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Lumbard crimsoned to the roots of her
-white hair. “That is a nasty, insulting thing to
-say.” The brown eyes scintillated. “The sacred
-lunch hour is postponed. I may play in the
-daytime. If you are here to protect Miss Frink,
-you would better let her relatives take care of
-themselves, and turn your attention to the crippled
-Greek god she has been visiting the last
-hour. Don’t you know, as well as I do, that she
-has gone on some errand for him? Perhaps not
-cigarettes this time, but for something he wants,
-and wouldn’t you be glad if I could have gone<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[80]</a></span>
-with her and found out what it was? You won’t
-get anywhere by insulting me, Leonard Grimshaw.”</p>
-
-<p>“There, there, Adèle.” The secretary was
-coloring, too. He disliked hearing put into
-words the thoughts that had been grumbling in
-the back of his head; but Mrs. Lumbard flashed
-past him and into the house, and, hurrying
-to open the piano, in a minute the crashing
-chords of a Rachmaninoff Prelude were sounding
-through the house. Every time those strong
-white hands came down, it was with a force
-which might have been shaking the cockatoo
-crest.</p>
-
-<p>In the White Room the convalescent’s pensive
-eyes widened. “Who can that be?” he
-asked the nurse.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure I’ve no idea, Mr. Stanwood. It
-sounds like a man. Perhaps it is Mr. Grimshaw.”</p>
-
-<p>“Say, if it is, he’s some good, after all. Only
-that’s a punk thing he’s playing. That stuff’ll
-do when you’re dead. Would you mind going
-down and asking him if he knows anything
-from ‘The Syncopated Playfellows’?”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall be glad to, Mr. Stanwood.” And
-Miss Damon went downstairs and stood outside
-the entrance to the drawing-room until the last<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[81]</a></span>
-dignified chord was dying away, then she entered.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Mrs. Lumbard!” she exclaimed in
-surprise; “we thought it was a man.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wish I was,” said Adèle vindictively, “and
-that I was just going to fight a duel, and had
-the choice of weapons. I’d choose horsewhips
-and I guarantee I’d get there first.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Damon’s demure little mouth smiled
-leniently. “Mr. Stanwood sent me down. He
-was very pleased to hear music, and we thought
-it might be Mr. Grimshaw; and Mr. Stanwood
-wanted me to ask him if he could play something
-from ‘The Syncopated Playfellows.’”</p>
-
-<p>Adèle’s eyes grew their widest. “Goodness,
-he’s human then if he did come from Olympus!”
-The eyes brightened. “To think of having
-a live one in the house! It’s the jazziest kind
-of jazz, Miss Damon. I might just as well meet
-Miss Frink at the door with a string of profanity.
-Will you stand at the window and watch
-for the carriage while I loosen up?”</p>
-
-<p>She plunged at once into the audacious
-rhythm and jerking melody requested, and
-it was not long before Leonard Grimshaw’s
-pointed nose and amazed spectacles appeared
-between the heavy satin portières. Adèle
-flashed defiance at him and pounded on her<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[82]</a></span>
-complicated way. The secretary felt beating
-symptoms in his feet, but he still glared.</p>
-
-<p>The barbaric strains came to a close.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m surprised,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“You look it,” retorted the musician.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Damon glided from the room and upstairs.
-She found enthusiasm in the pale face
-of her patient.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you. Grimshaw isn’t so dusty, after
-all. Why, he’s a wizard.”</p>
-
-<p>“It wasn’t Mr. Grimshaw. It was a Mrs.
-Lumbard, a niece of Miss Frink’s, who lives
-here.”</p>
-
-<p>“Lives here? I wonder why she hasn’t
-played before.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Miss Fink wouldn’t allow the piano
-opened while you were ill, Mr. Stanwood.”</p>
-
-<p>“Say”—Hugh looked out the window
-thoughtfully—“she’s been awfully white to
-me. Miss or Mrs. Lumbard did you say?”
-looking back at the nurse.</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. She’s a widow with white hair. Quite
-pretty.”</p>
-
-<p>“H’m! She’d better have her hair dyed if
-she’s going to play like that. It’s a wonder it
-doesn’t turn red and curl of its own accord.”</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Miss Frink had directed her
-liveried coachman to drive to Ross Graham<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[83]</a></span>
-Company’s. Rex and Regina would probably
-have gone there if left to themselves, so often
-did they traverse the road. Holding their heads
-high, their silver harness jingling, they, like
-their mistress, seemed to be scorning the parvenu
-motors among which they threaded their
-way.</p>
-
-<p>Arrived at the store, Miss Frink told the new
-coachman where to wait—it was a nuisance to
-have to break in new servants, to have to initiate
-a novice into her established customs. She
-supposed the man who had held that position
-for so many years could not help dying; nevertheless,
-if he had not done so Rex and Regina
-would never have run away with her; and, as
-she left the victoria with this reflection, another
-consideration followed close on its heels. She
-would never have known Hugh Stanwood. A
-softened expression grew around her thin lips.</p>
-
-<p>Yes, she would probably have received him
-into the store to please John Ogden, but she
-would never have taken any notice of him. The
-clerks in the big establishment held just the
-same place in her consideration as the lights, or
-the modern fixtures for carrying cash.</p>
-
-<p>She entered the store and was met by a
-deferential floorwalker.</p>
-
-<p>“How do, Mr. Ramsay. Where are the men’s<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[84]</a></span>
-dressing-gowns or bathrobes or smoking-jackets,
-or whatever you call ’em?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, that’s quite flattering, Miss Frink. I
-didn’t know that you trusted the manager to
-plan a department out of your knowledge.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is because you don’t know me, then.
-I make certain that a person is competent, and
-after that I don’t tie any strings to him; but
-this is the first time in my life I ever bought
-anything for a man. I hope you’ve got something
-decent.”</p>
-
-<p>“Now, look here, Miss Frink”—they were
-walking toward the back of the store, and
-every unoccupied clerk was casting furtive
-glances at the eagle-eyed proprietor—“that’s
-heresy, you know. New York might come over
-here and take a few lessons from our stock.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s lips twitched. It was her usual
-manner of smiling.</p>
-
-<p>“Glad to hear it. Now, prove it.”</p>
-
-<p>They reached the section desired, and Mr.
-Ramsay nodded to a blonde girl busy with her
-cash book.</p>
-
-<p>“Dressing-gowns, Miss Duane”—then he
-bowed and moved away.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s bright gaze fixed on the clerk.
-“Haven’t I seen you somewhere else?” she
-demanded.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[85]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Madam,” returned the girl. “I am in
-the glove section, but Miss Aubrey has gone
-out to lunch, so I’m over here.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know anything about the stock?”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent colored under this abruptness, but
-she smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“Not very much, but I can show you what
-we have.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink liked her tone and manner.</p>
-
-<p>“Human intelligence, eh?—Do you know
-who I am?” with sudden consideration that
-perhaps this sweetness was for the occasion.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, indeed, Miss Frink. We all know you.
-I have fitted you to gloves.”</p>
-
-<p>The lady of the old school still regarded the
-blonde head with its simple twist of hair carried
-back from a low broad forehead. “I was sure I
-had seen you. Are you always patient with
-people that snap you up?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes. I might lose my job if I wasn’t.”
-The girl laughed a little.</p>
-
-<p>The wholesomeness of her, with her color
-coming and going, pleased her customer, but
-above all the charm of her low-pitched voice
-attracted Miss Frink.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, let’s get at it, then,” she said. “I want
-a dressing-gown for a man who is recovering
-from a severe accident and beginning to sit up.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[86]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Millicent approached a series of hangers,
-Miss Frink close on her heels.</p>
-
-<p>“What size does he wear?”</p>
-
-<p>“Heaven knows, but he’s built on the quantity
-plan.”</p>
-
-<p>“Takes a large size, then.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s the idea.”</p>
-
-<p>“How about this?” Millicent drew out a
-garment covered with Persian figures.</p>
-
-<p>“Take it away, child. I don’t want a Sheik
-pattern.”</p>
-
-<p>The girl tried next a soft blue wool wrapper
-with cord and tassels.</p>
-
-<p>“Nor a baby bunting,” snapped Miss Frink.
-“I tell you he’s a he-man.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent could feel the tears of amusement
-pressing to her eyes, but she was quite frightened
-at the same time. The customer towered
-so above her and now began pulling over the
-gowns with her own hands.</p>
-
-<p>“Look here, haven’t you got something
-handsome?” demanded Miss Frink at last.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I’m sure we have what any one has,”
-stammered Millicent. “I thought if it was for
-a sick person, something soft—”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, he isn’t going to be sick all his life, I
-hope.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent hurried to some drawers at one side,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[87]</a></span>
-and opening one drew forth a dressing-gown of
-heavy black satin on which were printed small
-wine-colored flowers. Each one burst into
-brightness with one crimson petal, giving an
-effect of jewels. The rich cord and tassels
-showed threads of crimson.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s expression was one she had
-probably not worn since she was confronted by
-her first wax doll with real hair. She grimaced
-her eyeglasses off.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I think better of Ross Graham,” she
-said, after an eager pause.</p>
-
-<p>“It is very rich,” remarked the saleslady,
-demurely.</p>
-
-<p>“Not too rich for his blood, I guess,” said
-Miss Frink, handling the lustrous fabric and
-putting back her eyeglasses.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you suppose it’s big enough?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is a large size.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think he’d feel like a Christmas
-tree in it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Is he a young man?” asked Millicent.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes. He’s got a mustache and beard
-now,” said Miss Frink, appearing to think
-aloud as she caressed the satin musingly. “Of
-course that makes him look older, and his
-beard is quite red. Much redder than his hair
-and, of course, <em>crimson</em>—but that will be off<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[88]</a></span>
-in a few days—” She paused, continuing to
-consider, and Millicent’s soothing voice fell
-upon her perturbed thought.</p>
-
-<p>“You see the lining is very nice. They have
-taken that dark tint in the flowers and matched
-it, so there is nothing too gay about it, I should
-think.”</p>
-
-<p>Her hazel eyes met Miss Frink’s and her
-smile was winning. “Of course, you know best,
-but it seems to me this is a dressing-gown for
-Prince Charming.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink grimaced her eyeglasses off.</p>
-
-<p>“For whom did you say?” quickly.</p>
-
-<p>Millicent blushed. Miss Frink liked to see
-her do it.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, that’s just nonsense, but you know, the
-hero of all the fairy tales?”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t know one of them.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Prince Charming is always the hero,”
-laughed Millicent. Miss Frink in her present
-torn mental condition was not frightening. “I
-think this dressing-gown looks good enough for
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well.” Miss Frink took a long breath
-and replaced her glasses. “I’ll take it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you wish it sent?” Millicent was again
-the demure saleslady.</p>
-
-<p>“No. Just wrap it up.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[89]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“There are mules that go with it,” suggested
-the girl. She turned back to the drawer and
-brought out the glinting satin slippers.</p>
-
-<p>The corners of Miss Frink’s lips drew down.
-“What fool things for a man!” she remarked.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see why,” said Millicent, perceiving
-that the customer wished urging. “They’re
-very comfortable, and when he wears the gown
-he must have some sort of slippers.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink started. “I don’t believe he has
-any,” she mused. “Put them in,” she added,
-and sighed again.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re a very good saleswoman,” she said
-at last. “Probably hungry this minute. I
-am.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, that’s no matter for me. Did—” the
-girl paused, the box in her hand. “Did you
-want the price marks taken off?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, well! You have got more than human
-intelligence. Of course I do. How much are
-they, by the way?”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent said nothing, for her customer
-seized the articles and examined the marks.</p>
-
-<p>“Well”—straightening up—“Prince Charming
-thinks pretty well of himself, doesn’t he?
-All right, let the hide go with the hoofs, put
-the mules in.”</p>
-
-<p>While the box was being wrapped, Miss<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[90]</a></span>
-Frink looked so closely at Millicent that her
-ready color came again.</p>
-
-<p>“What did Ramsay say your name was?”</p>
-
-<p>“Duane. Millicent Duane.”</p>
-
-<p>“I never have time to beat about the bush.
-How would you like to come and read to me an
-hour every day? I’ve lost my reader and I like
-your voice.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Miss Frink”—the girl’s hands clasped
-together unconsciously. “I know Damaris.
-She was so sorry to have offended you. Her
-hair will grow again very soon—”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, her common sense won’t,” returned
-Miss Frink impatiently. “When a thing is past
-with me it’s past. I have no post mortems.
-Think it over, Miss Duane.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I can’t afford to lose my job, Miss
-Frink,” said the girl with soft eagerness. “They
-would never let me go for an hour a day, and
-my grandfather has just a small pension; we
-have to be very careful.”</p>
-
-<p>That voice. That wholesome face. That
-delicately clean shining hair. Miss Frink smiled
-a little at the ingenuous lack of consciousness
-of the power of money.</p>
-
-<p>“That would be my care,” she said. “Think
-it over.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, of course, I should like it,” said Millicent,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[91]</a></span>
-still with eagerness, “if it was right for me.
-It would give me so much more time with
-Grandpa. But there is Damaris! I can’t bear
-to think of hurting her feelings.”</p>
-
-<p>“Stuff and nonsense,” said Miss Frink.
-“Business is business. You’ll hear from me
-again.”</p>
-
-<p>A boy was called to carry the box and the
-purchaser departed leaving Millicent flushed,
-and happy, and apprehensive.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[92]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII<br />
-<span class="smaller">A TELEGRAM</span></h2>
-
-<p>As Miss Frink was leaving the store the floorwalker
-intercepted her. He had in his hands a
-letter.</p>
-
-<p>“I wonder if you can throw any light on this,
-Miss Frink. A letter that came several days ago
-to Mr. Hugh Stanwood in care of the store. We
-have no employee of that—”</p>
-
-<p>“No, but you will have,” interrupted Miss
-Frink, almost snatching the letter. “Hugh
-Stanwood is the man who hindered the rendezvous
-my horses were trying to keep with that
-express train a few weeks ago.”</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t say so. The young hero who put
-us all under such obligation?”</p>
-
-<p>“Me, anyway. I’m in no hurry to play the
-harp. Yes, he was on his way to Ross Graham’s
-when he stubbed his toe, poor boy.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Ramsay bowed. “I’ve heard that you
-are caring for him royally. I’m sure we shall be
-very glad to welcome him into our ranks if it is
-your wish.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we’ll let him catch his breath first,
-anyway. He’s doing well and, believe me, I<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[93]</a></span>
-couldn’t sleep nights if he wasn’t. I’ve just been
-getting him a dressing-gown; you don’t sell
-dressing-gowns for your health here, do you?”</p>
-
-<p>The floorwalker smiled deferentially. “Do
-you find us exorbitant?”</p>
-
-<p>“Do I! I’ll have to pay for this on the installment
-plan.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ha, ha! Very good. Very good, indeed.
-Glad we had something that pleased you.
-Good-afternoon, Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p>On the way home the lady gazed at the letter
-she was carrying.</p>
-
-<p>“John Ogden has beat me to it,” she reflected.
-At certain moments the lady of the old
-school found a relief to her feelings in slang.
-“Saber cuts of Saxon speech,” Mark Twain
-called it, and Miss Frink liked saber cuts. She
-hadn’t time to beat about the bush.</p>
-
-<p>Leaving her box below stairs where her secretary
-and Mrs. Lumbard could if they wished
-whet their curiosity on its shape and the Ross-Graham
-label, she went in to lunch with her
-bonnet on.</p>
-
-<p>The others of her family dutifully took their
-places. Adèle’s ivory tints were somewhat
-flushed. She knew from Miss Damon that she
-had scored a triumph with her invisible audience,
-and it was a certainty that that meant<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[94]</a></span>
-credit with Miss Frink. She cast an occasional
-unforgiving glance at the secretary who kept to
-his usual safe programme of speaking when he
-was spoken to.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink addressed him now. “Here is a
-letter from John Ogden to our patient,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle’s brown eyes suddenly glanced up,
-startled. Still, there were probably hundreds
-of John Ogdens in the world.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I do feel mortified not to have written
-him as soon as I received his letter of introduction.
-He will think I’m a savage when he learns
-why he hasn’t heard from his young friend.”
-The speaker regarded the letter beside her
-plate. “He addressed it in care of the store.
-Mr. Stanwood was headed for Ross Graham’s,
-you know; and they had no more idea <em>there</em> who
-Hugh Stanwood was than the man in the
-moon.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is a little embarrassing,” returned
-Grimshaw circumspectly. “Is there anything I
-can do about it?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” returned Miss Frink good-naturedly,
-“since you didn’t stand over me and make me
-answer that letter.”</p>
-
-<p>“You never showed me the letter of introduction,”
-said the secretary, “or I might have
-ventured—”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[95]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you would have ventured,” returned
-Miss Frink, “though I don’t think, Grim,
-that your slogan is ‘Nothing venture, nothing
-have.’”</p>
-
-<p>“My duty is to protect you, dear lady,”
-declared Leonard, unsmiling.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I know that, and you’re a good boy,”
-said Miss Frink carelessly. She set down her
-tea-cup. “Well, I’ll go upstairs and take my
-medicine. I hope both the boy and Mr. Ogden
-will forgive me. Will you both excuse me,
-please?”</p>
-
-<p>She left the room. Adèle longed to comment
-on the interesting-looking box she had passed in
-the hall, but she was still too angry with Grimshaw
-to address him.</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink is in remarkably good spirits,”
-he observed; and because Adèle knew she could
-irritate him, she responded:</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. She must have succeeded in finding
-something very fine for her protégé.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is going rather far to call that young
-person her protégé,” said the secretary stiffly.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle shrugged her shoulders. “Personally I
-think it is a mild name for him.”</p>
-
-<p>“She will give him the employment he seeks,
-doubtless, when he is about again,” remarked
-Leonard.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[96]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Unless she just passes over half her kingdom
-to him,” said Adèle. “You have been
-seeing him. Is he really such a beauty as he
-seemed that first day?”</p>
-
-<p>“Remarkable,” answered the secretary dryly,
-“with a flaming red beard and mustache.”</p>
-
-<p>“Horrors!” ejaculated Adèle. Then: “Poor
-thing, I suppose he couldn’t be shaved.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary pushed his chair back from the
-table. “Only a most common person could
-have demanded the music you played for
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>Adèle grimaced. “Go on. I know what you
-want to say—And only the commonest sort of
-person could have played it. Go on. Have
-courage, the courage of your convictions.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think Miss Frink will be the best person
-to comment on your actions, in this as in all
-other matters while you are a guest in her
-house.”</p>
-
-<p>The two exchanged a dueling glance. Again
-Adèle experienced that fear of her antagonist
-which she sometimes experienced. She didn’t
-dare to allow him to dislike her.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, what’s the use, Leonard,” she said with
-a sudden change of tone and manner, and she
-held out her hand.</p>
-
-<p>He drew back. “Persons shake hands when<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[97]</a></span>
-they are about to fight,” he said. “I hope there
-is nothing of that sort in the air.”</p>
-
-<p>Adèle dropped her hand. “I should hope
-not,” she returned, trying to hold him with her
-soft brown glance; but he was impervious and
-left the room.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink, armed with her box, went to the
-White Room and knocked on the door. As the
-nurse opened it, her grave little mouth was
-smiling.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve nearly cured Mr. Stanwood while
-you have been gone,” she said cheerfully.
-“I’ve heard that music was being used a good
-deal now to heal the sick; and here we have an
-example.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh was smiling, too, above his blanket
-wrappings. “Some pianist you have here,” he
-said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, did you like that?” asked Miss Frink.
-“Mrs. Lumbard played, then.”</p>
-
-<p>“By George, it was all I could do to stay in
-the chair,” said Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, now I’m glad to hear that,” said Miss
-Frink. “Music is one thing we can give you.
-I’m glad you’re in a good mood, too, for I’m
-just a little bit more ashamed than I ever
-thought I should be again.” She dropped her
-box on a chair, and, advancing, held out the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[98]</a></span>
-letter. “From Mr. Ogden,” she continued,
-“and I don’t know how old it is, and I’m real
-sorry I’m too old to blush.” She noted that the
-invalid’s hands were enveloped in the blanket.
-“Would you like me to read it to you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, oh, no,” returned Hugh hastily,
-thrusting out a hand for the letter. “I can
-read it all right.”</p>
-
-<p>The caller crossed to a window and sat down;
-and as Hugh opened his letter Miss Frink
-noticed that he was not too old to blush.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p class="noindent"><span class="smcap">Dear Hugh</span> (he read)</p>
-
-<p>I am nonplussed at not hearing from you. A
-little more and I will have to institute a search;
-for as you know I left orders for your mail to be
-forwarded to me, and a letter has come from your
-sister. I am being heroic not to open it, and I
-don’t dare forward it until I know surely where
-you are. The earth seems to have opened and
-swallowed you up. Please send me a wire as soon
-as you get this. Yours sincerely</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">John Ogden</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“Say, Miss Frink”—Hugh’s brow was
-troubled as he folded the letter. “I ought to
-send a wire to Ogden. He has been the best sort
-of a friend to me and—and sending me with
-that letter of—of introduction to you—he
-can’t understand not hearing from me—whether<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[99]</a></span>
-I got the job or—or anything you—you
-understand.”</p>
-
-<p>Long before the stammering speech was over,
-Miss Frink was beside Hugh’s chair. “Don’t
-you worry another minute,” she said. “I’ll
-send a wire at once explaining everything, and
-Mr. Ogden will know I am the only villain in
-the plot.”</p>
-
-<p>“Plot,” thought Hugh, his heart beating
-with repugnance to the situation.</p>
-
-<p>There was a knock on the door. It was a
-maid announcing the barber. “Oh, yes, Miss
-Frink,” said Miss Damon. “While you were
-gone Dr. Morton called up and said he was
-sending the barber.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let him come up,” said Miss Frink, “and
-don’t let him cut your head off, boy, because I
-want you to hear the telegram I’ll be sending
-John Ogden.”</p>
-
-<p>She proceeded downstairs to her study and
-dashed in with the novel excitability she had
-displayed ever since the runaway. The shell-rimmed
-spectacles glanced up and the secretary
-rose. His dignity of manner was exceptional
-to-day.</p>
-
-<p>“Grim, I wish to send a wire. I don’t want to
-send it over the phone nor by a servant. I want
-you please to take it down for me.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[100]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The secretary inclined his head in silence.</p>
-
-<p>An hour later John Ogden in his office read
-the following:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>Have been very remiss not to tell you that your
-friend Mr. Stanwood on day of arrival stopped
-my runaway, saved my life, broke his arm and
-head, very ill for a time at my house. Doing well
-now. If you wish to come to see him happy to
-entertain you long as you can stay. He called
-constantly in delirium for Aunt Sukey, but will
-not let me send for her. Advise me and forgive
-my carelessness.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Susanna Frink</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>John Ogden stared at this communication for
-a full minute with an incredulous gaze before he
-emitted a peal of laughter that brought tears to
-his eyes, and an office boy from the next room.</p>
-
-<p>He sent a prompt reply:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>Thank you. Will be with you next Thursday.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>When Miss Frink returned to the White
-Room, she found the invalid transformed from
-the rôle of Faust, to that of some famous movie
-hero of the present day. He was in bed again
-too tired and worried to smile at her.</p>
-
-<p>“I guess a nap will be the next thing, Miss
-Frink, and then perhaps Mrs. Lumbard will
-give us some more music,” said Miss Damon.</p>
-
-<p>“Very well,” returned the lady briskly.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[101]</a></span>
-“Here’s what I sent to Ogden.” She stood by
-the bedside and read the telegram. At the
-mention of Aunt Sukey, Hugh started to laugh.
-He was afraid to let himself go. He felt capable
-of a fit of schoolgirl hysterics.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir,” said Miss Frink stoutly; “it shall
-be just as Mr. Ogden says, not as you say,
-about sending for her. I know you, and your
-modesty about making trouble. Next time he
-gets up, Miss Damon, put this on your patient.”
-Miss Frink opened the waiting box and took
-out her gorgeous gift. She unfolded it before
-Hugh’s dazzled eyes, and Miss Damon exclaimed
-her admiration.</p>
-
-<p>“You see Ross Graham isn’t such a country
-store, Mr. Stanwood,” declared Miss Frink.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh whistled. “You called me modest,” he
-said. “Is it your idea that I shall ever wear
-that?”</p>
-
-<p>“The clerk called it a dressing-gown for
-Prince Charming,” said Miss Frink triumphantly,
-“and here are the slippers, Mr. Stanwood.
-Of course, they’ll fit you because they
-haven’t any heels. I think the girl said they
-were called donkeys.”</p>
-
-<p>“Queer,” remarked Hugh, “when donkey’s
-heels are their long suit.” But because his
-hostess was holding the satin near his hand and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[102]</a></span>
-evidently wished it, he felt the rich fabric admiringly,
-again wishing himself back in that
-familiar basement, packing boxes, honestly.</p>
-
-<p>“So music means a great deal to you, Mr.
-Stanwood,” said Miss Frink, regarding the
-patient thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t like that Mr. Stanwood from you,”
-he returned restlessly. “Hugh is my name, and
-I’d like you to use it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course I shall, then, boy,” returned his
-hostess promptly. “You like music, Hugh?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” put in the nurse with a little laugh,
-“if you had seen his eyes when Mrs. Lumbard
-was playing!”</p>
-
-<p>“H’m,” grunted Miss Frink. “Well, that’s
-easy. Now go to sleep, Prince Charming, and
-later this afternoon you shall have another
-concert.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh stifled a groan and held out his pale
-right hand. “You know I thank you, Miss
-Frink, for all your kindness.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ho,” returned that lady, taking the hand
-in her dry grasp, and quickly dropping it. “If
-I should begin thanking <em>you</em>, when do you
-suppose I should stop talking?”</p>
-
-<p>She swept out of the room and Hugh closed
-his eyes.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[103]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX<br />
-<span class="smaller">THE NEW READER</span></h2>
-
-<p>The Queen of Farrandale had long passed the
-time for waiting patiently for anything she
-wished for, so it was the very next day that
-Millicent Duane came to the big house for a
-trial reading.</p>
-
-<p>She gave such perfect satisfaction that it
-was scarcely five minutes after she began that
-a delicate snore began to proceed from Miss
-Frink’s slender nose. Millicent regarded the
-recumbent figure in some embarrassment, and
-stopped reading.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s eyes opened at once. “Well,
-well, child, what are you waiting for?” she
-asked testily. “Got a big word?”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent, crimsoning to the tips of her ears,
-began again to read. She was afraid to stop,
-although the snoring began again almost immediately,
-and read on and on in the novel of
-the day. Although Miss Frink was a lady of the
-old school, she proposed to know what was
-going on in the world at the present time, and
-she always bought the book which received the
-best reviews, though Millicent came to wonder<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[104]</a></span>
-how she made anything of it in the hashed
-condition in which it penetrated her consciousness.</p>
-
-<p>At last, when the lady was positively fast
-asleep, Millicent closed the book, took her hat
-and wrap in her hand, and went noiselessly out
-into the hall and down the stairs.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Lumbard met her at the foot, and the
-young girl accosted her.</p>
-
-<p>“This is Mrs. Lumbard, isn’t it?” she said
-shyly. “I am Millicent Duane. Miss Frink
-didn’t tell me what to do if she went to
-sleep.”</p>
-
-<p>“You guessed right,” returned the other.
-“There is nothing to do but leave her until she
-has her nap out. You have evidently qualified.”
-Mrs. Lumbard laughed; it was not a
-pleasant laugh Millicent thought. “I tried to
-read to her, but she wouldn’t have me. Won’t
-you sit down a minute, or are you too busy?”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent hesitated, but seated herself near
-the other in the spacious hall with its broad
-fireplace. “I am not busy at all,” she said,
-“and it seems so strange after being a whole
-year in the store.”</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose you mean the Ross-Graham
-establishment. That is <em>the</em> store in Farrandale,
-is it not?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[105]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, indeed, and I suppose it is the finest
-one anywhere,” returned Millicent seriously.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle gazed upon her earnest face with its
-youthful color and nimbus of blonde hair.</p>
-
-<p>“Have you known Miss Frink long?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, we all know her by sight, but I never
-spoke to her until yesterday when she came in
-to buy a dressing-gown, and I happened that
-day to have been put on the dressing-gowns.
-Wasn’t I lucky?—for this came of it.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent’s happy smile revealed a dimple.
-Mrs. Lumbard’s eyes scrutinized her.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll warrant she bought a handsome one,”
-she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, gorgeous. The handsomest one we had.
-I told her it was fit for Prince Charming.” The
-young girl gave a little laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, one would do that for the man who
-had saved one’s life,” remarked Adèle.</p>
-
-<p>The guest’s lips formed a round O. “Does he
-still live here?” she asked, “and is he getting
-well?”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Lumbard shrugged her shoulders. “I
-hear so, but I’ve never seen him.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent looked about her in some awe. “I
-suppose in such a great place as this, people
-might not meet for days. Grandfather and I
-live in a little cubby-house”—the admiring<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[106]</a></span>
-eyes came back to Mrs. Lumbard’s brown,
-curious stare—“but it has a big yard and we
-love it.”</p>
-
-<p>The older woman leaned back and shrugged
-her shoulders again. At this juncture Miss
-Frink appeared on the stairs.</p>
-
-<p>Millicent saw her, and, springing up, met her
-where the brass jardinières filled with ferns grew
-at the foot of the wide descent.</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t know what to do about leaving,
-Miss Frink. I saw you were resting so well.”</p>
-
-<p>The hostess, with a sharp glance at Adèle’s
-luxurious posture, laid a kind hand on the girl’s
-shoulder as she returned the sweet, eager look.</p>
-
-<p>“You did quite right,” she replied. “Leave
-me when you see I am dead to the world, and
-then—you may go right home.”</p>
-
-<p>“Right home,” repeated the girl, a little
-falteringly.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Miss Frink pleasantly. “When
-you leave me, go right home. You read well.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you,” said Millicent. “I hadn’t
-thought to ask you. Good-afternoon, Miss
-Frink. Good-afternoon, Mrs. Lumbard.”</p>
-
-<p>Her cheeks were hot as she hurried into her
-hat and jacket and out the door. When she
-reached home, her heart was still quickening
-with a vague sense of having done wrong. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[107]</a></span>
-pretty white-haired lady’s eyes and laugh were
-curious and cold. Miss Frink had been displeased
-that she had stayed and talked with
-her. Perhaps she ought not to have told about
-the dressing-gown.</p>
-
-<p>Old Colonel Duane was bending his white
-head and smooth-shaven face over the little
-green sprouts in a garden plot when his granddaughter
-flung open the gate and rushed to
-him.</p>
-
-<p>He raised himself slowly and looked around
-at her flushed cheeks. She pushed her hand
-through his arm and clutched it.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, how did you get along, Milly? Does
-it beat fitting on gloves?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m so mortified, Grandpa,” was the rather
-breathless reply. “I had to be sent home.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, come, now! You can stay home if
-that’s the case. Is Miss Frink an old pepper-pot
-as folks say?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, no; she was kind to me, and I read her
-to sleep, which is what she wants; but I wasn’t
-sure what to do then, so when I met Mrs.
-Lumbard in the reception hall downstairs she
-asked me to sit down and I did. You remember
-my telling you about the white-haired lady
-who looks like a beauty of the French Court
-with big brown eyes? Well—there’s something<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[108]</a></span>
-queer—I don’t like her—and you know
-the Prince Charming dressing-gown I told you
-Miss Frink bought of me? Well, I told Mrs.
-Lumbard about it and she hadn’t known it.”
-Big tears began to form and run down the girl’s
-cheeks. “You know how we tell each other
-everything and show each other everything?
-Well, <em>they</em> don’t, for she didn’t know it, and she
-said it was for that man who stopped the runaway,
-and he’s still there and she has never
-seen him, and—and Miss Frink suddenly
-came downstairs, and said hereafter I was to go
-right home when I left her. Oh”—Millicent
-raised her handkerchief to her burning cheek—“very
-pleasantly she said it, but what will she
-think when she hears that I told about the
-dressing-gown? She’ll think I’m a common
-gossipy girl.” The tears flowed fast. “It’s
-worse than Damaris bobbing her hair. Perhaps
-I’ll get word to-morrow morning not to come,
-and I’ve given up Ross Graham’s—” The
-speaker’s voice encountered a large obstruction
-in her throat and stopped suddenly, while she
-mopped her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Her grandfather patted the hand clutching
-his arm and gave a comforting little laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t make a mountain out of a molehill,
-child. I judge Miss Frink doesn’t care much<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[109]</a></span>
-for the French beauty. She didn’t like finding
-you together.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think it might be that? Why, she is
-her niece.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, but I’ve heard of such phenomena as
-lack of devotion between aunt and—grand-niece,
-isn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes—I believe so, but how funny that
-you know, Grandpa!” Millicent sniffed and
-mopped.</p>
-
-<p>“What I don’t know about what goes on in
-Farrandale has never been known by anybody.
-I’m an easy mark for every one who has anything
-to tell. Always doddering around the
-house or the estate,” waving his hand about
-the fifty feet of yard, “if people can’t find anybody
-else to unburden themselves to, there is
-always old Silas Duane.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re so charming, Grandpa,” exclaimed
-the girl, clasping his arm tighter than before
-and trying to check her tears, “that’s why they
-come; and if you told <em>me</em> everything you hear,
-I shouldn’t be such a greenie and lose my
-job.”</p>
-
-<p>“You won’t lose your job. You succeeded,
-and that’s what Miss Frink wants. No failures
-need apply.”</p>
-
-<p>“But, Grandpa”—Millicent swallowed a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[110]</a></span>
-sob—“did you know that the man, the hero,
-was still at Miss Frink’s?”</p>
-
-<p>“Surely I did. Leonard Grimshaw was here
-day before yesterday. He has troubles of his
-own.” Colonel Duane laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Does Mr. Grimshaw confide in you?”
-Millicent asked it with some awe. “Now I
-know that you don’t tell me <em>anything</em>.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, so long as I always have the rent
-ready, Grimshaw is quite talkative. This Mr.
-Stanwood is somewhat of a thorn in his flesh
-evidently. He says it is because a sick person
-in the house upsets everything, and it is a
-nervous strain on Miss Frink; but I imagine her
-personal interest in the young man is a little
-disturbing.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is he a young man?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; according to Grimshaw a young nobody
-from nowhere, who was on his way to
-look for a job at Ross Graham’s.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent’s pretty eyes, apparently none the
-worse for their salt bath, looked reflective. “He
-may have <em>been</em> a nobody, but any one who Miss
-Frink believes saved her life becomes somebody
-right away.” The girl paused. “I see now why
-she seemed pleased to have me say it was fit for
-Prince Charming. Oh, that hateful old dressing-gown!
-If only Mrs. Lumbard didn’t say<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[111]</a></span>
-anything to Miss Frink about it after I came
-away! Grandpa, I can’t bear to do that the
-first thing.”</p>
-
-<p>The girl buried her eyes against the arm she
-was holding. “Miss Frink doesn’t know that I
-didn’t know she had a young man in her house,
-and I calling him Prince Charming. Mrs. Lumbard
-has never seen him. Miss Frink doesn’t
-know that I have a grandfather who never tells
-me anything when I tell him every thing.”</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Duane smiled and patted her. “Just
-go on telling me everything, and don’t tell it to
-anybody else. You laugh at me when you catch
-me talking to myself; but I’m like that man
-who had the same habit, and said he did it
-because he liked to talk to a sensible man, and
-liked to hear a sensible man talk.”</p>
-
-<p>Then, as Millicent did not lift her head, he
-went on. “I’ll give you another quotation: a
-comforting one. It was our own Mr. Emerson
-who said: ‘Don’t talk. What you are thunders
-so loud above what you say, that I can’t hear
-you.’ Now, Miss Frink is, I suppose, as shrewd
-a woman as ever lived; and something that you
-<em>are</em> has thundered so loud above all that dressing-gown
-business that you needn’t lose any
-sleep to-night or quake in your little shoes to-morrow
-when you go back to her.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[112]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Millicent breathed a long sigh and straightened
-up.</p>
-
-<p>“Then I think I’ll go in and make a salad for
-supper,” she replied. “It’s such fun to have
-time—and it—it seems so ungrateful—”</p>
-
-<p>“Tut-tut,” warned her grandfather; and just
-then Damaris came in at the gate.</p>
-
-<p>“I heard you began reading to her to-day,”
-she said eagerly and without preface. “You
-look sort of pale. Did she scare you to
-death?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. She went right to sleep. How could
-you hear about it, Damaris? I was coming to
-tell you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Dr. Morton had to come to see Mother, and
-he told us. He told us all about that Mr. Stanwood,
-too. He’s nearly well. Dr. Morton says
-he’s so handsome all the girls in town will mob
-him; and there you will be right on the inside.
-Some people’s luck!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, don’t—I don’t want to see him,” said
-Millicent, so genuinely aghast that the girl
-with the bobbed hair laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, perhaps you’ll see that dressing-gown.
-He must have been the one she was buying
-it for.”</p>
-
-<p>“Damaris, did I tell you about that dressing-gown?”
-The girl’s tone was tragic.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[113]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Why, of course—you were telling me only
-last night the way you met Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent caught her breath. “Never speak
-of it again, Damaris.”</p>
-
-<p>“How exciting!” The flapper’s eyes sparkled.
-“What’s up?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing. Nothing at all.” Millicent’s
-usual serenity had entirely vanished. “It’s
-dangerous to have to do with powerful people,
-that’s all. I was so safe in the glove section and
-my customers liked me”—another sob caught
-in the speaker’s throat. “Everything is your
-fault, Grandpa, if your eyes hadn’t been injured
-in the Cuban War I shouldn’t have begun to
-read aloud when I was knee-high to a grasshopper
-and I shouldn’t read so well—and you
-never tell me anything, and—Damaris, I lay
-awake last night thinking that if I did leave the
-gloves, you ought to have my place. What
-could we do with your hair!”</p>
-
-<p>Damaris shook it ruefully.</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s go in the house and see what we can
-do with ribbons and an invisible net—and I’ll
-ask Miss Frink—if I ever see her again.”</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[114]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X<br />
-<span class="smaller">JOHN OGDEN ARRIVES</span></h2>
-
-<p>As the heavy door closed behind Millicent,
-Mrs. Lumbard straightened up. How could
-Miss Frink reasonably criticize her for civility
-to the young girl, although the mandate just
-expressed revealed an objection? “Disagreeable
-old thing!” reflected Adèle, while her face
-expressed only deferential attention.</p>
-
-<p>She expected to see her hostess disappear as
-usual in the direction of the study; but instead,
-Miss Frink, eyeing her steadily, came and took
-the chair Millicent had vacated, and began at
-once to speak: “The presence of a sick person in
-the house throws out the general routine,” she
-said. “I have really been very anxious until
-now about Mr. Stanwood; but he is coming out
-all right and now I can give my mind to your
-affairs. You said your idea in coming here was
-to get me to help you decide what to do. I presume
-you have been studying on your problem.
-Have you come to any conclusion?”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Lumbard blinked under the unexpected
-attack, and for a minute could not find the
-right words to reply to the entirely impersonal
-and businesslike regard bent upon her.</p>
-
-<p>“You are young,” went on Miss Frink.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[115]</a></span>
-“You are an expert musician. My house is a
-very dull place for you to live.” Adèle wondered
-if Leonard had quoted her. “You must
-have been revolving some plans in your mind.
-I can give my full attention to you now.
-Speak on.”</p>
-
-<p>Oh, how hard it was to speak under that cool
-gaze; since she could not say, “Yes, this house
-is a regular morgue, but my luxurious bed and
-your perfect cook reconcile me to staying here.”
-There was nothing in Miss Frink’s manner to
-suggest that she had any idea that this guest
-might make an indefinite stay.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Lumbard’s face maintained its deferential
-look and her voice took the childlike tone
-she could use at will. “A spineless tone,” Miss
-Frink dubbed it mentally. She rebuked herself
-for not liking Adèle, but the latter’s love of idle
-luxury “thundered above” her inefficient meekness,
-and not all of Susanna’s still green memory
-of her Alice could antidote her distaste for
-the young woman’s lack of energy.</p>
-
-<p>“To tell the truth,” said Adèle slowly, “it
-has been so wonderful to be in a safe, quiet
-harbor that I have given up to the refreshment
-of it for this little while, and just enjoyed your
-sweet hospitality. I think I have been unconsciously
-waiting for just such a moment as this,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</a></span>
-when your experience and wise thought could
-direct me—”</p>
-
-<p>“No, no, child, don’t talk that way. A
-woman of your age shouldn’t need directing—”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink paused, for a servant entered the
-hall, and went past them to the door.</p>
-
-<p>As he opened it John Ogden entered, a suitcase
-in his hand. At sight of his hostess he
-paused in announcing himself.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Miss Frink,” he exclaimed, as the
-servant took the suitcase, “I counted on your
-not minding a surprise party, for I found it
-was possible to come at once.”</p>
-
-<p>The two women rose, and Adèle saw that
-the mistress of the house could be cordial if
-she wished to.</p>
-
-<p>Scarcely had Ogden dropped Miss Frink’s
-hand when he realized her companion. “Why,
-Mrs. Reece,” he said, in a changed tone, “what
-a surprise to find you here—away from your
-sunny South,” he added hastily, fearing his
-amazement betrayed more than he wished.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle, coloring to the tips of her ears, shook
-hands with him and murmured something
-which Miss Frink’s brusque tone interrupted.</p>
-
-<p>“Stebbins,” she said to the servant, “Mr.
-Ogden will have the green room. Show him to
-it, and when he is ready take him to Mr. Stanwood<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[117]</a></span>
-at once. Mr. Ogden, you are more than
-welcome, and I know you will do Mr. Stanwood
-a world of good. I will see you a little
-later.”</p>
-
-<p>When the guest had vanished up the stairs,
-Miss Frink resumed her seat and her companion
-sank into hers, as pale as she had been scarlet.</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose you can explain,” said Miss
-Frink.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr.—Mr. Ogden never met me after my
-second marriage,” said Adèle faintly.</p>
-
-<p>“The first one died, I hope.”</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose you know why you are so rough,
-Aunt Susanna.” Adèle was evidently controlling
-tears.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you know how I feel. I like the sod
-kind better than grass. Never mind my bluntness,
-child. That’s neither here nor there. Mr.
-Reece left you something?”</p>
-
-<p>“His life insurance, yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then it was all gone, I suppose, when you
-decided to try again, and drew a blank in the
-matrimonial market.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes—almost,” faltered Adèle.</p>
-
-<p>“Then, did the unpleasant ceremony you
-were forced to go through afterward result in
-your getting any alimony?”</p>
-
-<p>“A—a very little.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[118]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s lips twitched in her peculiar
-smile. “And you still had some life insurance
-from number one. You’re a fast worker, Adèle.”</p>
-
-<p>At this the tears came.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, don’t cry,” said Miss Frink impatiently.
-“You can do that later. I was wondering
-if you would care for a position in Ross
-Graham’s. I took Miss Duane away from the
-gloves, and I told them not to fill the place at
-once.”</p>
-
-<p>The young widow’s angry breath caught in
-her throat, but she stammered meekly:</p>
-
-<p>“And go on—living here?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you wouldn’t be willing to do that,
-would you?” said Miss Frink reasonably.</p>
-
-<p>“Would you want Miss Frink’s niece to be
-selling gloves in her store?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ho!” exclaimed the other with a short
-laugh. “Miss Frink herself sold candy and
-cake and waited on table and was glad when
-she got a tip, and everybody in town knows it.”</p>
-
-<p>Adèle’s cheeks burned again. “It would be
-foolish not to utilize my music,” she said.
-“Since you have no pride in the matter, no
-doubt there are movie theaters in Farrandale,
-and I can perhaps play in one.”</p>
-
-<p>The young woman got the reaction she was
-trying for.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[119]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“No, you can’t,” returned Miss Frink
-promptly. “That’s where I draw the line. Let
-the men do that.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Lumbard rose. “Please excuse me,”
-she said faintly. It was the psychological
-moment. She had put Miss Frink in the wrong.
-Let her reflect a little. She knew the conscientious
-fairness under that rough husk. “I feel
-ill, Aunt Susanna,” she faltered. “I should like
-to lie down for a while.”</p>
-
-<p>Her handkerchief to her eyes she passed up
-the broad staircase, Miss Frink looking after
-her, and feeling baffled.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, you’d like to lie down the rest of your
-life,” she declared mentally. It was too bad
-that Alice Ray could not have given the legacy
-of her splendid backbone to her descendants.
-“It’s tiresome, too,” added Miss Frink to herself.
-“I meant her to play to the boy about
-now; but I suppose she’s got to snivel just so
-long.”</p>
-
-<p>There being no tears behind Mrs. Lumbard’s
-handkerchief, she was herself when in the dim
-large hall above she met Mr. Ogden and the
-butler coming out of the green room.</p>
-
-<p>“You can go,” she said hurriedly to the latter.
-“Mr. Ogden and I are old friends, Stebbins. I
-will show him Mr. Stanwood’s room.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[120]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The man bowed and departed.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Ogden, I’m not Mrs. Reece—that is,
-you know, not any more.” She gave a nervous
-little laugh. “I’m—I’m Mrs. Lumbard now.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden bowed. “I’ll remember. Such matters
-are very quickly arranged, these days. I’m
-sorry not to have been up-to-date.”</p>
-
-<p>She forced another little laugh at this.</p>
-
-<p>“You know Aunt Susanna is a lady of the
-old school and she detests—er—second marriages,
-and things like that—divorces and
-everything. You understand.”</p>
-
-<p>“Your aunt!” exclaimed Ogden in amazement.
-“Well, I am indeed ’way, ’way behind
-the times. I had no idea Miss Frink had a niece
-and, and—”</p>
-
-<p>“Least of all, me, I suppose,” put in Adèle,
-laughing again.</p>
-
-<p>“Your little girl, is she here?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, never mind about the baby either,
-Mr. Ogden, please. You see, Aunt Susanna is so
-peculiar, and we’ve always been strangers. I
-haven’t even told her about the baby. I didn’t
-want to annoy her by bringing a child here.
-Just don’t know anything, please, except that
-I’m Mrs. Lumbard now, and you met me in
-Atlanta, and never say a word about what I
-was doing, because she would faint away at a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[121]</a></span>
-mention of the stage, and I don’t want to offend
-her.”</p>
-
-<p>“I understand perfectly.” Ogden bowed
-gravely. He thought he did.</p>
-
-<p>At this moment Leonard Grimshaw, always
-silent-footed as a cat, appeared in the dimness
-of the hall, coming from his room. Adèle had no
-means of knowing whether he had heard any of
-their talk, but was alertly conscious that he
-must notice the intimacy of their position as
-they stood conversing in hushed tones like a
-pair of conspirators.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, it’s Mr. Grimshaw,” she said lightly.
-“Perhaps you know—”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, I do,” said Ogden, and the two
-men approached and shook hands.</p>
-
-<p>“We expected you Thursday,” said the secretary,
-with a formal bow.</p>
-
-<p>“And I hope Miss Frink will forgive my impatience.
-She says she will.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Ogden and I were so surprised to see
-each other,” said Adèle. “We met in Atlanta
-through our interest in music. You came in the
-nick of time, Leonard. Stebbins was just going
-to take Mr. Ogden to Mr. Stanwood’s room
-and I intercepted him. Now you will do it.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary bowed again. “If that is Miss
-Frink’s wish.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[122]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Both Miss Frink’s and mine,” said Ogden
-pleasantly. “I understand the boy has provided
-a good deal of excitement in this corner of
-the world.”</p>
-
-<p>“One can’t help being ill,” said Grimshaw
-stiffly, “but it is astonishing how that sort of
-thing permeates a house and changes its routine.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden’s fist doubled as he followed his guide,
-but he made no reply. The secretary as usual
-forgot to knock at the door of the White Room,
-and throwing open the door ushered in the
-guest.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Damon had gone downstairs, and there
-sat the convalescent in the big chair by the
-window. Ogden gasped. The secretary stared.</p>
-
-<p>Freshly shaved, the rich folds of the dressing-gown
-about him, his feet in the glinting mules
-on the footrest, his handsome head leaning
-against the white upholstery of the armchair,
-he formed a picture which filled one of his
-guests with enthusiasm, and the other with
-fury.</p>
-
-<p>“Is this the Rajah of Nankagorah!” cried
-Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh’s heart leaped with a combination of
-joy and rage. It was ages since he had seen a soul
-who knew him, and here was the reason. He<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[123]</a></span>
-wanted to hug him. He wanted to choke him.</p>
-
-<p>He kicked away the stool, pulled himself to
-his feet and showed his teeth in a snarling sort
-of smile. “Damn you, Ogden!” he said.</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden laughed and, striding forward,
-threw an arm around the satin-clad shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Which is the safe hand? Which arm was
-it?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“They’re both safe to do for you one of these
-days,” returned Hugh, clutching his friend.</p>
-
-<p>The secretary waited for no more. The
-apparition of Miss Frink’s extravagance and
-its stunning effect roused a fever of resentment
-in him. He went out and closed the door. He
-continued to stand outside it for a minute, but
-the old house was well built and the voices
-within were low. He moved away and downstairs,
-and was just in time to see Miss Frink
-going out the front door, attired in wrap and
-hat.</p>
-
-<p>“Dear lady, aren’t you coming into the
-study?”</p>
-
-<p>“Some time,” she replied lightly. “I made a
-purchase by ’phone this morning and I want to
-look at it before it is sent up. Have you seen
-Mr. Ogden?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I’ve just taken him to Mr. Stanwood’s
-room.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[124]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I suppose the boy was delighted to see
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know. He swore like a trooper,”
-replied the secretary with a righteous, long-suffering
-lift of his crest.</p>
-
-<p>The lady of the old school looked pensive,
-and smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“Can the boy swear? What a naughty boy!”
-she said. “I imagine he looks handsomer than
-ever when he is excited.”</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw’s full lips tightened as he escorted
-her out to the carriage.</p>
-
-<p>“Breaking. Breaking fast,” he thought, and
-he made up his mind to be on the lookout for
-the bill for that dressing-gown. As a matter of
-fact, he never did see it. In some way Miss
-Frink managed to extract that from the usual
-routine.</p>
-
-<p>“What is she up to now?” he muttered,
-watching the spirited bays jingling up the
-street at the pace they took when their owner
-was in a hurry. An awful certainty possessed
-him that the occupant of the White Room—the
-resplendent young Rajah who looked handsome
-when he swore—had something to do
-with their celerity.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[125]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI<br />
-<span class="smaller">A MUTINOUS ACTOR</span></h2>
-
-<p>John Ogden waited long enough to shake his
-fist toward the closed door before he turned
-back to regard Hugh, who, with features refined
-by illness, perfectly groomed, and grandly arrayed,
-seemed to him a new person. The gloomy
-expression in the eyes, however, warned him.</p>
-
-<p>“Sit down again, Hugh,” he forced the tall
-fellow back into the white easy-chair, “and let
-me speak first.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh sat down perforce, but with a belligerent
-expression. “No, sir. I’m going to do all
-the speaking,” he said. “You got me into this
-and you’ve got to get me out.”</p>
-
-<p>“Now, now, boy”—Ogden drew the nearest
-chair forward and dropped into it. “I
-expected I might find you a bit morbid—”</p>
-
-<p>“Morbid!” explosively. “Me with a nurse!
-Me being stuffed four times a day with the
-delicacies of the season! Me dressed up like a
-Christmas doll! I don’t need anything but a
-wrap of tissue paper and a sprig of holly to be
-ready for delivery; and me a liar all the
-time—”</p>
-
-<p>“Look here, Hugh”—John Ogden faced<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[126]</a></span>
-the indignation in the dark eyes. “Did you
-notice my escort as I came in? And is he on
-such intimate terms with you that he bolts into
-your room without ceremony?”</p>
-
-<p>“We’re on no terms at all. I despise the
-little cockatoo and he hates me—”</p>
-
-<p>“He has reason,” put in Ogden with a nod.</p>
-
-<p>“I’d like to know why. I haven’t done anything
-to him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, you have.” John Ogden spoke
-slowly.</p>
-
-<p>“What, I’d like to know?”</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve delayed the settling of the estate—unwarrantably,
-and—indefinitely.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh stared, and then broke forth hotly.
-“Oh, look here, that’s a darned mean thing to
-say!”</p>
-
-<p>“I think he’s a darned mean little man,”
-returned Ogden calmly. “Now we’ve got to
-look this ground all over, if I’m to get you out
-of here. How comes on Sukey the Freak?”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh’s face flushed. “She’s a wonder, and a
-sport,” he answered. “If she wasn’t so infernally
-grateful to me for breaking my arm, she’d
-be all right.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I think the Queen of Farrandale likes
-her job pretty well. You probably did help her
-to keep it, you know.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[127]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, well, I’m sick of hearing about it,” said
-Hugh restlessly, “and if she knew who I am I
-could stand all this pampering better; but it’s
-degrading to be waited on, and stuffed, and
-having to accept presents when—when I’m
-deceiving her; and I warn you”—he began
-speaking faster—“I’m not going to stand it,
-and I just waited to see you. Miss Damon, the
-nurse, is a good scout, but I hate the sight of
-her. I want to be let alone. My arm is all
-right”—he moved it about—“a little weak,
-but here’s my right all the time.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you went off your head, my dear boy,
-and shouted for Aunt Sukey till you brought
-tears from a bronze image.” Ogden didn’t dare
-to laugh. “It rests with me to bring her here
-right now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, and you think that’s very funny, I
-suppose.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think that such a début as you made in
-the rôle I planned for you was little short of
-miraculous; and to give it up and leave it would
-be flying in the face of Providence.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t care whose face I fly in. I’m strong
-enough to move out of here, and I’m going.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden regarded him thoughtfully from the
-thatch of auburn waves down to his jeweled
-satin feet.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[128]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“If a film-producer should come in here now,
-you would never be allowed to learn the department-store
-business,” he said. “I’ll wager that
-Miss Frink is having a romance—rather late
-in life, I admit, but it goes all the deeper.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh shook his head gravely. “Don’t make
-any fun of her. Whatever she did to my father,
-she has been wonderful to me. I’ll be ashamed
-to face her when the truth comes out.”</p>
-
-<p>“By that time you won’t, boy. Grimshaw is
-so jealous of you that it shows your work is
-well begun.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ugh! The meanness of it,” said Hugh
-repugnantly. “She is so frank and honest that
-it’s disgusting to be plotting against her. Grimshaw
-has got it all over me. He’s in his own
-cockatoo colors when all’s said and done; but
-I”—the speaker lifted a fold of his rich robe
-and dropped it with a groan.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m pleased that you like Miss Frink so
-much,” said Ogden, ignoring this. “Everything
-will come out all right. Everybody
-confined to a sick-room gets morbid.” The
-speaker looked about the spacious apartment,
-and through a door ajar had a glimpse of the
-silver and tile of the bathroom. “Isn’t the
-house charming?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” replied Hugh curtly. “I<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[129]</a></span>
-know when I once get out of it I’ll never see it
-again.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden smiled. “My actor is more temperamental
-than an opera star,” he mused aloud.
-“Promise me one thing, boy; I think you owe
-me that much. Promise me you won’t take any
-step without forewarning me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course I owe it to you,” said Hugh bitterly.
-“I owe everybody. I’ve been the most
-appalling expense both to you and Miss Frink,
-it makes me sick to think of it when I don’t
-know how I can ever get even.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll get even with me by just doing what
-I say,” returned the other forcefully. “Of
-course, I haven’t seen you and Miss Frink
-together yet, but I’m certain you have been
-and are being a wonderful event in her life.
-She has been the loneliest woman I ever knew
-except on her business side. Look at this perfectly
-appointed house. I never heard of any
-entertaining here, nor even a passing guest. It
-took somebody with the nerve to come in and
-go right to bed and stay.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh drew a long breath, and felt that he
-should never like John Ogden again. He might
-be a ne’er-do-well himself, but at least he had a
-sense of honor.</p>
-
-<p>“But, by the way, I found the record broken<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[130]</a></span>
-to-day,” went on Ogden. “I was much surprised
-to find Miss Frink had a niece, and that
-she is staying here: a Mrs. Reece—or I think
-she said it was Lumbard or some such name,
-now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I shall have to divide the fortune with
-one person.”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden laughed cheerfully. The statement
-came so tragically from between clenched
-teeth. “Have you met her?” he continued.</p>
-
-<p>“No; but I heard her play yesterday. She’s a
-wizard, even if she has got white hair as the
-nurse told me.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden gave his head a quick shake. “Don’t
-be misled by that white hair. I’ve met her
-several times in the South; and she is just about
-the last person on earth that I should expect to
-turn out to be Miss Frink’s niece. In fact”—the
-speaker paused reflectively—“I must say
-I can’t help doubting the fact.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes. I suppose you think she’s an
-impostor like me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not like you, at any rate.”</p>
-
-<p>“Any one as strictly honorable as Miss
-Frink makes an easy prey,” declared Hugh
-severely, “but it would be a little hard to get
-away with the false declaration by a woman
-that she is her niece.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">[131]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“A niece more incredible than a nephew, you
-think?” said Ogden cheerfully.</p>
-
-<p>This persistent light-heartedness was met
-with a scowl.</p>
-
-<p>“You and I can’t hope to look at this matter
-alike, Mr. Ogden. You see something amusing
-in hoodwinking one of the finest, most
-straightforward women who ever lived in the
-world—”</p>
-
-<p>“Bully! Bully! Bully!” ejaculated the other.
-“Better than I could have hoped. Now, hold
-your horses, boy, you’ve proved you know how,
-and you’re going to be smiling at me instead of
-scowling a little later.”</p>
-
-<p>“She’s killing me with kindness,” burst forth
-the convalescent obstreperously. “She means
-well; but, thunder, how bored I am!”</p>
-
-<p>“This is the end of it,” replied Ogden.
-“We’ll get rid of the nurse. I can stay a few
-days and give you what assistance you need,
-and in a very short time you will be an independent
-citizen and have the run of the house.”</p>
-
-<p>“The run of the house”—scornfully. “Like
-a tame cat. I suppose you think I’ll be shut in,
-nights.”</p>
-
-<p>A knock on the door was followed by the
-entrance of the nurse with a tray whose contents
-made John Ogden hungry. Hugh regarded<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">[132]</a></span>
-it gloomily. The ignominious fact was
-that his appetite waxed daily.</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Damon, this is my friend, Mr. Ogden,
-come on from New York to get me out of here.”</p>
-
-<p>The nurse smiled and went on deftly arranging
-the tray. “He will do that very easily now,
-Mr. Stanwood. In fact, I don’t think I’m
-needed any longer, and I’ve had a summons
-to-day to a very sick woman, and I am hoping
-Miss Frink will let me go at once. She seemed
-so unwilling for me to leave.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, indeed. Yes, yes,” exclaimed her
-patient eagerly. “There’s nothing for you to
-stay for. It’s utter nonsense. Of course, you
-shall leave. I’ll insist upon it.”</p>
-
-<p>“And I can stay a little while,” said Ogden,
-“and give Mr. Si—Stanwood any assistance
-he needs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink is out just now, but I think I’ll
-be packing up my things and be all ready when
-she comes.”</p>
-
-<p>“By all means,” said Hugh, and Miss Damon
-vanished into a dressing-room.</p>
-
-<p>“You said you had a letter from Carol.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.” Ogden took it from his pocket.
-“Don’t let your broth get cold. The letter has
-waited this long. A few minutes more won’t
-mean anything.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">[133]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, hers are always short. Let me have it.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh opened the letter and glanced over it
-frowningly. “Poor little Carol!” he exclaimed;
-then he read aloud to an absorbed listener:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p class="noindent"><span class="smcap">Dear Hugh</span>,</p>
-
-<p>The end has come for Alfred. I am sure you
-will not be surprised to hear it. I have known for
-months it must come and have braced myself to
-bear it. I am glad he always let me know the
-inside of his affairs, and, from the time his illness
-started, I set myself to learn the business so I
-could take his place. Alfred’s partner, Mr. Ferry,
-I never wholly liked and trusted. I do not feel
-sure of his loyalty, and for the sake of my children
-I feel I must guard every step of my business way.
-I do not say this to trouble you, or make you feel
-you must come to me. You could not help me by
-coming, and it is a long, expensive journey. I
-promise to tell you if I see any definite cause for
-anxiety. Don’t worry about me, dear. I am well
-and so are both the children; but let me hear from
-you soon.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Your loving sister</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Carol</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Hugh looked up. John Ogden’s eyes were
-shining.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s only one Carol,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m a nice support for a sister to lean on,”
-said Hugh bitterly. “And this letter is two
-weeks old.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">[134]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I will attend to that with a wire,” said
-Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll tell her not to write to me, I suppose,”
-said Hugh with a sneer.</p>
-
-<p>“No, I’ll tell her to write in my care, as you
-are recovering from a slight illness.”</p>
-
-<p>“I told you, in the first place, what Carol
-would think of this whole performance.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall convert her,” declared Ogden. “I
-shall write to her to-night. Eat your luncheon,
-Hugh, and go on trusting in me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ho! Trusting!” muttered Hugh.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">[135]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII<br />
-<span class="smaller">THE CONSOLE</span></h2>
-
-<p>John Ogden continued to reassure his protégé,
-telling him that he would be right behind him if
-there was anything he could do at any time for
-Carol, and Hugh was fast clearing the dainty
-tray when, replying to a knock at his door,
-Miss Frink walked in.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh noticed at once that she was wearing
-that triumphant expression which portended
-some contribution to his well-being; and, indeed,
-she was at once followed by the bearer
-of a handsome piece of furniture which proved
-to be the latest artistic shape, and most expensive
-wood, that can encase a musical machine.</p>
-
-<p>“Music is good for him, Mr. Ogden,” she
-explained when the polished beauty was set
-against the wall and the man had left. “Hugh
-is very fond of music, and I wanted him to be
-able to have it whenever he wished, and choose
-his own pieces.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Miss Frink!” exclaimed Hugh, not
-joyfully, rather with an accent of despair.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I know,” she responded, opening the
-door of the record depository. “He doesn’t<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">[136]</a></span>
-want me to get him anything; but for my own
-sake I ought to have one of these in the house.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is a corker, Miss Frink,” said Ogden,
-coming forward to make an admiring examination
-of the Console.</p>
-
-<p>“You pick out something for him,” said
-Miss Frink. “Where’s Miss Damon?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m here.” The nurse appeared from the
-dressing-room and removed Hugh’s tray while
-Ogden put an opera selection on the machine
-and started it to playing.</p>
-
-<p>They all listened in silence to the Pilgrims’
-Chorus, and Miss Frink watched Hugh’s face,
-noting that none of that stimulation which
-the nurse had described as the effect of music
-appeared upon it.</p>
-
-<p>“Turn it off,” she said brusquely. “He
-doesn’t like that piece. We’ll try another.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, yes, I do,” said Hugh when quiet
-again reigned. “You make me feel deucedly
-ungrateful.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t bother to be grateful, boy,” said
-Miss Frink imperturbably. “I want you to
-have what you like. I let the clerk pick out
-these records and they’re here on trial. Back
-goes Wagner. Perhaps you’re like the man who
-heard ‘Tannhäuser’ and said he thought Wagner
-had better have stuck to his sleeping-cars.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">[137]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell you, Miss Frink,” said Miss Damon
-in her demure voice. “You have the catalogue
-there, and I think, if you would let Mrs. Lumbard
-come up and make some selections—she
-seems to understand Mr. Stanwood’s taste—”</p>
-
-<p>“Bright thought!” exclaimed Miss Frink.
-“Miss Damon, go over to her room and get her,
-will you?”</p>
-
-<p>No sooner said than done; and, as soon
-as the nurse had disappeared, Hugh spoke:
-“Miss Damon has to leave this afternoon,
-Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p>That lady faced him with a slight frown. “I
-don’t know about her having to,” she returned.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, a very sick woman has sent for her,”
-said Hugh. His voice suddenly burst from his
-control, “And I can’t stand it any longer!”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t know you didn’t like her.”</p>
-
-<p>“You know I do like her,” returned Hugh
-roughly, “but you know I’ve been trying to get
-you to let her go for a week.”</p>
-
-<p>“And if you will allow me,” said Ogden,
-with his most charming and cheery manner,
-“I will stay a few days and chaperon Hugh
-over the stairs a few times, enough to give you
-confidence—he seems to have it plus—”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink gave her rare laugh. “That boy
-is a joke, Mr. Ogden. He spends his days<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">[138]</a></span>
-counting my pennies, I do believe. He sees me
-bankrupt. All right, you stay and Miss Damon
-shall go.” And here the nurse and Adèle came
-into the room.</p>
-
-<p>The latter stared greedily at the object of her
-curiosity. Flushed with his recent resentment,
-and robed in the small crimson jewels glinting
-against their lustrous black background, he sat
-there, and she devoured him with her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Stanwood, this is—” began Miss Frink,
-when Hugh, pushing on the arms of his throne,
-sprang to his feet with a smile of amazement.</p>
-
-<p>“Ally!” he exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink stared. Another strange name
-for her incubus. She was no more surprised
-than the object of Hugh’s laughing recognition.
-Mrs. Lumbard gazed at him for a delighted,
-puzzled space.</p>
-
-<p>“I do believe you don’t know me. Why
-should you?” he cried. “This”—he grasped
-his robe—“is a little different from the canteen.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hughie!” exclaimed Adèle, and hurried
-forward to take both his hands.</p>
-
-<p>“She made music for us over there, Miss
-Frink. I ought to have known it when I heard
-her yesterday. Nobody can hit the box quite
-like Ally.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">[139]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Why do you call her Ally?” Miss Frink
-found voice to ask.</p>
-
-<p>“Short for Albino,” laughed Hugh. “Of
-course, Ally.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s heart quickened. “In a single
-night.” The sad statement recurred to her at
-once; but it was characteristic that she postponed
-this consideration.</p>
-
-<p>“Here is another chance for you to be useful,
-Adèle,” she said. “Take this catalogue over to
-Mr. Stanwood and between you make out a
-list of his preferences. Give me three numbers
-right away.—No, don’t either of you say, ‘Do
-you remember,’ until I’ve got those numbers.
-I suppose you can find some of the tunes you
-had over in France.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want one of them,” said Hugh
-emphatically. “Not much. That thing you
-played yesterday, Ally.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, that will be here, and other selections
-from the same opera.”</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Miss Frink was exchanging words
-with Miss Damon, and, as the nurse left to get
-into her street dress, Miss Frink went to the
-phone and called a number.</p>
-
-<p>“Is this you, Millicent? This is Miss Frink.
-Hold the wire. Now, then, Adèle?”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Lumbard came near with the catalogue<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">[140]</a></span>
-and gave three numbers in turn. These Miss
-Frink repeated over the wire. “Have you a
-pencil there? All right. You’ve written them?
-All right. Now take a cab, please, and get these
-records. If you can’t find them one place, go to
-another. Have them charged to me, and drive
-out here and ask to be shown up to the White
-Room.”</p>
-
-<p>She hung up. “You can go on making a
-longer list now. Perhaps Mr. Ogden will help
-you. Excuse me while I see Miss Damon.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink left the room, and Adèle and
-Hugh immediately fell into reminiscence, John
-Ogden looking on with an expression not wholly
-in keeping with the mirthful chuckles that
-accompanied their resurrected jokes.</p>
-
-<p>“And what’s doing now, Ally? Are you a
-lady of leisure?” asked Hugh at last.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; I am visiting Aunt Susanna for a little
-while, but I’ve got to go at something to earn
-my living. Do you know Farrandale well, Mr.
-Ogden?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why—a—pretty well,” returned that
-gentleman who had suddenly been galvanized
-by seeing that the young woman had unconsciously
-picked up a letter lying near her, and
-was twisting it nervously in her hands. It was
-Hugh’s letter from Carol.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">[141]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Do you think I would have a chance of
-getting enough music pupils here to make my
-bread and butter, with occasionally a little
-jam?” Mrs. Lumbard’s eyes sparkled at the
-welcome bit of life that had come her way, and
-she felt jubilant that the drudgery of first
-moves in an acquaintance had been done away
-with in the case of herself and “Hughie.” So
-his name was Stanwood. He was one of the
-crowd of “Buddies” who doubtless would all
-remember her, though her stay at their canteen
-had not been long, and only Hugh’s exceptional
-looks had marked him out for her
-remembrance. She hoped his pleasure at seeing
-her and his enjoyment of her music would
-weigh in her favor with the difficult relative she
-had stormed but not conquered. That awful
-break about her hair! How would she get over
-that?</p>
-
-<p>“Why, yes, it is a flourishing little town,”
-returned Ogden, coming nearer, with hungry
-eyes on the letter. “If there was some way to
-give them a chance to hear you play.”</p>
-
-<p>Here Miss Frink returned, and Hugh accosted her.</p>
-
-<p>“Ally says she wants to teach music, Miss
-Frink. You’re always doing nice things for
-people. Why not let her give a recital here in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">[142]</a></span>
-the house and show the Farrandale folks what
-she’s made of?”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink drew near to his chair, attracted
-by the interested expression of his face, a vital
-look she had not before seen.</p>
-
-<p>“You would like that, eh?” she returned
-indulgently. “You want to give a party? I’ve
-never given a party,” she added thoughtfully.
-“I’ve never had the courage.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Ogden and I will back you up.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, indeed,” said Ogden, edging nearer the
-tortured letter, but even then unable to get as
-close to it as Miss Frink was.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Hugh Stanwood Sinclair,” stood out
-clearly on the envelope, and Ogden could see
-that its owner was miles away from the consciousness
-of it.</p>
-
-<p>He slid around Miss Frink’s back. “Excuse
-me, Mrs. Re—Lumbard, my letter, please.”</p>
-
-<p>Adèle flattened the bent thing quickly. “Oh,
-pardon me,” she said, and put it in the outstretched
-hand. Mechanically, and from the
-force of fixed habit to see everything, especially
-those things which it was desired she should
-not see, she glanced at the letter in passing
-it; but her attention was quickly absorbed in
-Hugh’s further suggestions regarding publicity
-for her, and she was divided between hope<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">[143]</a></span>
-and fear as to the effect on Miss Frink of his
-interest.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink continued to stand there, looking
-down absorbedly into the boy’s gay face, and
-listening quietly. Hugh laughed and joked with
-Ogden, planning how they would be ushers on
-the great occasion, and she stood still, watching
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle started to rise. With a motion of her
-hand Miss Frink prevented her. “Sit still,
-Adèle.”</p>
-
-<p>Downstairs a little later Leonard Grimshaw
-left the study intending to go up to his room.</p>
-
-<p>Stebbins was just opening the front door as
-he came through the hall. Millicent Duane
-entered. She bowed to the secretary, but addressed
-herself to the servant.</p>
-
-<p>“Will you please show me to the White
-Room?” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw, after a patronizing return of her
-greeting, was moving toward the stairway, but
-now he paused. “What did you wish, Miss
-Millicent?”</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink sent me for some records and
-asked me to bring them here to the White
-Room.”</p>
-
-<p>“Records?” Grimshaw looked dazed. “I
-thought I heard a band in the street a few<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">[144]</a></span>
-minutes ago. I wonder if Miss Frink—” He
-paused and fixed his round spectacles on Millicent
-as if he suspected her of being in some plot.</p>
-
-<p>The girl turned again toward Stebbins.</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t need to go up. I’ll take them,”
-the secretary came forward and held out his
-hand for the parcel.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you, but I want to do just what
-Miss Frink asked me to.” The girl clasped her
-package closer.</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw smiled disagreeably. “The White
-Room is a very attractive place, eh?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know anything about it,” returned
-the girl, her cheeks reddening at his manner.
-“I only know that I feel I would rather do
-exactly what Miss Frink asked. She may have
-a further errand for me.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary motioned to Stebbins to go.</p>
-
-<p>“I will take you, then,” he said shortly.</p>
-
-<p>He preceded her up the stairs in silence,
-thinking his own disturbed thoughts about that
-band in the street, and poor broken Miss
-Frink’s obsession.</p>
-
-<p>Arrived at the door of the White Room, they
-could hear a buzz of voices within, and a man’s
-laugh. The secretary knocked punctiliously,
-and Miss Frink herself opened the door.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s a good child,” she said to Millicent.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">[145]</a></span>
-“You made good time. I think you must have
-read ‘A Message to Garcia.’ Come in and meet
-Prince Charming.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent, her cheeks stinging in the sudden
-understanding of the secretary’s gibe, yielded
-up her package, and with wide eyes beheld the
-smiling face above the dressing-gown. She impulsively
-took a step backward and Adèle’s lip
-curled at her expression.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no,” said Miss Frink, “come right in.
-That’s what she called you, Hugh, before she
-even knew of your existence. Prince Charming.
-Now see if you can live up to it.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh rose, and, though his mind was still
-echoing with their jokes about the recital, this
-surprising statement fixed his attention on the
-blushing, unsmiling girl with the startled eyes,
-whom Miss Frink was drawing forward. “Miss
-Duane, Prince Charming,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>The two young things gazed at each other.
-Poor little intense, conscious Millicent could
-only nod, her eyes frightened and fascinated.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh nodded, too, smiling. “A case of mistaken
-identity, Miss Duane,” he said, and
-dropped back into his chair.</p>
-
-<p>Millicent noted the proximity to it of
-Mrs. Lumbard’s, as she gave a little nod toward
-Adèle and breathed her name.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">[146]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Ogden,” said Miss Frink, without
-releasing the girl’s hand, “this is my friend
-Miss Duane; no, don’t go, Millicent. I want
-you to stay and hear these things you’ve
-brought. Perhaps we shall want to send them
-back.”</p>
-
-<p>Leonard Grimshaw had remained in the
-room, and stood sphinx-like, his eyes first on
-the new piece of furniture and then on Adèle,
-who appeared to be chatting with Hugh in the
-manner of an old friend.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Lumbard noted his surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t believe I told you I worked in
-France, Leonard,” she said. “Imagine my
-amazement to find that Mr. Stanwood is one
-of my old Buddies.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary received this information with
-a stiff bow.</p>
-
-<p>“Sit down, Grim. Never mind me,” said
-Miss Frink. “Mr. Ogden is teaching me how
-to run this new plaything. Here”—she carried
-the unwrapped records to Hugh—“choose
-your opening number.”</p>
-
-<p>Adèle, with her head close to his, pointed out
-the desired ragtime. Miss Frink took it back to
-the machine.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh looked at Millicent. Her fair hair was
-shining palely under her blue hat. Her cheeks<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">[147]</a></span>
-were glowing. Her eyes were fixed on the music-machine.
-How could Miss Frink have been so
-cruel! She could feel the secretary’s scornful
-spectacles, and Mrs. Lumbard’s cold glance.
-This fashionable Mr. Ogden. Probably he was
-contemptuous, too, of the countrified errand-girl
-so ready to admire Prince Charming.</p>
-
-<p>The music started. As it went on, Miss
-Frink, staring at her new purchase, began to
-frown in a puzzled way as if it had maliciously
-betrayed her, and was chuckling. She finally
-turned toward Hugh. His face was beaming.
-He had risen and was sitting on the arm of his
-chair swinging one of his big satin-shod feet,
-while he softly beat his knee with one hand.</p>
-
-<p>He looked so handsome and happy she
-glanced at Adèle. “Wicked and happy!” was
-her quick mental exclamation. On, to Millicent,
-her gaze roved. Plenty of color was
-there, but no expression. There was no face
-more naturally expressive. Miss Frink began
-to suspect that she had embarrassed the girl.</p>
-
-<p>The strains ceased, and “silence like a
-poultice” fell.</p>
-
-<p>“Bully!” cried Hugh, gayly snapping his
-fingers. “That’s the stuff.”</p>
-
-<p>“You liked that?” exclaimed Miss Frink.
-“You like to be cross-eyed and pigeon-toed?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">[148]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>John Ogden laughed. “He’ll never let you
-send that one back, Miss Frink. The youth of
-to-day have reverted to savagery.”</p>
-
-<p>“My vote is that it should go back,” declared
-Leonard Grimshaw. The sphinx had spoken,
-and in a voice that cracked.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, we’re in the minority, Grim,” sighed
-Miss Frink.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t believe so,” he said, making one last
-stand for the circumspection and decency of
-the house. “Mr. Stanwood and Mrs. Lumbard
-find it to their taste evidently, but Mr. Ogden
-I’m sure does not. I think it is simply disgusting,
-and if Millicent Duane is honest she will
-say the same.”</p>
-
-<p>His heat amused Hugh, who caught the
-glance which the young girl, appealed to,
-turned to him, involuntarily. He leaned forward
-and held her there. She could not free herself
-quickly from that laughing, questioning gaze.</p>
-
-<p>Starting up from her chair she said: “I—I
-don’t believe I heard it—much.”</p>
-
-<p>“Didn’t hear it!” exclaimed Miss Frink,
-putting her hands over her own suffering ears.</p>
-
-<p>“I—Grandpa is waiting for me, Miss Frink.
-If you don’t need me any more—”</p>
-
-<p>“No, child. I don’t need you. Thank you,
-and run along.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">[149]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Millicent swept the room with a vague,
-inclusive nod, and, going out into the hall,
-hurried to the stairs, and ran down. Her breath
-came fast, her eyes were dim and she stumbled.
-Some one behind her, unheard on the thick
-covering, caught her. She started and flung a
-hand across her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Did you have your cab wait, Miss Duane?”
-asked John Ogden.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">[150]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII<br />
-<span class="smaller">MILLICENT DUANE</span></h2>
-
-<p>She glanced at him through the moisture. His
-face was seriously questioning. “No—I sent
-it away,” she replied indistinctly.</p>
-
-<p>“If you don’t mind I’ll walk on with you a
-bit, then.” He took his hat and opened the
-door for her. “My favorite part of the day,” he
-added.</p>
-
-<p>In silence they crossed the wide veranda, and
-when they were descending the steps Millicent
-spoke again: “It sounded very foolish, for me
-to say I didn’t hear that record.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps you are one of the fortunate people
-who can close their ears to what they don’t wish
-to hear.” They passed through the iron gates.
-“Or perhaps you didn’t want to take sides. I
-saw Mr. Stanwood trying to hypnotize you.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent met her companion’s kind smile.
-“Why did Miss Frink want to make me feel so
-foolish?” she burst out impetuously.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure she didn’t wish to or mean to.
-You shouldn’t grudge her a little fun. I’m
-certain she doesn’t have much. What she said
-shouldn’t have been embarrassing. It was
-extremely mysterious, however.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">[151]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Millicent regarded her companion again,
-suspiciously; but his was a most reassuring face,
-and, besides, he had a number of gray hairs.</p>
-
-<p>“She said,” he went on, “that you called Mr.
-Stanwood Prince Charming before you knew of
-his existence. Nothing in that to offend you,
-but a riddle of riddles all the same, to me.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden’s pleasant voice soothing her vanity
-made swallowing a much easier matter. “You
-see,” she hesitated, “I used to be in Ross
-Graham’s.”</p>
-
-<p>“Long ago?” He glanced at her childlike
-profile.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.—About three days. Miss Frink
-bought something of me—and I said—it was
-fit for Prince Charming—and Miss Frink
-didn’t know about fairy tales.”</p>
-
-<p>“I dare say not,” remarked Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>“So I told her, and we—we got acquainted
-that way.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not that gorgeous robe!” said Ogden,
-suddenly enlightened.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, that horrid dressing-gown!”</p>
-
-<p>“Horrid? It’s a dream!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, a nightmare.”</p>
-
-<p>“What’s all this? What’s all this?”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t know he was there—in Miss
-Frink’s house.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[152]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“She said you didn’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t know it was for him.”</p>
-
-<p>“She said so.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent of the glowing cheeks turned
-quickly on her companion; and he smiled into
-her disturbed eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“There is only one explanation of Miss
-Frink’s remark causing you embarrassment,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, of course I know I ought to have said
-something bright, and funny, and careless, but
-I never am bright, and funny, and careless.
-What do you mean by explanation?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, just that the—the disturbing fact was
-that you found you had hit the nail on the head:
-that he <em>was</em> Prince Charming, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>If Millicent’s cheeks could have gained a
-deeper hue it would have been there. Her
-temples grew rosy, and her lips parted. A little
-frown met her companion.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, if it had been I that sat there sporting
-all those crimson jewels, I, with my high forehead,
-and silver threads among the gold, you
-would just have given a little sympathetic grin
-at Papa, and curtsied, and let it go at that.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Ogden,” with displeasure, “I am not
-so—”</p>
-
-<p>“Just let me tell you, Miss Duane, so you’ll<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">[153]</a></span>
-think better of him, that Prince Charming isn’t
-working at it as a profession at all. I never saw
-anybody whose good looks disturbed him less.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Ogden, do you suppose—”</p>
-
-<p>“So I don’t want you to let it set you against
-him, or feel the way you did when you ran downstairs
-just now. By the way, Miss Duane, do
-you happen to be related to the Colonel Duane
-who has a war record? Very distinguished
-man. I’ve heard he lives in Farrandale.”</p>
-
-<p>The speaker had the pleasure of watching the
-transformation in the transparent face, from
-bewildered resentment to eagerness.</p>
-
-<p>“There!” he said suddenly, “I suspected you
-had a dimple. If I had been wearing that dressing-gown,
-I should have seen it sooner.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, it’s Grandpa. Colonel Duane is my
-grandfather.—Perhaps you knew it all the
-time, and that is the reason you’ve been so—so
-disrespectful in your talk.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden laughed. “Indeed, the fact should
-have made me far more respectful. I didn’t
-know it, but your pretty name brought up the
-association. I certainly should like to meet
-Colonel Duane.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you’re going to,” said Millicent
-eagerly. “We live together and we have a
-garden. We live in one of Miss Frink’s houses,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">[154]</a></span>
-and when I used to be in Ross Graham’s—”</p>
-
-<p>“Three days ago,” put in Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it seems three months. Then I had so
-little time with him; but now that I only have
-to get Miss Frink to sleep—”</p>
-
-<p>“To sleep!”</p>
-
-<p>“Not at night, you know. Just in the daytime.
-She has some one come and read to her,
-and now it’s me. It used to be another girl,
-but she bobbed her hair and lost the place.
-Poor Damaris! I do so wish I could get Miss
-Frink to let her have my position in the gloves,
-Miss Frink hates bobbed hair so. Do you
-think you might help, Mr. Ogden?”</p>
-
-<p>“Anything I can do. Buy her some hair
-tonic, perhaps?”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent laughed. “I may ask you to help,”
-she said earnestly. “We’re nearly there, Mr.
-Ogden, and I want to tell you before we meet
-Grandpa that I appreciate your kindness in
-seeing that I was unhappy and running after
-me. Mrs. Lumbard—do you know Mrs.
-Lumbard?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I do.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, she—even in that short time she
-made me feel I was in the way—and—and
-everything was wrong. I don’t want you to
-think I’m too stupid.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">[155]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Ogden met her appealing look. “I understand
-you very well,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class="tb">They approached the little old house built
-before Farrandale had grown up.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m so pleased that you appreciate
-Grandpa,” the girl went on. “You see Grandpa
-was a celebrated lawyer when he laid down his
-profession to go into that war. He is Somebody!”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden perceived the white-haired figure in the
-garden. The old man had the hose in his hand
-and was sprinkling plants, shrubs and lawn.</p>
-
-<p class="tb">When Ogden returned to the White Room, he
-found Hugh alone and rather impatient.</p>
-
-<p>“Where did you disappear to?” inquired the
-boy.</p>
-
-<p>“I eloped with that record-bearing peach.”</p>
-
-<p>“What did you do that for?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, didn’t you see she was much disturbed
-in her mind?”</p>
-
-<p>“She didn’t have pep enough to stand up
-against the cockatoo.”</p>
-
-<p>“She had one object in life just then, and
-that was to get out of here.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’re kindred spirits, then, even if she
-doesn’t care for jazz. Say, I’m going down to
-dinner, Ogden,” added the boy eagerly. “I’m<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">[156]</a></span>
-going to get out of these infernal swaddling
-clothes—”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden laughed. “There you are kindred
-spirits, too,” he said. “The peach has it in for
-that dressing-gown.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh glanced down over it. “That’s queer.
-You’d think a girl would just revel in it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Probably she would if you hadn’t been
-wearing it.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh looked inquiring.</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink ‘fussed’ her with all that Prince
-Charming stuff.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy shook his head. “What was Miss
-Frink up to, anyway?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Miss Duane used to be in Ross
-Graham’s—three days ago; and she sold your
-benefactress the royal robe, and told her it was
-fit for Prince Charming, not knowing whom it
-was for.”</p>
-
-<p>“And that ‘fussed’ her?” asked Hugh incredulously.
-“Aren’t girls the limit? What did she
-care who it was for, so she made the sale?”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden looked at his protégé quizzically.
-“Oh, she’s been to the movies.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh stared and scowled deeper. “Now,
-don’t you get bats in the belfry, too,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Duane has retired from business and
-is now reader-in-chief to Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">[157]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“So Ally told me. She tried for the job herself
-and was turned down, she says.”</p>
-
-<p>“Really? You didn’t seem to realize that
-your friend was playing with that letter of
-Carol’s some time before I rescued it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, why shouldn’t she?”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden raised his eyebrows and smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, shoot!” ejaculated Hugh gloomily,
-suddenly understanding. “Say, I ought to be
-writing to Carol.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden nodded. “I have just been sending
-her a full day-letter in your name, and you
-promised to write at once, and also asked her to
-write you in my care, as your plans are unsettled
-just now.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll say they are!” said Hugh emphatically.
-He was thoughtful for a space. “Carol all
-alone,” he said presently. “I tell you, Mr.
-Ogden, it makes me feel like taking a brace and
-amounting to something. I read law the last
-year before the war. I’d like to go on with it.
-If Carol’s partner in the business is unreliable,
-I’d like to be able to attend to him.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve been talking to an ex-lawyer to-day,
-one who has made his mark. Little Miss
-Duane’s grandfather. He is a veteran of the
-Cuban War. Colonel Duane. Perhaps he has
-his law library still.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">[158]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“He could steer me, anyway,” replied Hugh,
-looking interested—“if I should stay on in the
-town,” he added, looking away. After another
-pause he went on: “It was good fun to see
-Ally again and made everything seem more
-familiar.”</p>
-
-<p>“How much do you know about Mrs.
-Reece-Lumbard?” asked Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh laughed reminiscently. “Nothing except
-those twinkly fingers of hers. She tried
-some highbrow stuff on us at first—uplift,
-artistic, that kind; but when she found we
-walked out on her she changed. Great Scott,
-she could whoop it up, and we sang till the roof
-nearly lifted. I may have heard her name in
-those days, but if I did I’d forgotten it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, she married Tom Reece,” said Ogden.
-“He was in the Medical Corps over there, and
-when they came home they had a baby with
-them, and Mrs. Reece, being a very gay lady,
-they had lots of trouble. She was shining in
-cabaret performances when I knew her, and
-last winter I learned that there was a divorce.
-To-day I asked her, when we were alone in the
-hall, about her baby girl, and she said she
-hadn’t brought her, fearing a child in the house
-might annoy her Aunt Susanna.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, that was considerate, wasn’t it?”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">[159]</a></span>
-returned Hugh, in defense against Ogden’s
-manner. “A woman never gets any sympathy.”</p>
-
-<p>“The courts didn’t give Mrs. Reece any,”
-said Ogden dryly. “I knew that Dr. Reece
-was given the custody of the little girl. I just
-wanted to see what she would say about it.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh’s brow clouded. “I’m sorry to hear
-of that mess,” he replied. “Is that why you
-think she is deceiving Miss Frink about herself?
-People that live in glass houses, you
-know.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden smiled. “Yes, I’m not going into
-the stone business at present.”</p>
-
-<p>The dinner that night was what Adèle called
-a really human meal. Miss Frink sat at the
-head of the table and her secretary at the foot.
-He did the honors in a highly superior manner.
-Adèle sat at his right and the two men guests
-were placed, one each side the hostess.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink looked thoughtfully at Hugh,
-dressed in the new suit she had paid for. He
-was happy in his promotion from the invalid
-chair, and responded to Mr. Ogden’s amusing
-stories, while Adèle put aside dull care and told
-canteen reminiscences of her own, some of
-them sufficiently daring to draw upon her the
-gaze of the neighboring spectacles.</p>
-
-<p>After dinner they all adjourned to the drawing-room,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">[160]</a></span>
-and Miss Frink, for the first time
-in all the years, saw its dignified furnishings
-as background to a social gathering. Adèle
-played, and Hugh sauntered up and down
-the room, singing when the familiar melodies
-tempted him. Miss Frink’s eyes followed him
-with a strange, unconscious hunger.</p>
-
-<p>When at last Mrs. Lumbard sought her
-pillow, she was too excited for sleep, and the
-little spurt of jollity faded into the dull consideration
-of her situation. Why had handsome
-Hughie made that break about her hair! She
-reviewed all that had been said in his first
-recognition of her. She saw herself again,
-sitting and nervously twisting that letter.
-She felt something inimical in Ogden. He had
-known Dr. Reece. He wanted to get his letter
-away from her. There, in the darkness of her
-unquiet pillow, she saw the twisted envelope
-again. It was not his letter at all. She had
-flattened it out and seen that it was Hughie’s.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hugh Stanwood Sinclair. She saw the
-address again. Sinclair. Why? when Hughie’s
-name was Stanwood? Why was the address
-Sinclair? Her head lay quieter as she meditated.
-Mr. Ogden had been anxious to get that letter!
-He had made her feel rebuked for twisting it.
-She lay a long time awake.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">[161]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV<br />
-<span class="smaller">ALICE</span></h2>
-
-<p>When Miss Frink went to her room that night,
-two red spots burned in her cheeks. She was a
-creature of habit and proud of it. Her maid
-had the bed turned down and prepared for
-the night as usual. A silk negligée hung over
-the back of a chair. The silver carafe of ice
-water with its cut-glass tumbler stood by the
-side of the bed. Her programme would be to
-slip off the black satin gown, don the negligée,
-go to the lighted bathroom and wind the waves
-of her front hair back on their crimping pins,
-and so proceed to the point of extinguishing
-the lights, getting into bed, and going at once
-to sleep.</p>
-
-<p>The mental picture behind those red spots
-was of the same envelope which was absorbing
-Adèle’s meditations. It had lain directly in the
-line of Miss Frink’s bi-focals when Mrs. Lumbard
-gave it its final flattening. Miss Frink
-crossed the room to where the enlarged portrait
-of her girlhood’s chum hung on the wall.</p>
-
-<p>“Come on, Alice, let’s talk it over as we used
-to,” she said, and with a quick movement<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">[162]</a></span>
-unhooking the picture, she sat down in the
-nearest chair with it in her lap, and gazed into
-the eyes. “I want to look at a friend. I’m
-seventy-odd, Alice, and you’re still my only
-one: the only being who has ever loved me.”
-She paused in her soliloquy to swallow something.
-“I’m not going to make a tragedy of it.
-I could have adopted a child after Philip disappointed
-me. I could have had some one
-to love me, but I liked business better than
-domesticity, so I made my own bed and I’m
-not going to complain of it. You told me I
-was all wrong about Philip, wrong in not
-giving him his freedom, wrong to quarrel with
-him, wrong to cut myself off from him, I
-remember now everything you said, though I
-haven’t thought of it for years. The book was
-closed. Nothing could have surprised me more
-than to have it opened again. But, Alice”—Miss
-Frink’s hand pressed the sides of the
-picture frame until it hurt—“it is only my
-money. That is the humiliation. I couldn’t
-believe that I would feel it so.” The soliloquizing
-lips quivered. “Your Adèle—if she is
-yours, something in me cries out all the time
-that she is not—what interest would she have
-had in an Aunt Susanna who was old and poor?
-She fawns on me with meek, loving expressions<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">[163]</a></span>
-as if I could be fooled. Forgive me, dear, but
-you wouldn’t like her, either. There’s Grim,
-of course; it’s a religion with him to look after
-me, but he hasn’t any natural, spontaneous
-interest in his fellow-beings. The calf of gold
-rules his consciousness. He’s narrow, narrow
-as I am myself. Oh, Alice, if I had you here!
-If I could only do it over again and do it better.”
-For the first time in years tears stood in
-Miss Frink’s eyes. She winked them away
-quietly, and fell into meditation. Presently,
-her thoughts seething through the past and
-present, her lips moved again:</p>
-
-<p>“John Ogden is a finished rascal; polished,
-suave, a real society man. Full of charm he is,
-and I wonder how he ran into the boy, and
-persuaded him. I’m hurt, Alice. Hugh’s old
-Aunt Sukey is hurt;—but it’s better to be
-hurt than dead, and he didn’t know who he
-was saving, I have that comfort. That was
-no part of John Ogden’s plan; and it makes
-the boy more mine than Ogden’s. He hasn’t
-been happy a minute since he came, and the
-why is plain. He hates the double-dealing,
-while Ogden thinks it is the best joke going.
-I hate lies, Alice”—with sudden heat. “You
-know I always did; and the humiliation—why
-does it cut me so that the boy, my own<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">[164]</a></span>
-flesh and blood that I’m mightily near to loving,
-has cold-bloodedly entered into some plan
-that has only my money for its object? I’ve
-been a dupe; and, of course, any young person
-would chuckle over my sympathy for his
-delirious longing for Aunt Sukey. Alice!”—suddenly
-Miss Frink clutched the picture frame
-again—“that girl—that photograph—is his
-mother. He said Aunt Sukey opposed her tooth
-and nail, and I asked him if I could do anything.
-He said it was too late.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink let the picture slide down into
-her lap while she followed this train of thought
-and looked into space. Presently she propped
-the frame up again between her hands.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course, Alice, that single night in
-which your much-married granddaughter’s hair
-turned white might have come before she went
-over to France. I’m about as mean to the girl
-in my thoughts as anybody could be, and she
-has made the boy look really happy for the
-first time in all these weeks. I ought to give her
-some credit for that. It was pleasant down in
-the drawing-room to-night through her means;
-but the iron had entered into my soul, and I
-felt inside the way Grim looked outside. Poor
-Grim, he is not a society man. He doesn’t
-want our habits changed. Now, I’m up<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">[165]</a></span>
-against another fight, Alice, girl. It’s a long
-time since I’ve had to fight. It’s a temptation
-to say to them all—Ogden, the boy, and
-Adèle—‘I know you through and through.
-I’m not the dupe you think me. Get away
-all of you and never let me see you again.’
-But, Alice, what’s the use of living seventy
-years unless you’ve learned to do nothing impulsively?
-I look right back to my treatment
-of Philip Sinclair and recall the things you said
-to me then. I shall let you help me, Alice.
-I will take the advice that I scorned thirty
-years ago. Good-night, Alice, girl.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink didn’t sleep much that night,
-and the next morning, the weather having made
-a sudden start summerward, she felt a new
-chapter of her life beginning.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh came down to breakfast with John
-Ogden, and Adèle was ready with new ideas
-for her recital. Miss Frink allowed herself to
-be carried along on the tide of their talk until
-breakfast was over.</p>
-
-<p>“What a lovely morning. Your grounds are
-charming,” said Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>“Everything is blooming,” returned the hostess.
-“Let us make a little tour of inspection.”</p>
-
-<p>She led the way through the small conservatory<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[166]</a></span>
-attached to the dining-room, and out upon
-the lawn.</p>
-
-<p>“How beautifully this place is kept,” said
-Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I have so few amusements,” assented
-his companion.</p>
-
-<p>“Thoroughness is your watchword, I’m
-sure.”</p>
-
-<p>“I believe it is,” she agreed. “Whether I
-was doing right or wrong, I always seem to have
-made a clean sweep of it.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden regarded her in genuine admiration.
-“All your thoughts must be of satisfaction,
-I should think.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink tossed her head with a dissenting
-gesture. “You’d think wrong then, man. Let
-us sit down here awhile.”</p>
-
-<p>She led the way to a rustic seat under an elm
-tree. “Shan’t I go in and get a wrap for you?”
-asked Ogden. The prospect of a tête-à-tête
-with his hostess was not without its qualms.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no. This sun is hot.”</p>
-
-<p>“So is this one,” thought Ogden, but he
-smiled with his usual air of finding the present
-situation inspiring.</p>
-
-<p>“I’d like to know how you came to take such
-an interest in Hugh,” began his companion
-without prelude.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">[167]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Through liking his father, and loving his
-sister,” replied Ogden glibly.</p>
-
-<p>“Eh? His sister?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, his sister Carol. She couldn’t see me,”
-continued Ogden cheerfully. “She married a
-man named Morrison and went to Colorado.
-Hugh received word yesterday that her husband
-has died. She is left with two little children”
-(Miss Frink began to stiffen mechanically,
-and Ogden saw it), “but she is a young woman
-after your own heart. Her husband’s illness
-was a long one, and she learned his business in
-order to carry it on, and she won’t allow Hugh
-to come out there or worry himself about her.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink gazed at him with unconscious
-fixedness. “Yes. His mother’s name was
-Carol,” was the thought behind her stiff lips.</p>
-
-<p>“Hugh couldn’t seem to find himself when
-he came back from France, and was rather
-down in the mouth when I got hold of him, so
-I thought. He is so young, it would be better
-for him to learn a business from the bottom up,
-and I thought of Ross Graham’s.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you thought of Ross Graham’s.”
-Miss Frink nodded slowly and continued
-to meet her companion’s debonair look. “I
-wonder why you thought of Ross Graham’s.”</p>
-
-<p>“I told you in my letter of introduction,”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">[168]</a></span>
-responded Ogden, without hesitation. “It is
-just one of the compact pieces of perfection that
-you have been bringing about all your life.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink nodded acceptance of the compliment
-and of his self-possession.</p>
-
-<p>“I should say his nerve was one piece of
-perfection,” she reflected; and then her habit
-of honest thought questioned how she would
-have received the frank proposition. If John
-Ogden had come to her with the information
-that she had a robust, handsome, grand-nephew,
-Philip Sinclair’s son, who needed a
-boost toward finding his right place in the
-world, would she have listened to him? Would
-she have received the boy? She would not,
-and she knew it.</p>
-
-<p>Ogden was speaking on: “How little I
-dreamed that I was doing as much for you as
-for Hugh when I saw him off on that train.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, perhaps some other bystander would
-have saved the old lady,” she replied, with
-sudden rebellion against Ogden’s making a
-virtue of his duplicity.</p>
-
-<p>“Really?” he returned suavely. “I have
-understood that Hugh had the street all to
-himself just at that time.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I think he did,” said Miss Frink
-brusquely, looking away.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">[169]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Ogden’s gray eyes were rather large and
-prominent, and just now their gaze irritated her.</p>
-
-<p>“You know it is very interesting to me,” he
-went on, “that the mere fact of my choosing
-Ross Graham’s for Hugh rather than some
-other concern, should have saved your valuable
-life. I believe in Providence, Miss Frink.
-Don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“I believe that Heaven helps those who help
-themselves,” she retorted; “and that’s you,
-I’m sure, Mr. Ogden.”</p>
-
-<p>“But we’re not talking about me,” he responded
-with a gay air of surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we’re going to,” responded Miss
-Frink. “I want you to tell me everything you
-know about Mrs. Lumbard.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why—” he returned, clearing his throat
-to gain time, “it’s on the surface. She is a very
-pretty woman who is a fine musician. You can
-tell by Hugh’s attitude what she meant to the
-boys over there, and she has a reputation all
-through the South.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you know her before her marriage when
-she was Miss Morehouse?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“What was her father like?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why—” Ogden hesitated. “I understood
-they were your relatives.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">[170]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“No. They’re not. Is her father living?”</p>
-
-<p>“I—I really don’t know; but Mr. Morehouse
-died only last year.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, he was her father, wasn’t he?”</p>
-
-<p>“No; he married her mother when the
-daughter was a child prodigy at the piano.”</p>
-
-<p>Such a strange change passed over Miss
-Frink that Ogden was startled. She gazed at
-him out of a face as stiff as parchment.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Ogden, I am uncanny. My feelings are
-uncanny,” she said at last. “You might as well
-be sitting under an X-ray as by me. I know the
-whole truth about you. I know all your double-dealings—”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Miss Frink, why should you give me
-heart failure? I don’t know why you should be
-so excited. I hope I haven’t told any tales.”
-Ogden flushed to the ears.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, a great big one, but, oh, the relief it is
-to me. She has nothing to do with my Alice.
-Be careful not to let her know that you’ve told
-me this. Once I had a friend, Mr. Ogden, a real
-friend. She never tried to get the better of
-me. She never deceived me. She loved me as
-herself.”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden thought he had never looked into
-such bright eyes, and their strenuous gaze
-seeming, as she had claimed, to see absolutely<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">[171]</a></span>
-through him, sent a prickling sensation down
-his spine. She seemed to be contrasting him
-with that single-minded friend, frightfully to his
-disadvantage.</p>
-
-<p>“She has died,” went on the low voice, “and
-I never found another. Now Mrs. Lumbard
-has claimed me through her; claimed to be her
-granddaughter. I never could believe it, and it
-seems I was right.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden frowned and shook his head. “If
-you’re glad, I suppose I shouldn’t regret my
-break; but I wouldn’t for anything have thrown
-a monkey-wrench into Mrs. Re—Lumbard’s
-machinery if I had known.”—“Supposing
-Miss Frink knew all!” was his reflection.</p>
-
-<p>His companion nodded slowly. “Let me
-have the truth once in a while, once in a while.
-Don’t grudge it to me. You’ve only clinched
-my feeling that she is a liar.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden looked up toward the porch where
-Adèle and Hugh were laughing.</p>
-
-<p>“There is one thing I wanted to speak of
-to you. You take such a kindly interest in
-Hugh—”</p>
-
-<p>“That is barely decent,” responded Miss
-Frink with sudden sharpness. “What is it you
-want? When a poor young man saves the life
-of a rich old woman, it is to be expected that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">[172]</a></span>
-she gives him a good plump check as reward,
-isn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden regarded her in surprise. “What the
-love of money does to people!” was his reflection.
-“I shan’t tell Hugh you said that,” he
-replied quietly. “He has had enough to bear.
-You know whether his attitude toward you is
-mercenary.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s old cheeks flushed in their turn.
-“Well, I know it isn’t,” she said bluntly; “but
-you are his manager, aren’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“My dear lady! Please don’t spoil this
-beautiful morning.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m excited, Ogden. I know it,” she said
-nervously. She was glad he had trapped her,
-but how had he dared to do it, and how could
-she forgive him!</p>
-
-<p>“This is what I was going to say,” he went
-on. “The last year before Hugh went to France
-he read law. Since hearing that his sister is
-alone, he feels that he would like to go on with
-it. He might be able to help her some day.
-Yesterday I met Colonel Duane. He is a
-lawyer and still has a good library. What
-would you think of Hugh’s working at that,
-evenings?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why evenings?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because I judge you intend to give him a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">[173]</a></span>
-job in the store that will at least partly pay his
-board.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink looked off at the fountain where
-two marble babies were having an unending
-water duel, and apparently from their expressions
-having great fun over it.</p>
-
-<p>“That is a very good idea,” she said, “to
-read law with Colonel Duane.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden accepted her ignoring of the “job.”
-There was a change in her since yesterday. She
-seemed to be smothering and controlling some
-spite against himself. If she suspected anything,
-he must prepare Hugh. The sudden
-meeting with Ally and the plan to help her with
-the recital had changed the boy’s gloomy, rebellious
-mood; and certainly nothing had occurred
-since last evening, when Miss Frink had
-been a sufficiently complacent though passive
-hostess.</p>
-
-<p>“I will attend to the matter,” she said after a
-pause, and rose. “I must go in. Grim will
-wonder if I am forgetting the mail.”</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">[174]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV<br />
-<span class="smaller">APPLE BLOSSOMS</span></h2>
-
-<p>Adèle was in a porch swing, her pretty slippers
-and ankles very much in evidence when Miss
-Frink and Ogden came up on the veranda. She
-was singing “Madelon,” and Hugh was trying
-to stop her, amid much laughter and threatening.</p>
-
-<p>The lady of the old school crossed to her and
-pulled down the skirt of the young woman’s
-pink dimity morning dress. It would have kept
-Miss Frink busy if she had performed that
-office for all the girls in Farrandale who needed
-it that morning, and all the mornings; although
-Farrandale was no more lax than any other
-town.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle rose quickly from the swinging seat,
-and Miss Frink turned to Hugh. “Well, what’s
-this I hear about our young lawyer?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, has Mr. Ogden told you of my wish
-to read with Colonel Duane? I’m keen for it,
-Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p>That lady looked up into his eager face with
-a lingering regard. What would he say if she
-told him here and now that she knew him to be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">[175]</a></span>
-hers; her own flesh and blood; she who but a
-few weeks ago had believed herself alone in the
-world? This splendid specimen of young manhood
-was hers, hers to assist or to renounce.
-Her habitual shrewdness and forethought
-warned her that she did not know him: that he
-must show the stuff he was made of before she
-could discover whether she cared to own him.
-He was deceiving her, at the present moment.
-He was only watching for opportunities to use
-her. No wonder his conscience had revolted at
-the succession of favors pressed upon him by
-the woman he was hoodwinking. Miss Frink’s
-X-ray mentality told her that here was an
-honest thought manipulated by the man of the
-world with whom she had just been tête-à-tête.
-Nevertheless, Hugh was at fault. He should
-have spurned such a plan—“And let you lie
-under the simple granite monument provided
-for in your will?” added some small inner voice.</p>
-
-<p>Probably that suggestion was what made her
-smile at him now, so reflectively.</p>
-
-<p>“That is, if Colonel Duane is willing to be
-bothered with me,” went on the boy, still
-eagerly. “I can’t trust you, Miss Frink. I
-won’t have the old gentleman bound hand and
-foot and thrown down at my feet.”</p>
-
-<p>This egregious remark touched Miss Frink’s<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">[176]</a></span>
-sense of humor. She laughed spontaneously.
-The implication of her power pleased her no
-less than that of her devotion to this dastardly,
-double-faced youth.</p>
-
-<p>“You just mind your own business, Hugh,”
-she returned. “You shall see the Colonel to-day.”</p>
-
-<p>“I should love to walk over there with him,”
-said Adèle.</p>
-
-<p>“I believe you,” replied Miss Frink, “but do
-you know Colonel Duane?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, no, but—”</p>
-
-<p>“I think another arrangement would be
-better,” said Miss Frink, and, turning, went
-into the house.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle pretended to shiver. “Oh, she does sit
-on me so hard!” she cried, then she dropped
-back into the porch seat and continued her gay
-badinage with Hugh, the undercurrent of her
-thought triumphing over her difficult hostess,
-inasmuch as she knew her to be a dupe and
-could reveal it, at any time.</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden watched the young woman uneasily.
-It was evident that she was doing her
-best to attract Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Say, boy, I’d look out for Ally if I were
-you,” said Ogden when again they were alone.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, she’s lots of fun.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">[177]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, she means to be; but she’s in wrong
-with Miss Frink. It seems she is here, entirely
-under false pretenses.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh turned and stared down at his mentor.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed!” he replied. “How shocking!”</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink has found it out,” said Ogden,
-flushing, “and through me. That’s the worst
-of it.”</p>
-
-<p>“A little stone-throwing in your glass house,
-eh?”</p>
-
-<p>“Totally unintentional.” And Ogden repeated
-what had taken place.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh stared into space. He hated to have
-people get in wrong. It disturbed him all the
-time that Ally should have been such a fool as
-to deserve to get in wrong with the courts.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course Miss Frink doesn’t dream of the
-court disgrace,” added Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>“Women always get the worst of it,” said
-Hugh moodily.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’ve no doubt she will at least keep
-her word about the recital,” remarked Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>“We must take it for granted,” said Hugh
-energetically. “We must help the poor girl,
-and have some pep about it.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden laughed. “You can be trusted for
-pep,” he returned. “That was a good line
-about Colonel Duane. I should have expected<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">[178]</a></span>
-Miss Frink to have Grimshaw escort your conceited
-self to the gate.”</p>
-
-<p>At that moment the Colonel was watching a
-pair of birds feeding their young. Millicent
-came to the door and called him in to the
-’phone.</p>
-
-<p>“It is Miss Frink,” she said with bated
-breath. “I do hope it is nothing about me.”</p>
-
-<p>The old gentleman patted her hand as he took
-the receiver, and the girl stood with parted lips,
-listening.</p>
-
-<p>“Good-morning, Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, yes, if an old fogy like myself can be
-of any use to him, certainly.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, plenty of time. I’m a very small
-farmer, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I have the foundational books.”</p>
-
-<p>“No doubt you would, Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p>“To-day? Yes, I shall be very glad to see
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well, I shall be here.”</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Duane hung up the receiver and
-smiled at the girl with the rapt eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“No, you’re not discharged, my dear. She
-has another errand for you to do.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is it, Grandpa?”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t lose those eyes out, my dear. You’re
-sure to need them again some time. The young<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">[179]</a></span>
-man there, Mr. Stanwood, wants to come over
-here to see my law books.”</p>
-
-<p>“Are you sure it isn’t Mr. Ogden?” asked
-Millicent earnestly. “He was so interested in
-everything yesterday.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, it is Mr. Stanwood. It seems he started
-to read law, and then they needed him in
-France.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I told Mr. Ogden that you were a celebrated
-lawyer.”</p>
-
-<p>“You little girl! Blowing the old man’s
-horn.” He put his arm around her.</p>
-
-<p>“What is the errand, Grandpa?”</p>
-
-<p>“To bring Mr. Stanwood over here.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!”</p>
-
-<p>“When you get through the reading, he will
-be waiting for you on the veranda.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see why Mr. Ogden doesn’t bring
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why should he, when you are coming right
-home, anyway? Possibly Mr. Ogden doesn’t
-care to call on us every day.”</p>
-
-<p>What could be simpler than picking Mr.
-Stanwood up on the veranda, and showing him
-the way to her grandfather? Millicent was
-vexed with herself for feeling as if she were setting
-out on an adventure when she went to her
-reading that day. She could see Hugh as he sat<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">[180]</a></span>
-on the arm of his easy-chair, bejeweled with
-crimson petals, swinging his gay foot, and snapping
-his fingers in time to the jazz. At least he
-would not have on that cursed dressing-gown
-to-day, and she would show him by her businesslike
-manner that she was simply doing an errand
-for Miss Frink in being his escort.</p>
-
-<p>When that lady lost consciousness to-day,
-and began gently to blow the silk handkerchief
-thrown over her face, Millicent despised
-the sensation of her heart beginning to beat a
-little faster as she tripped down the wide staircase
-to the ponderous front door. As she came
-out upon the veranda, she saw him. He was
-sitting in the porch swing with Mrs. Lumbard,
-and Mrs. Lumbard looked unusually pretty in
-a pink dimity gown, and was exhibiting lengths
-of crossed silk stockings as she impelled the
-swing with the tip of one slipper.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh at once jumped up, and Adèle nodded.
-“You made a short job of it to-day,” she remarked,
-and Millicent hated her.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps you are not quite ready, Mr.
-Stanwood,” she said, with what was Farrandale’s
-most formal and forbidding manner.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, I am,” he replied, picking up his hat.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t you think you’d better take an overcoat,
-Hughie?” asked Adèle affectionately.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">[181]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“No, indeed, it’s warm. Well, good-bye,
-Ally, I won’t ask you to be good—just to be
-as good as you can.”</p>
-
-<p>She laughed and threw him a kiss. Millicent
-stood, stiff as a ramrod, hating them both.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh smiled at her disarmingly as they went
-down the steps together. “You know I am as
-pleased as a boy with a pair of red boots to
-think Colonel Duane will take me,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“He seemed very willing,” returned the
-girl, without looking at him.</p>
-
-<p>Had Damaris been the escort of the most
-talked-about young man in Farrandale, she
-would have paraded him: taken him by the
-most populous ways. Millicent had mapped out
-a semi-rural route, longer to be sure, but one in
-which few people would see them and say that
-Millicent Duane was out walking with Miss
-Frink’s young man.</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Lumbard worked among us doughboys
-in France,” said Hugh, sensing an iciness
-in the atmosphere.</p>
-
-<p>“I heard her say so yesterday,” returned
-Millicent, eyes ahead.</p>
-
-<p>“She plays like a house afire,” said Hugh,
-“and she has to earn her living. Do you believe
-she could make a go of it teaching piano
-here?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">[182]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know why not?” returned the girl
-civilly.</p>
-
-<p>“Anyway, Miss Frink is going to let her give
-a recital in her house and let the people hear
-her. Will you help boom it?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m afraid I’m a person of no influence, Mr.
-Stanwood.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh regarded the persistent profile, a very
-grave profile with a slightly tilted nose.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Ogden says you had a grouch yesterday,”
-he said good-humoredly. “Is this a
-hang-over?”</p>
-
-<p>At this she turned and gave him a look
-which came out somewhere beyond him. “I
-don’t know what you mean.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, you don’t seem to realize that this is a
-great day. Spring is here, and the birds are
-busy—this is a mighty pretty street, by the
-way, like the country, and I’m out of that infernal
-room walking on my own legs. I feel we
-should be taking hold of hands and skipping—Merry,
-Merry May, fol-de-rol, tiddle-de-winks,
-and all that, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>She met his laughing eyes and relaxed
-slightly. “It is a celebration for you, isn’t it?”
-she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. Ogden said Miss Frink teased you
-yesterday.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">[183]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, how silly to speak of it!” exclaimed
-Millicent, reverting to the profile and coloring
-beautifully. He thought she looked very pretty,
-and he laughed gayly at her sudden temper.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I just want you to remember that I
-wasn’t the guilty party. An innocent bystander
-shouldn’t be crushed, yet how often they are!”</p>
-
-<p>In the rural road, Hugh was effervescing with
-the joy of living, and his prim escort was gradually
-unbending. When an apple tree in full
-bloom came in view, it helped wonderfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Grandpa has a little orchard. It looks
-marvelous. You will see—we’re almost there.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wait a minute, Miss Duane”—Hugh
-put out a hand gropingly—“just a minute.
-I feel queer—”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent looked around at him. He was
-very pale.</p>
-
-<p>“Can you beat it?” he demanded feebly.
-“That apple tree—it’s whirling. I think I’m—going
-to—”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, don’t, Mr. Stanwood.” His groping
-hand grasped her arm, and she held him with
-the other while he sank on the bank under the
-apple blossoms, his weight pulling her down
-beside him.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, shoot!” he gasped.</p>
-
-<p>“Please don’t faint,” she said. “We’re so<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">[184]</a></span>
-nearly there. Just lie still; I’ll go get Grandpa
-to help.”</p>
-
-<p>She fled away, and he closed his eyes and
-called himself names.</p>
-
-<p>Back they came, Millicent white and flushed
-by turns, and the old gentleman coming along
-with his hale and hearty tread.</p>
-
-<p>“Not such a bad couch,” he said cheerily,
-bending over Hugh while Millicent stood with
-clasped hands, suffering all the throes of guilt.
-The regular road would have been little more
-than half as long, and she could hear Mrs.
-Lumbard’s comments on choosing the romantic
-path.</p>
-
-<p>“Lie there a bit while Milly brings you some
-hot milk, then you’ll get to the house easily
-enough between us two sturdy ones. Tried to
-do a little too much, I guess.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent went back with winged feet and
-soon returned with the hot milk. He drank
-the milk, supported by Colonel Duane’s arm,
-and soon his dizziness ceased. Leaning on the
-two friends he walked slowly, and soon entered
-the back gate of their cottage. The little orchard
-made the place look in festive array.</p>
-
-<p>“All dressed up for you, you see,” said the
-Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>“Heavenly!” said Hugh.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">[185]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Millicent was valiantly supporting one of
-his arms, and his other was around the Colonel’s
-neck.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll say it’s pretty here,” said Hugh.
-“Sorry I was a fool.”</p>
-
-<p>“Going to put you in the hammock,” said
-Colonel Duane, “and let you look the apple
-blossoms out of countenance awhile.”</p>
-
-<p>This he did, arranging the pillows deftly
-under Hugh’s head. He went into the house
-for another, and Millicent stood there looking
-down at the patient.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh smiled up at her; and there was that
-dreadful smile again, that Prince Charming
-smile that made so much defense necessary,
-and she hadn’t any more. Remorse had
-drowned it.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s all right now, childie,” said her
-grandfather comfortingly. “I’ll bet you’re
-blaming yourself for taking that road. How
-did you happen to?”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s lots—lots prettier,” said Millicent
-with a gulp. She sank into a receptive rocking-chair.</p>
-
-<p>“And the joke is,” said the Colonel, “that
-Miss Frink didn’t think he was up to the short
-road, even. She was expecting you to drive,
-and somehow or other Grimshaw was tardy<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">[186]</a></span>
-with the team and you had gone. So he hopped
-in and came the whole way, beating up the
-sidewalks for you.” Colonel Duane laughed.
-“I told him to go over to Damaris and see if
-you were there.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Grandpa!” groaned the girl.</p>
-
-<p>“So he went, and he said if he didn’t find
-you he would go back and tell Miss Frink that
-you preferred to walk.” The old gentleman
-laughed again. “Grimshaw believes in self-preservation.
-That is what we are all to say.
-You preferred to walk.” He rose. “I promised
-to call up as soon as you arrived. I’ll tell them
-you enjoyed the trip. Eh?”</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">[187]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI<br />
-<span class="smaller">MISS FRINK MAKES A CALL</span></h2>
-
-<p>At the tears on Millicent’s face now, Hugh
-laughed aloud. She was looking aghast.</p>
-
-<p>“To-morrow everybody will know it!” she
-ejaculated.</p>
-
-<p>“Know what?”</p>
-
-<p>“That Mr. Grimshaw couldn’t find us.”
-And crystal drops began again to race down
-her cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>“You cry-baby!” said Hugh, regarding her
-curiously. “Here, I have more of a handkerchief
-than that. Come here and I’ll bail while
-you pour.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, am I crying?” she returned, distractedly
-mopping her cheeks. “I must speak to Damaris
-as soon as Grandpa gets through. You don’t
-know what it is to live in a little town.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, is that it?” returned Hugh, regarding
-her flushed, troubled face, and thinking it was
-as sweet as a dew-washed flower. “They’ll
-say we eloped, eh? I’ll tell the world I thank
-’em for the compliment.”</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Duane here reappeared and Millicent
-dashed by him into the house. He seemed
-to be serenely unaware of his grandchild’s<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">[188]</a></span>
-excitement, and, telling Hugh not to talk, but
-to rest, he seated himself a little way off, and
-Hugh had the full benefit of the one-sided
-conversation within.</p>
-
-<p>It was a particularly cheerful and care-free
-voice speaking, with little gulps in the throat
-that caught it at unexpected moments.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, Damaris, it’s Millicent. I was
-sorry Mr. Grimshaw had to trouble you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, I’m home. It was such a beautiful
-day, you know, we walked over.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Mr. Stanwood had business with
-Grandpa, and—and he didn’t understand
-that Mr. Grimshaw—What? Yes, didn’t
-know that he was expected to wait for the
-carriage. What? Yes, it was queer Mr. Grimshaw
-didn’t see us. We were just—walking
-along, you know, just walking along. What?
-Yes, he’s here. He and Grandpa are together.
-Did you say Mr. Grimshaw looked scared?
-Why, what for? Yes, of course, Mr. Stanwood
-isn’t entirely strong yet. Oh, that’s all right.
-I just wanted you to know that nobody is lost,
-strayed, or stolen.” Suddenly, with great
-dignity, the voice changed. “No, no, indeed.
-Good-bye.”</p>
-
-<p>When Millicent went back to the piazza
-after washing her face and applying powder<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">[189]</a></span>
-where it would be most effective, she found her
-grandfather seated by his recumbent guest and
-asking him about his previous studies.</p>
-
-<p>“You might bring Mr. Stanwood a cup of
-bouillon, Milly,” said the Colonel, and the girl
-went back into the house.</p>
-
-<p>When she reappeared, her own fresh, fair,
-and demure self, bearing her offering, Hugh
-looked at her approvingly.</p>
-
-<p>“My life is just one tray after another,” he
-said.</p>
-
-<p>The patient had just taken his last swallow
-when a sound of wheels was heard. Miss Frink’s
-victoria stopped before the gate, and that lady
-herself dismounted and came up the path.
-Colonel Duane hastened to meet her. Millicent
-stood up, holding the tray undecidedly, with
-an expression of face which seemed to be
-bracing for a <i lang="fr">coup de grace</i>, and Hugh flung a
-long leg out of the hammock.</p>
-
-<p>“Lie still, Hugh,” ordered the visitor, waving
-her parasol authoritatively.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh withdrew the leg. Miss Frink had
-never walked up on that piazza before, although
-it was her own property. She looked
-around approvingly.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve made this place lovely, Colonel
-Duane.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">[190]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, we think it is a good deal of a paradise
-this time of year.”</p>
-
-<p>“So you overdid yourself,” said Miss Frink,
-seating herself in the offered chair by the
-hammock.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Duane lifted Millicent’s tray and
-carried it into the house, and the girl took a
-chair near the visitor.</p>
-
-<p>“What makes you think so?” inquired Hugh
-blandly.</p>
-
-<p>“You didn’t come by the road. There was
-only one other way you could come.”</p>
-
-<p>No one in the world ever looked guiltier than
-Millicent at this moment. Her awe of Miss
-Frink kept her eyes dry and very large, but
-she saw her job disappearing, and herself
-stingingly rebuked.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s gaze turned upon her.</p>
-
-<p>“What was your idea?” she asked bluntly,
-but she was conscious of the picture made by
-the blue-gowned girl against the background
-of apple blossoms.</p>
-
-<p>Millicent’s lips opened and closed several
-times without a sound emerging.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink laughed, and exchanged a look
-with Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“You took him down Lover’s Lane. That’s
-what you did,” said Miss Frink, regarding the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">[191]</a></span>
-girl accusingly. “Of course, it’s ever so much
-more romantic than the highroad; but we’ve
-got to build Prince Charming up before you
-can cut up any such didos as that.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Miss Frink!” It was a gasp, not only
-of extreme embarrassment, but also of relief
-that the matter might be treated jocosely.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re barking up the wrong tree,” said
-Hugh, grinning. “I’ve found out what she
-did it for. She was hiding me.” Miss Frink
-grimaced her glasses off. “Yes, madam, she
-lives in a small town and she was hiding me.”</p>
-
-<p>“And set every dog and goose to barking
-and cackling,” declared Miss Frink.</p>
-
-<p>“But I revenged myself on her. I waited
-till we came to a mossy couch under an apple
-tree, and then I keeled over.—Look out”—a
-warning hand toward Millicent—“don’t
-you cry now. She was the best little sport
-you ever heard of. I nearly crushed her poor
-little wing while she and Colonel Duane were
-getting me up here, and they have filled me
-with the milk of human kindness and beef tea
-ever since.”</p>
-
-<p>“It was all Grimshaw’s stupidity,” said Miss
-Frink. “I put it in his hands and he didn’t
-order the carriage in time.” Her lips twitched
-amusedly. “He tried to shift the responsibility,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">[192]</a></span>
-and make out that you preferred to walk; but
-I X-rayed him. He hadn’t a chance. Did I
-ever tell you, Hugh, to beware of my X-ray
-mind?” She regarded him quizzically, admiring
-his beauty as she always did. “Double-dealing
-hasn’t a chance with me. I always see directly
-through it.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh rearranged his pillows. “Quite a business
-asset, I should judge,” he returned, and
-for a minute his complexion matched the
-hectic hue of Millicent. Why should Miss
-Frink be boring into him, as it were, with her
-dark, bright eyes?</p>
-
-<p>“So when Grim got through the account of
-his pilgrimage, I knew you must have come
-by Lover’s Lane.” The speaker suddenly
-turned again upon the young girl with a
-smiling frown.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Miss Frink, I can’t tell you how sorry
-I am!” Millicent’s hands were clasped.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, be careful,” broke in Hugh. “Remember
-the size of your handkerchief.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll try not to cry,” she responded, her
-voice teetering, as it were, like a person trying
-to keep his balance on a tight rope. “I’m so
-thankful if you’re not vexed with me. I do
-think now it was awfully stupid; but you know
-what Farrandale is.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">[193]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Bless me!” said Miss Frink. “Then the
-child really was trying to hide you!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Millicent frankly; “and then
-Mr. Grimshaw went right over to the Coopers’,
-hunting!”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink gave her rare laugh. Millicent
-was so pretty against the apple blossoms, and
-so genuinely disturbed, and Hugh so handsome
-and amused, she thoroughly enjoyed the
-situation.</p>
-
-<p>“Didn’t I say you set all the geese to cackling?
-I will call a town meeting and announce
-that there is nothing in it. How will that
-do?”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent struggled not to feel embarrassed.
-“With your X-ray mind you’ll know there
-isn’t,” she returned, with more spirit than
-Hugh had given her credit for.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Duane reappeared with another
-tray. It bore tea and little cakes this time.
-Miss Frink liked the way his granddaughter
-sprang to his assistance and arranged everything
-on the porch table. Colonel Duane was
-a gentleman of the old school and his breeding
-showed in Millicent. She liked their simplicity
-and fineness. The girl’s job was never safer.</p>
-
-<p>When tea was served, Millicent opened a
-subject near her heart.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">[194]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink,” she said, “will you let me beg
-a favor of you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly. Speak right up.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is about Damaris. I have experimented,
-and I can fix her hair so you would never know
-it was bobbed.”</p>
-
-<p>The caller eyed her sharply. “Are you tired
-of reading to me?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, indeed!” The ejaculation was earnest.
-“But couldn’t she have my place in the gloves,
-if—if I show you the way I can fix her hair?
-And she is so attractive, and bright, and pretty,
-and people would love to have her fit them,
-and she knows so many people—” The girl
-stopped, it was so extraordinary to be talking
-courageously to Miss Frink.</p>
-
-<p>That lady turned toward Colonel Duane.
-“Your granddaughter would make a good
-press-agent, wouldn’t she?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Milly would,” he returned, composedly
-sipping his tea.</p>
-
-<p>“Then if people didn’t believe her she would
-cry,” remarked Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s all this about your crying, Millicent?”
-asked Miss Frink.</p>
-
-<p>“When I’ve done wrong, like making Mr.
-Stanwood too tired and—and having everybody
-talk about it, I cry; that’s natural, isn’t<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">[195]</a></span>
-it? But never mind his teasing. I wish I could
-get the place for Damaris.”</p>
-
-<p>“This generation is so full of silly girls,”
-said Miss Frink. “Hugh, have you your
-mother’s picture in your pocket?”</p>
-
-<p>He blinked, and colored again. Throwing
-his long legs out of the hammock, he sat up
-against the netting. “I didn’t tell you it was
-Mother,” he blurted out.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Miss Frink quietly. “There
-are a number of things you didn’t tell me.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh felt in his pocket and produced the case.</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t have to tell her things,” said
-Millicent—“with an X-ray mind, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>Silently Miss Frink accepted the offered
-morocco case, and opened it under Millicent’s
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Isn’t she lovely!” exclaimed the girl.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. Look at that hair and compare Damaris’s
-with it. Does your sister resemble your
-mother?” Miss Frink suddenly addressed
-Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>His tea-cup jingled in his hand.</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t—I—yes, she does. You <em>have</em>
-been X-raying, Miss Frink. I didn’t tell you
-about my sister.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, but Mr. Ogden did. She must be a
-very fine woman.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">[196]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Hugh regarded the speaker with parted lips.
-Was she about to release the sword of Damocles
-before these witnesses; or was this all she knew?</p>
-
-<p>“But it will be growing all the time, you see,”
-said Millicent; and Miss Frink passed the
-photograph to the Colonel. “I wish you’d
-let me show you, Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p>That lady’s lips twitched and the bright eyes
-were very kind as she looked at this girl who
-didn’t sprawl, or loll in her chair, and who was
-fresh as Aurora.</p>
-
-<p>“Very well, I suppose I must listen to such
-a special pleader. I offered the position to Mrs.
-Lumbard, but she seemed to think that teaching
-music would be more in her line.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t see her there,” said Millicent,
-shaking her blonde head seriously, “nearly so
-well as I can Damaris.”</p>
-
-<p>“To tell the truth, neither can I,” returned
-Miss Frink.</p>
-
-<p>“Then—then may I tell her there is hope?”
-asked Millicent eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. You might use it as a bribe to get her
-not to tell everybody of Mr. Grimshaw’s coming
-around with a search-warrant. Eh?” The
-speaker returned the photograph case to its
-owner. “It’s time I took this boy home. Have
-we some big books to carry, Colonel Duane?”</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">[197]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII<br />
-<span class="smaller">ADÈLE</span></h2>
-
-<p>As they entered the carriage, and on the way
-home, Hugh waited for some further personal
-remarks from his companion, but none came
-regarding themselves. Miss Frink declared
-herself in favor of pushing through the plans
-for Mrs. Lumbard’s recital.</p>
-
-<p>“I should like to get it over with for many
-reasons. One is that I feel like a bull in a china
-shop when it comes to entertaining. I know no
-more about it, nor half so much as my cook.
-I rely on you to be host, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll do the best a clumsy doughboy can;
-but there is Mr. Ogden. He knows the ropes
-about everything.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, he does. I admit that.” Miss Frink
-nodded in a way which again made Hugh feel
-that the day of reckoning was upon him.
-“He’s a smooth rascal!”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh felt profoundly uncomfortable. He
-yearned to loose that Damocles weapon himself.
-He couldn’t break his promise to Ogden,
-but he could relieve himself in an honest remark,
-something that would lend some respectability
-to the situation.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">[198]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Are you going to let me have that job in
-the store that I came for, Miss Frink?” he
-asked.</p>
-
-<p>She smiled vaguely at the roadside. “Of
-course. Let us see. You want to begin at the
-sub-basement, and learn how department
-stores are constructed.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh blushed furiously. “Don’t make fun
-of me, please. I was packing boxes in a basement
-when Mr. Ogden looked me up, for my
-family’s sake.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. He says he used to be in love with
-your sister,” returned Miss Frink composedly;
-“but he says so many things besides his
-prayers.”</p>
-
-<p>“I guess there’s no doubt about that,” returned
-the boy, miserably embarrassed. “It
-took some pretty strong impulse to make anybody
-take any interest in such a shuffling
-proposition as I was.—It seems a year ago,
-that day he found me. My hand against every
-man, and every man’s hand against me.”</p>
-
-<p>“And he dressed you up in nice clean clothes,
-and laid out your programme, and sent you on
-your way.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why—he did—but did he tell you so
-this morning when you were hobnobbing so
-long?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">[199]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Had Ogden laid down the cards without
-telling him?</p>
-
-<p>“No,” replied Miss Frink equably. “I
-just X-rayed him a little. He was taking all
-the credit of your saving my life. I believe he
-allowed Providence a small part.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, do let us forget that, Miss Frink!”
-ejaculated the boy. “I’m a chap that’s come
-to you for a job, and you are kind enough to
-give it to me. I do want to learn the business.”</p>
-
-<p>“And perhaps you will,” was the quiet
-reply; “but we’ll wait a bit yet till you can
-walk a mile or so and stand up under it. I do
-like those Duanes. That little Millicent—I
-can’t help calling her little, though she’s as tall
-as I am. What a refreshment it is in these days
-to find a girl a lady.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry you don’t like Ally,” said Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t like liars,” returned Miss Frink
-calmly.</p>
-
-<p>The boy’s ears grew crimson.</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose I ought to have been a man,”
-she added. “I seem to be out of sympathy
-with most things feminine. Mr. Ogden gave
-me information concerning Mrs. Lumbard
-this morning which lifted a big irritation. It
-makes whatever I do for her now a favor instead<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">[200]</a></span>
-of a duty. Once, Hugh, I had an honest
-friend—just one. There never has been
-another. We loved each other. Mrs. Lumbard
-came here representing herself as this woman’s
-granddaughter, and she called me Aunt Susanna
-on the strength of it. Mr. Ogden unconsciously
-spoiled her game this morning.
-I never had trusted her, and had rebuked myself
-for it; but I’m usually right—that X-ray,
-you know.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh, rolling along beside her in the charming
-little carriage, wondered wretchedly if she
-trusted him, or if the X-ray was working.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry for Ally,” he said gravely.</p>
-
-<p>“So am I,” responded Miss Frink promptly.
-“I hope she will develop some day into a
-worthy woman. I regret that it has to be in
-Farrandale, but we can’t have all things to
-please us.”</p>
-
-<p>“Some day,” thought Hugh, “she will want
-me to be a worthy man, anywhere but in
-Farrandale.”</p>
-
-<p>He was in his room dressing for dinner when
-Ogden came in.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, admitted to the bar yet?” demanded
-the latter gayly.</p>
-
-<p>“Look here, Ogden”—Hugh advanced and
-seized his friend. “When you were spilling<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">[201]</a></span>
-Ally’s beans this morning, did you spill mine,
-too, and never told me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not so, dear one. Will you kindly not pull
-the button off my coat?”</p>
-
-<p>“She acts as if she knew. We were all on the
-Duanes’ porch and she asked me to show my
-mother’s picture to Miss Duane. How did
-she suddenly know it was my mother?”</p>
-
-<p>“Whew!” Whistled Ogden, surprised. “Search
-me. I never gave her a clue; but she seemed to
-have it in for me for some reason this morning.
-Oh,” after a thoughtful moment, “she doesn’t
-know! She’s the yea-yea, and nay-nay, kind.
-If she knew you were Hugh Sinclair, she would
-either say, ‘bless you, my child,’ or tell you to
-get off the earth. I know her.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m growing to know her,” said Hugh,
-going on with his toilet, “and I’ll say she’s
-a trump. I don’t like to look forward to being
-despised by her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hugh, my son, don’t make me laugh.
-You’ve got the woman. I don’t know whether
-it’s the shape of your nose or your general air
-of having the world by the tail, but the deed’s
-done.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh regarded him gloomily. “All to be
-knocked over by a simple twist of the wrist
-when she learns that I’m the thing she despises<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">[202]</a></span>
-most—a liar. She says she has had only one
-honest friend. I’d tell her the truth to-night
-if it weren’t for Ally’s recital. I don’t want
-anything to disturb that, poor girl.”</p>
-
-<p>Under Ogden’s guidance, the invitations to
-Mrs. Lumbard’s recital were sent out promptly,
-and Farrandale society rose to its first opportunity
-to be entertained in the Frink mansion.
-Not a regret was received by Miss Frink’s
-social secretary <i lang="la">pro tem</i>. Adèle, as the star
-of the occasion, took an oddly small part in the
-preparations. She did some practicing on her
-programme, apologizing to Hugh for its more
-weighty numbers.</p>
-
-<p>Leonard Grimshaw observed her infatuation
-for the young man, and it added to the score
-against him which began on the day Hugh was
-carried into the house. Was he in love with
-Adèle himself? He sometimes asked himself
-the question. She had sparkled into such life
-and vivacity in these last days that any man
-would have felt her attraction.</p>
-
-<p>One day he found himself alone with her on
-the veranda. “Do you realize all Miss Frink
-is doing for you in giving this affair?” he
-asked.</p>
-
-<p>“No. Is it such a great indulgence?” she
-returned lightly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">[203]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Positively. It is breaking her habits of
-years, and it will be a great expense. She is
-making lavish preparations,” declared Grimshaw
-severely.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, don’t blame me for it, Leonard,”
-said the young woman, reverting to the appealing
-manner. “It was Hughie’s idea.”</p>
-
-<p>“For pity’s sake don’t call him ‘Hughie’!”
-exclaimed the other irritably. “It makes me
-sick. You’re so crazy about him, anyway.”</p>
-
-<p>Adèle smiled up at her companion. “How
-delightful! I do believe you’re jealous, Leonard.
-I’m complimented to death.”</p>
-
-<p>“<em>You</em> have far more reason to be jealous,”
-he retorted. “Anybody with half an eye can
-see that Stanwood is fascinated with Millicent’s
-demure ways. ‘In the spring a young
-man’s fancy,’ etc., you know, and these walks
-with her every day—”</p>
-
-<p>“He has to go to her grandfather,” broke in
-Adèle, a frown gathering and quenching the
-light in her eyes. “He cares nothing for that
-stupid creature except to tease her.”</p>
-
-<p>“And you should care nothing for him,
-Adèle,” said Grimshaw quickly. “He is a
-crude boy without a cent, just beginning life.
-Why waste your time? You are meat for his
-masters.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">[204]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>She lifted her head coquettishly, the frown
-disappearing. “Are you his master?”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps,” said Grimshaw.</p>
-
-<p>His regard for Adèle had been deepened
-by the fact that Miss Frink was giving this
-affair for her. It seemed to prove that she was
-more and more a person to be reckoned with,
-and likely to share with himself in all his employer’s
-favors. Moreover, the young woman’s
-attraction to and for Hugh Stanwood had
-seemed to create a new eagerness for her in
-himself which at moments threatened to overcome
-his caution. If Adèle were really to be
-one of Miss Frink’s heirs, there was no need
-for caution. What worried him was that he
-feared that some time he might commit himself
-on an uncertainty. Adèle in her present
-mood was a menace to clear thinking.</p>
-
-<p>The day of the recital arrived. John Ogden
-was here, there, and everywhere. The piano
-was freshly tuned. He supervised the removal
-of the drawing-room furniture and the placing
-of the crowd of camp-chairs. Miss Frink, feeling
-invertebrate for the first time in her life, forgot
-that he was a smooth rascal, and followed
-his suggestions implicitly as to dressing-rooms
-and the servants’ duties. Leonard Grimshaw’s
-nostrils dilated when his employer informed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">[205]</a></span>
-him that Mr. Ogden had given instructions to
-the caterer and that he, Grim, need feel no
-care.</p>
-
-<p>“I think you would find, Miss Frink, that
-we could manage this affair if Mr. Ogden were
-still in New York,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank Heaven he isn’t,” returned that
-lady devoutly.</p>
-
-<p>Millicent found it not such an easy matter
-to put her employer to sleep to-day. She was
-reading the book of an Arctic explorer; and
-Miss Frink was learning more about the
-astonishing flora of those regions than she
-had ever expected to know as the pleasant
-voice read on, with an intelligence born of
-long assistance to her grandfather’s failing
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p>At last Miss Frink flung off the white silk
-handkerchief. “It’s no use, Millicent,” she
-said. “You know how it is when a young
-débutante is taking her first plunge into society.
-It’s exciting. I never gave a party before.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure it is going to be a wonderful one,”
-replied the girl, closing the book on her finger.
-“Every one is so pleased to be coming.”</p>
-
-<p>She spoke perfunctorily. Adèle had been
-steadying a ladder for Hugh as she crossed the
-veranda coming in, and the look on the former’s<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">[206]</a></span>
-face as she gazed up, and he laughed down,
-had infuriated her by the sudden heat it brought
-on at the back of her own neck.</p>
-
-<p>“How-do, Millicent,” Hugh had cried;
-“you’ll have to go home alone to-day. Don’t
-you cry!”</p>
-
-<p>She had bowed to Adèle, ignoring his chaff,
-and said something pleasant about anticipating
-the evening.</p>
-
-<p>“You would think,” she said now, “that
-Mrs. Lumbard would be the excited one. How
-coolly she takes it.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink shook her pillowed head. “I
-think it is nothing in her life to play to a lot of
-rubes,” she remarked.</p>
-
-<p>“They won’t care to be taught by her if she
-feels that way,” said Millicent stiffly.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink laughed. She had learned to
-laugh in the last month. “I shouldn’t have
-said that. Don’t repeat it and ruin business.
-I’m just guessing; but I don’t believe any
-kind of an audience would disconcert her.
-Have you heard her play?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you have a treat in store. As Hugh
-says, nobody can hit the box like Ally.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why does he call her Ally?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because of her white hair. When she was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">[207]</a></span>
-working among the doughboys they called her
-an albino.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is she one?” Millicent looked preternaturally
-serious.</p>
-
-<p>“Search me,” returned the débutante carelessly.
-“Now, look here, Milly, I have another
-job for you. I want you to receive with
-me to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>“What, Miss Frink?”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Ogden says I’ve got to stand up there
-by the portières like a black satin post, and
-receive the guests as they come in. I thought
-I should like to have you and Hugh stand by
-me in the ordeal.”</p>
-
-<p>It entertained Miss Frink to see Millicent
-blush, and she watched the color come now,
-and the startled look in the girl’s eyes, like
-that of a bird ready to fly.</p>
-
-<p>“You see,” went on Miss Frink, “somebody
-will have to nudge me when I say, ‘Good-evening,
-Mr. Griscom; I see you put that deal
-over for the Woman’s Club Building!’ ‘Good-evening,
-Mr. Bacon; so that rise in real estate
-across the river is upon us. Congratulations!’
-etc., etc.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I wouldn’t be any good, Miss Frink,
-and I—and I couldn’t—it would—for you
-to honor Hugh and me together like that—”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">[208]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink sighed. “I suppose I should have
-to call another town meeting to tell them again
-that there was nothing in it. I was saying what
-I would <em>like</em> to have; but, as a matter of fact,
-Mr. Grimshaw would be very justly hurt if I
-planned on Hugh’s supporting me.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent looked relieved. “Mr. Grimshaw
-is just the right one,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“And you would have no objection to standing
-up with him?” Miss Frink’s quizzical
-smile was playing about her lips.</p>
-
-<p>The young girl shook her head.</p>
-
-<p>“Then you put on your prettiest frock and
-come and stand beside the old lady, and burst
-out with something about the weather if you
-hear me mention stocks, bonds, or real estate.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent went home and told her grandfather
-of the high honor thrust upon her. The
-responsibility, with that of netting Damaris’s
-hair into a demure coiffure for the occasion,
-made her all aquiver with excitement.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as she had left Miss Frink that day,
-Adèle knocked on her hostess’s door.</p>
-
-<p>“I heard you and Miss Duane talking, so
-I knew you were not asleep, Aunt Susanna,”
-she said. “I wanted you to see if I look all
-right for to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink drew herself up to a sitting<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">[209]</a></span>
-posture and regarded her visitor. Adèle looked
-like a French marquise, with her snowy hair,
-excited color, and eyes sparkling like brown
-diamonds. Her white crêpe gown clung to her.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink adjusted her glasses and nodded.
-“Very picturesque,” she said. “Sit down a
-minute, Adèle.”</p>
-
-<p>The latter’s eyes scintillated with swift
-apprehension. There was no warmth in her
-hostess’s approval.</p>
-
-<p>“What do you wish to say, Aunt Susanna?
-Is it about my hair? I’ll tell you.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, no,” said Miss Frink. “We are way
-past that.”</p>
-
-<p>Adèle liked the atmosphere less and less.</p>
-
-<p>“Please wait, then,” she said impulsively.
-“I don’t want to be thrown off my balance
-for to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink shrugged her shoulders. “I don’t
-know much about temperamental people,” she
-said. “Go on, then. You look very handsome,
-Adèle.”</p>
-
-<p>The young woman vanished quickly. Even
-Miss Frink said she looked very handsome.
-She exulted as she thought of Hugh. His image
-constantly filled her thought, and a thousand
-imaginings of the future went careering through
-her brain.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">[210]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII<br />
-<span class="smaller">THE RECITAL</span></h2>
-
-<p>Of course, Adèle played wonderfully that night.
-No anxious to-morrow with Miss Frink ventured
-into the rose-color of her dreams. She was
-playing to Hugh; and occasionally she caught
-his spellbound and admiring eyes. Even the
-drop of gall occasioned by the fact that, Millicent’s
-duties with the hostess over, Hugh seated
-himself beside her to listen, was drowned in the
-sweetness of his frank admiration.</p>
-
-<p>The great room was crowded. Miss Frink,
-unsmiling and reflective, regarded Adèle with
-a calculating eye and ear, absolving herself
-from any anxious care for the financial future
-of such a one.</p>
-
-<p>To many of the audience this private view,
-as it were, of Miss Frink and her home was of
-as much or more interest than the programme.
-John Ogden, as master of ceremonies, conducted
-the affair with grace, and his easy cordiality
-among a crowd almost entirely strange to him
-was a marvel to Miss Frink, and all her mental
-reservations were for the time being submerged
-in gratitude.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">[211]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But, in spite of the interest in the Queen
-of Farrandale as a private individual, Hugh
-Stanwood was really Exhibit A of the evening:
-the man who had saved Miss Frink’s life and
-lived in her house ever since. Was Leonard
-Grimshaw’s star descending? Was the handsome
-youth going to be adopted by his hostess?
-Why was Millicent Duane receiving with Miss
-Frink? Was Mr. Stanwood really reading law
-with her grandfather?</p>
-
-<p>Tongues would wag to-morrow. To-night
-they were silenced, first, by the music of—according
-to the programme—“Mrs. Adèle
-Lumbard, famous pianist of Atlanta, Georgia,”
-and later, by a very delicious supper.</p>
-
-<p>A procession of enthusiasts approached
-Adèle where she stood in a bay window at the
-close of the programme. Leonard Grimshaw
-was stationed beside her.</p>
-
-<p>“You are a queen, Adèle,” he murmured
-worshipfully, and she let her brown eyes speak
-her thanks.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Duane approached her. “Please
-accept my compliments,” he said, bending over
-her hand. “You will have all us oldsters practicing
-five-finger exercises to-morrow. Here is
-Hugh; he is almost bursting with pride that he
-knows you.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">[212]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“For a fact, Ally, you outdid yourself,” said
-Hugh, taking her hand. “Here is Millicent
-fairly afraid to approach such a star.”</p>
-
-<p>“It was perfectly beautiful,” said the young
-girl, gazing at her fervently.</p>
-
-<p>“Thanks,” returned Adèle perfunctorily,
-looking by her and wondering if she should
-have patience to receive the oncoming stream
-of people whom Grimshaw formally introduced
-one by one ere they dispersed about the house
-and out into the grounds.</p>
-
-<p>“I think one party will go a long way with
-me, Ogden,” said Miss Frink late in the evening,
-hiding a yawn behind her hand.</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden stood beside her as she sped the
-parting guests.</p>
-
-<p>When nearly all had gone, Adèle had opportunity
-to speak to Hugh: “Take me outdoors.
-Let us lose ourselves so I won’t have to
-say any more good-nights.”</p>
-
-<p>They slipped away and strolled far out underneath
-the great trees.</p>
-
-<p>“A perfect success,” said Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Was it?” Adèle leaned wearily on his
-arm.</p>
-
-<p>“You will have all Farrandale for pupils if
-you want them,” he went on; “but honestly,
-Adèle”—he looked down into her upturned<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">[213]</a></span>
-face—“it’s like hitching a blooded horse to a
-coal-wagon to make you teach.”</p>
-
-<p>“You see it, do you?” she returned. “Oh,
-how I hate drudgery, Hughie.”</p>
-
-<p>“You must have gone through a lot of it, to
-play the way you do.”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t realize it. It didn’t seem so. I
-liked it.”</p>
-
-<p>Back and forth they strolled in the shadow of
-the old elms, Adèle’s cigarette adding its spark
-to his among the magic lanterns of fireflies.</p>
-
-<p>“The house looks quiet,” she said at last.
-“Let us go in and see if we can find something to
-eat. I am nearly starved.”</p>
-
-<p>They crossed the lawn and went up the veranda
-steps. In the hall they met the butler,
-hanging about aimlessly.</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Lumbard has been neglected, Stebbins,”
-said Hugh. “She hadn’t a chance to eat
-much of anything. See if you can’t get some
-sandwiches and grapejuice for us. Has everybody
-gone to bed?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, when you’ve set out the stuff you go,
-too. You can lock up and I’ll see to putting out
-the lights.”</p>
-
-<p>The two entered the big dim dining-room and
-sat down side by side at the table. For all<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">[214]</a></span>
-Adèle’s protestations of hunger, she only
-played with a sandwich and sipped the grapejuice.
-So far everything had gone exactly to
-suit her. Miss Frink, Leonard Grimshaw, and
-Mr. Ogden had all effaced themselves.</p>
-
-<p>She had Hugh to herself in the high-ceiled old
-room, and her heart was still exulting in the
-incense that had been burned before her all
-the evening, incense that was valuable because
-Hugh had seen it burning.</p>
-
-<p>Time was flying. This was her great opportunity.</p>
-
-<p>“What are you planning to do with your life,
-Hugh?” she asked suddenly.</p>
-
-<p>“I mean to keep on with the law work on the
-side while I go into Miss Frink’s store. Don’t
-you think you ought to go to bed, Ally? I know
-you must be very tired.”</p>
-
-<p>She tossed aside the trivial suggestion with an
-impatient motion of her head. “I never sleep
-after playing a programme,” she said. Then
-she added in a low, appealing voice, her eyes
-fixed on his: “I want you to give up that idea,
-Hughie. Do you know what wonderful playmates
-we are—simply made for each other?”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh began to feel uncomfortable under the
-clinging look. “Yes, but life isn’t play,” he
-returned.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">[215]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“It would be for us—together. Come to me,
-Hughie. You would shrivel up, here. Let us go
-away. I will make you happier than you ever
-dreamed of being. I love you every second of
-every minute, and every minute of every hour.
-I—”</p>
-
-<p>“Ally, Ally,” interrupted Hugh gently,
-“you’re mistaken. Love begets love, and if you
-loved me I should love you. I don’t, and—”</p>
-
-<p>“Stop”—she seized his hand—“I’ll show
-you what love is. I will show you what happiness
-is. I will take care of the practical side. I
-have some money that no one knows of: enough
-to start you in business. We will work together,
-play together—I can’t live without you,
-Hughie, I can’t—”</p>
-
-<p>“Adèle!” It was Miss Frink’s voice. In the
-silk negligée she was standing behind them inside
-the door.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle sprang to her feet, the brown eyes
-flashing their fire directly into Hugh’s as he
-rose.</p>
-
-<p>“Speak, Hugh,” she said, excitedly, “before
-she has a chance to talk. You know what I have
-said, and I mean every word.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, you don’t. Now, let us forget it, Ally.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, never; and whatever Miss Frink has
-heard she is welcome to remember. Speak,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">[216]</a></span>
-Hugh.” There was hysterical appeal in the last
-words.</p>
-
-<p>“Then I can only repeat, Ally. Oh, don’t
-spoil our friendship!”</p>
-
-<p>“This is enough,” said Miss Frink, coming
-forward, and looking Adèle straight in the eyes.
-“Why must an artist be a fool?”</p>
-
-<p>“Sometimes others are fools,” cried Adèle,
-carried away by her thwarted passion. “The
-great Miss Frink is a dupe herself. Hugh has
-fooled you as he has fooled me.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink lifted her head. “Do you refer to
-the fact that Hugh Stanwood is Hugh Sinclair,
-my nephew? That is ancient history.” A moment
-of tense stillness while the women’s gaze
-still struck a mutual fire. “Will you kindly
-leave us, Adèle?”</p>
-
-<p>With a murderous parting look the young
-woman obeyed. With only a moment’s hesitation,
-and without a glance at Hugh, she dashed
-from the room, knocking over a chair in her
-flight. Hugh’s gaze was fixed on Miss Frink.
-She turned deliberately and faced him. The
-look in her eyes, the softness of her lips, were unmistakable
-even if she had not extended a hand;
-but Hugh had no use for the hand. With one
-stride, he reached her, flung his arms around
-her and she was held fast in his big embrace.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">[217]</a></span>
-Some sealed door within her, whose firm fastening
-had already been weakened, opened gently.
-A flood of amazing happiness flowed through,
-and softly inundated her whole being.</p>
-
-<p>From the hall came the chime of the Westminster
-clock. The four quarters rang; then
-through the stillness of the quiet house sounded
-the deep, deliberate strokes of the midnight
-hour.</p>
-
-<p>Through it all they stood there. Miss Frink
-could feel the sobbing catch in the broad chest
-to which she was strained.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t deserve it,” she thought humbly.
-“The cross-grained, dominating, selfish, obstinate
-woman I have been, to be given this child
-of my old age!”</p>
-
-<p>When the last tone died away and intense
-stillness reigned again, she spoke:</p>
-
-<p>“Twelve o’clock, and all is well, Hugh. This
-is the first time I have been hugged in fifty
-years.”</p>
-
-<p>Gently she pushed him from her with hands
-that still clung to him. He dropped his arms
-and stood looking down at her. She was touched
-to see the moisture in the eyes that met hers.</p>
-
-<p>“It is good of you to let me hug you,” he replied
-in a low, thick voice.</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose you think you have a lot of explanations<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">[218]</a></span>
-to make,” she said, her kind tone
-wavering a little in the intense feeling of the
-moment, “but you haven’t. It was all so obvious
-after I gained the first clue, that it scarcely
-needed your Aunt Sukey’s X-ray mind to see
-the whole thing clear as A B C.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t use that name!” exclaimed Hugh, as
-if it hurt.</p>
-
-<p>“What? Aunt Sukey? Oh, I’ve X-rayed
-that, too. I can fully understand the idea of
-your great-aunt that you grew up with. I”—a
-catch in Miss Frink’s throat stopped her speech
-for a second—“I was very unkind to Philip—to
-your father. Mr. Ogden knew me, knew that
-the only way you could reach my heart was to
-smuggle you in; but you got there, Hugh, my
-own dear boy, you got there.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh caught her slender, dry hand in his big
-one.</p>
-
-<p>“If I was Aunt Sukey to your father, I am
-Aunt Susanna to you, and it was a gift of God
-that it was you, yourself, who saved my life
-that I might not die before I knew what it is not
-to be all alone in the world: what it is to have my
-own flesh and blood to love, and perhaps to love
-me a little.”</p>
-
-<p>“Aunt Susanna, I don’t feel worthy of your
-love,” exclaimed the boy hotly, but softly as if<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">[219]</a></span>
-the dark wainscoted walls might have ears. “I
-hated it all the time.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know that, too,” returned Miss Frink
-quietly.</p>
-
-<p>“What you don’t know,” he continued, “is
-how I admire you. You’re the finest woman
-I’ve ever known, and the finer you were, and
-the more frank, and the more generous, the
-more miserable I was. Oh”—shaking his
-broad shoulders restlessly—“I’m so glad it’s
-over. I want to go away.”</p>
-
-<p>“You want to leave me, Hugh?”</p>
-
-<p>“To pick up my own self-respect somewhere.
-I feel as if you couldn’t really trust me!”</p>
-
-<p>“My child”—Miss Frink spoke tenderly—“what
-is my boasted X-ray for if I don’t know,
-positively, that I <em>can</em> trust you? To lose you, to
-have you go away, would leave my life the same
-dry husk it was before you came.”</p>
-
-<p>A line grew in Hugh’s forehead, his eyes
-dimmed as the two stood looking at each other.
-Then he put his arms around her again, and
-this time he kissed her.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you, Prince Charming. How little I
-ever expected to have a child to kiss me. Starving,
-famished, I was when you came, Hugh, and
-didn’t know it.” She pushed him away again
-with gentle, firm hands. “Now I want to do<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">[220]</a></span>
-a little explaining, myself. To-night I heard
-Stebbins stumbling up the servants’ stairs after
-everything was quiet, and I felt something was
-wrong. I came into the hall and saw that the
-lights below were still on. I came down, heard
-voices in here, and the rest followed. You
-mustn’t feel too unhappy about what happened
-to-night. Believe in my X-ray enough to know
-that her life has been made up of similar incidents;
-not just the same, of course, but the
-pursuit of excitement of some sort. I have a
-problem now unless she elects to leave Farrandale.”</p>
-
-<p>“Be kind to her, Aunt Susanna!”</p>
-
-<p>“I will, you soft-hearted boy. I imagine a
-man finds it the hardest of tasks to turn down a
-woman.”</p>
-
-<p>“She said I had fooled her. I don’t know
-what she meant.”</p>
-
-<p>“She doesn’t either. At that moment it was
-a necessity with her to sting, and she stung,
-that’s all.”</p>
-
-<p>“How did she know—know about me?”
-asked Hugh, frowning.</p>
-
-<p>“The same way I did: by the letter she held
-in your room addressed to your full name. She
-held it for a second under both our eyes. She
-thought she had a weapon; but the name did<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">[221]</a></span>
-not tell her what it told me. She didn’t know
-until to-night that you belonged to me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wish she would leave Farrandale,” said
-Hugh restlessly.</p>
-
-<p>“Most women would, under the circumstances.
-She belongs to a genus I don’t know
-much about. It isn’t safe for me to predict.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m glad you’re so wonderful,” returned
-Hugh, “so big that you will be good to her.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will be if you won’t be,” said Miss Frink,
-with her little twitching smile. “You might as
-safely try to show affection to a rattlesnake
-as to a woman without principle. You can’t
-know how or when she’ll strike.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh walked up and down the room. “Ally’s
-such a good fellow. I don’t like—”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I know you don’t; and you may have
-to get your wisdom by experience; but she’s a
-hard teacher, Experience, Hugh, and she has
-given you one big lesson to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m blessed if I know how I deserved it. I
-deserve to be kicked out of the house by you,
-but ‘not guilty’ when it comes to Ally.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s eyes followed him adoringly.
-It was of no use to try to make him understand.</p>
-
-<p>“I guess I’m pretty tired,” she said at last,
-with a sigh.</p>
-
-<p>“And I keeping you up!” returned Hugh,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">[222]</a></span>
-suddenly penitent and stopping in his promenade.</p>
-
-<p>“Débutantes find it rather difficult to go to
-sleep when they are tired. This is the first
-party I ever gave in my life, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never too late to mend,” he returned.</p>
-
-<p>“But sometimes too late to go to bed,” she
-answered. “We must look out for that.”</p>
-
-<p>“You go upstairs,” said Hugh. “I told
-Stebbins I’d see to the lights. Ally was hungry.
-I’ll fix everything.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, she was,” thought Miss Frink, “and
-thirsty, too.” But she kept the reflection to
-herself. She turned toward the door. “Good-night,”
-she said.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh took a long step after her. “Let me tell
-you before you go how I thank you: how happy
-you have made me!”</p>
-
-<p>She looked up at him sideways. She even had
-inspiration to perform a novel act. She threw
-the big, earnest, troubled boy a kiss as she vanished
-into the hall.</p>
-
-<p>For the first time in her life Miss Frink felt
-rich—and satisfied with her wealth.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">[223]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XIX">CHAPTER XIX<br />
-<span class="smaller">JOHN OGDEN</span></h2>
-
-<p>John Ogden’s eagle eye had been on Adèle and
-Hugh when they slipped out of the house this
-evening, and he was well aware that they had
-not come in when he persuaded Miss Frink to
-seek her couch and leave the disposition of affairs
-below-stairs to him. At last, when Stebbins
-alone was prowling sleepily about, Ogden
-decided that Hugh might become unmanageable
-if he found his guardian up and waiting
-for him and his lady, as if with rebuke; so he
-decided to go to his room. It was scarcely past
-eleven o’clock, but, in this household of early
-hours, it was late.</p>
-
-<p>Arrived in his room, Ogden opened a window,
-turned on the reading-lamp, and taking a book
-set himself to listen for his mutinous young
-friend. It was not long before he heard the
-murmur of voices beneath his window and then
-the muffled closing of the house door. He set
-his own ajar in order to hear the pair come upstairs.
-They did not come. He scowled at his
-book and said something between his teeth
-which was an aspiration concerning Adèle<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">[224]</a></span>
-Reece. Long minutes passed. He fumed. The
-clock on the stairs chimed the half-hour.</p>
-
-<p>By the time the solemn midnight bell fell
-upon the quiet house, Ogden had made up his
-mind to have nothing more to do with his
-protégé. He would leave for New York the
-next day, after making a few straight-from-the-shoulder
-remarks to Hugh, releasing him from
-their partnership. Scowling at his book, he
-heard the clock chime another quarter, and,
-starting up, went to the door and pulled it
-open. The lights were still on. He set his teeth.
-He felt his ears burn. It was indecent. He was
-humiliated before the chaste image of Miss
-Frink. He would wait until the clock chimed
-again and then he would go downstairs, no
-matter what he came upon. He was determined
-to quarrel with Hugh, anyway. It
-might as well be to-night as in the morning.</p>
-
-<p>He went back to his book. At the first stroke
-of the half-hour, he bounded to the door and
-opened it once more. All was dark below.
-Hugh’s room was near his. He went to it. The
-brilliantly lighted transom was open. He
-knocked softly on the door and opened it.
-Hugh, turning about, faced a gentleman in his
-shirt-sleeves with a scarlet face, rumpled hair,
-and a generally wild and angry appearance.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">[225]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Anything wrong, Mr. Ogden?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Anything wrong!” John Ogden was speechless.
-He had never seen Hugh look like this.
-The boy’s face was alive with—was it hope?
-It was certainly gladness, satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve been frank with you, Hugh,” he said
-in a lowered voice; then to be more certain that
-there was no eavesdropping, Ogden turned and
-closed the transom. “I told you she was a
-person of no principle, knowing no law but her
-own will, and, to say nothing of the bad taste
-and danger of playing with such a woman, you
-risk outraging Miss Frink’s strict ideas of decorum
-by staying down there alone all this
-time. I’m thoroughly disgusted. I must be
-honest. Right at the time when you are wanting
-to disclose yourself, to have you play the
-fool like this, it’s painfully disappointing. That’s
-what it is, painfully disappointing. I shall
-leave for New York to-morrow, and you can
-conduct your affairs to suit yourself.”</p>
-
-<p>The effect of this intense speech on his listener
-surprised Ogden even while he was delivering
-it. Was Hugh so fatuous, so impervious?</p>
-
-<p>The boy, smiling and looking exasperatingly
-handsome and happy, seized the smaller man
-and pulled him down beside him on the couch
-at the foot of the bed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">[226]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“It is true,” he said. “I’ve been party of the
-second part in a love-scene downstairs, and I
-owe it all to you, Ogden.” Hugh threw an arm
-around his companion’s shoulders. “I’ll never,
-never forget it.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden with open mouth stared into the violet
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s Aunt Susanna. I’ve been hugging Aunt
-Susanna.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden went limp. He still stared. He
-brushed his hand across his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh laughed low. “Yes; she’s known it ever
-since Ally held that letter of Carol’s in her lap;
-and she forgives us, and she understands.”</p>
-
-<p>“What—where—when did you exchange
-Ally for Miss Frink?”</p>
-
-<p>“Aunt Susanna couldn’t understand the
-lights, and she came downstairs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where—where is Ally?” asked Ogden,
-still stunned.</p>
-
-<p>“Asleep, I suppose,” Hugh sobered.</p>
-
-<p>“Intact, then?” Ogden looked questioning.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course. She shared in the big surprise.
-Aunt Susanna told her I was her nephew—Ally
-had seen Carol’s letter, too.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden’s alert brain grasped the possible
-scene. “Ah! Perhaps she had thought that she
-was the one to provide the surprise.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">[227]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps,” said Hugh vaguely; then impulsively,
-“Don’t go home, Ogden. Stay and
-be happy with us awhile. I told Aunt Susanna
-I wanted to go away, but the idea seemed to
-hurt her.”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden began to nurse his knee, and
-rock back and forth reflectively, keeping up
-occasional bursts of low, nervous laughter.</p>
-
-<p>“It won’t hurt her to have <em>me</em> go away,” he
-said. “That explains all those side-winders and
-innuendoes. Ha, ha, it is a good joke on the
-lady. It gives her the nettle-rash that I got
-away with it, at the same time that she’s glad of
-it.” Ogden’s eyes were bright as he continued
-to consider. “And Grimshaw! Oh, Grimshaw!
-Draw a veil.” At this, his laughter threatened
-to grow violent. He buried his face in the satin
-cushions.</p>
-
-<p>The secretary awoke the morning after the
-recital with a confused but happy sense that
-the world was a pleasant place to live in. He
-had not sounded many of its pleasures, and it
-was time he began. What a wonderful companion
-in all that was gay, in all of life that he
-had avoided, was the niece of his employer, the
-talented young creature about whom all Farrandale
-would be talking to-day!</p>
-
-<p>How quietly and demurely Adèle had taken<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">[228]</a></span>
-the adulation of last evening: creeping off
-modestly to her room at the last, without even
-a good-night. Where had Stanwood been at the
-time? Grimshaw frowned a little in his effort to
-remember where Stanwood had been while the
-guests were departing. John Ogden had stood
-beside Miss Frink while the good-byes were
-being said. He, himself, had had too much to
-attend to in supervising the departure of the
-caterer’s retinue, and other household movements.
-He gave it up finally. Probably Hugh
-had been with the Duanes. Grimshaw had
-never liked Millicent since her mild defiance of
-him in the matter of taking the records to the
-White Room. A suggestion from any one that
-he was not in full authority in Miss Frink’s
-house put the culprit in his black books.</p>
-
-<p>Getting out of bed, he now crossed the room
-and observed a white folded paper pushed beneath
-his door. He picked it up, opened it, and
-read as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Dear Leonard</span>: A strange thing came to my
-knowledge last night, and, fearing that it may be
-a shock to you to learn it, I thought I would prepare
-you and I hope you will not consider it presumptuous
-on my part. If it does seem so, pardon
-me, because it is only my solicitude for you. It
-seems that Hugh Stanwood’s real name is Sinclair,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">[229]</a></span>
-and that he is a nephew of Miss Frink.
-She will doubtless tell you immediately her discovery
-of his identity; and we shall see if she
-resents his obtaining entrance to her under a
-false name.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Yours ever</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Adèle</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The secretary’s face became scarlet as he
-read. The shock was all his friend could have
-anticipated, and he felt grateful to her for the
-preparation. This interloper and liar to have
-had the damned luck to save Miss Frink’s life;
-to command her gratitude and regard! There
-was the chance now that his duplicity might
-antidote that gratitude. Grimshaw’s face became
-more hopeful as the thought grew. He
-saw Miss Frink, in her intolerance of falsity,
-sending the fellow about his business. Happy
-dénouement to the past afflicting weeks.
-Adèle was a sweet girl. Her thought was all of
-him, and for his protection.</p>
-
-<p>At the same moment in another room another
-gentleman was finding a folded paper on the
-polished wood of his threshold. Opening it he
-read:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>I am not responsible after playing. I am intoxicated,
-and a woman is as liable to tell the truth in
-her cups as a man. Can you forgive and forget,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">[230]</a></span>
-Hugh? You can imagine how deeply I regret that
-hysterical outburst. Be generous to me.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Adèle</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Hugh frowned as he read. Poor Adèle!
-What lay before her now? He dreaded to meet
-her at breakfast, and hoped that she would decide
-to leave Farrandale. Ogden had assured
-him, before they parted last night, that she had
-no more idea of teaching in this town than she
-had of flying to the moon.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle did not come to breakfast, and, as for
-Ogden, it took some hardihood for him to present
-himself to his hostess that morning. His
-gay, debonair look was the same as usual when
-she greeted him. She was already seated behind
-the coffee percolator when he came in, and,
-instead of going to his place, he came to her and
-held out his hand, with an odd chuckle.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m as nervous as a cat this morning,” he
-said, meeting her bright eyes.</p>
-
-<p>After a little hesitation she gave him her
-hand for a quick shake. “What is it: your conscience
-or your digestion?” she inquired.</p>
-
-<p>Leonard Grimshaw was in his place watching
-their every move as a cat watches a mouse; and
-here Hugh came into the room. He, too, approached
-Miss Frink’s chair, and she held his
-hand while she addressed her secretary.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">[231]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Leonard,” she began—and it was only in
-her most serious moments that she thus addressed
-him—“I have a great surprise for you.
-This young man who put me under such obligation
-and to whom we are so much attached,
-is my grand-nephew, Hugh Sinclair. I have
-known it only a short time.”</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw felt that but for Adèle’s warning
-he should have collapsed. As it was, he turned
-pale under the discovery of his employer’s attitude
-toward the culprit.</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose <em>he</em> knew it,” he returned, with a
-carefully respectful manner.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, he knew it,” returned Miss Frink,
-smiling up at Hugh and still retaining the hand
-that clasped hers closely.</p>
-
-<p>“Why didn’t he tell us sooner?” asked
-Grimshaw politely.</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty good aim,” reflected Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>“Because he thought of me as an old dragon,”
-returned Miss Frink. “We don’t beat about the
-bush in this matter any more than in any other.
-Go and sit down, Hugh, and I’ll give you a
-really good cup of coffee.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy obeyed, scarlet humiliation upon
-him again. He knew the secretary’s thoughts.
-He knew what would leak out all through Farrandale,
-and that no one would ever realize how<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">[232]</a></span>
-he had hated it. He gave a glowering look at
-Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>That gentleman spoke up cheerfully. “That
-was my doing, Mr. Grimshaw, that feature of
-the matter, not telling Miss Frink at first. Mr.
-Sinclair would have infinitely preferred telling
-her at once, and I think the full explanation of
-my not being crippled for life lies in the fact
-that he has been bedridden and weak; but my
-motto is always, ‘All’s well that ends well.’
-Isn’t it yours, too, Mr. Grimshaw?”</p>
-
-<p>“Has it ended?” returned the secretary, as
-lightly as he was able.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">[233]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XX">CHAPTER XX<br />
-<span class="smaller">A PARTING INTERVIEW</span></h2>
-
-<p>Although Miss Frink had presented herself so
-promptly at breakfast that morning, she had
-been as sleepless as Adèle. Waves of wonder
-and joy had passed over her in the consideration
-of her happiness, and kept her awake.
-That honest boy—honest in spite of the part
-he had been induced to play—admired her,
-loved her. He had said so, and she believed
-him. She had not thought her life empty before,
-but now she felt compassion for her past. Her
-brain seethed with plans and possibilities, and
-certain charitable institutions lost a great deal
-of money that night.</p>
-
-<p>As she thought thus, the remembrance of
-Adèle clouded the radiance of her reflections.
-She had yet this problem to meet. If the young
-woman would solve it by leaving town, what a
-mercy it would be! Of course, she had fallen in
-love with Hugh, head over heels. So, thought
-Miss Frink, sighing, would probably every
-girl who met him; but Adèle had hazarded all,
-tried to rush the boy off his feet, and, if she had
-known that he was related to Miss Frink, it<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">[234]</a></span>
-would not have deterred her. Her sort fears
-neither God nor man. Miss Frink shrank into
-her pillow and closed her sleepless eyes as she
-recalled Adèle’s bitter attitude toward herself,
-and the young woman’s triumphant hope of
-wounding her.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink was a strong woman; but her excitement
-as she dressed that morning was not
-sufficient to lift her above her sense of weariness.
-Explaining the situation to Leonard
-Grimshaw was before her. It rankled that he
-would believe her splendid boy to be blameworthy.
-Then there was John Ogden to be met,
-and, looming dark above all these, was Adèle to
-be dealt with. She had been intending to have
-a final talk with Adèle this morning in any
-case; so, when the waitress at last went up to
-Mrs. Lumbard’s room with her breakfast, she
-carried a message that Miss Frink would come
-in to see her at ten o’clock.</p>
-
-<p>“Pleasant prospect!” thought Adèle as she
-sat up in bed to receive the tray. “Thank you,
-Janet,” she said sweetly to the maid.</p>
-
-<p>“You look awful tired, Mrs. Lumbard,”
-said the girl, “and so does Miss Frink. There’s
-all sorts of doings down in the breakfast room.”
-Janet’s eyes were big. “What do you think!
-Mr. Stanwood’s name is something else and he’s<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">[235]</a></span>
-some sort of relation to Miss Frink all this
-time, and nobody knew it!”</p>
-
-<p>“Are you sure, Janet?” Adèle put the cream
-in her coffee.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, ma’am,” returned the excited girl.
-“Stebbins heard Miss Frink say so herself to
-Mr. Grimshaw.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did Miss Frink seem pleased?” Adèle
-broke off a piece of toast, speaking languidly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, indeed, and holding his hand.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Grimshaw’s?” Adèle smiled wanly.</p>
-
-<p>“No, Mr. Stanwood’s; and she seemed so
-happy over it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who wouldn’t be happy holding Mr. Stanwood’s
-hand?”</p>
-
-<p>Janet giggled. “Yes, ain’t he awful handsome?—and
-now he’ll be the biggest catch in
-Farrandale; but I guess there won’t any o’ the
-girls have a chance when you’re around, Mrs.
-Lumbard.”</p>
-
-<p>Janet’s head fell to one side in sentimental
-admiration as she regarded Adèle.</p>
-
-<p>The latter smiled and nodded at her: “You’d
-better run along, Janet.”</p>
-
-<p>The maid disappeared, and Adèle again
-clamped down the lid on the humiliating memories
-of last evening. She must not be humiliated
-when Miss Frink came in. She remembered<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">[236]</a></span>
-the violence of her own attack upon that
-lady and regretted it as most unwise; nevertheless,
-her head might be “bloody,” but it
-should be “unbowed.” It had been quite evident
-for some time that Miss Frink’s hospitality
-was being strained; Adèle could not in any
-case have hoped to remain here much longer.
-Why should she be ashamed of loving Hugh?
-Why should she be ashamed of trying to get
-him? She was not. It was all in the game. She
-had lost for the present, but who could tell?</p>
-
-<p>By the time Miss Frink’s knock sounded on
-the door, the young woman was dressed and
-ready to open it with an attempt at a smile.</p>
-
-<p>“Good-morning, Aunt Susanna.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good-morning, Adèle.” Miss Frink regarded
-the calm face and unfallen eyes uncomfortably;
-and felt her own self-possession
-strengthened by such control.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” she began, as they sat down in neighboring
-chairs, “we have come to the parting of
-the ways, Adèle.”</p>
-
-<p>“Have we? Where are you going?” was the
-astonishing reply.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink grimaced her glasses off the eyes
-beneath which were dark shadows, and at once
-replaced them.</p>
-
-<p>“You certainly help me not to beat about the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">[237]</a></span>
-bush,” she said. “I thought perhaps last night’s
-experience would make you feel you did not
-care to stay in Farrandale.”</p>
-
-<p>“After your giving such an expensive advertisement
-for me?” Adèle smiled.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s own deep happiness embarrassed
-her. Hugh’s earnest “Be kind to Ally,” rang in
-her ears. This adventuress, pale and defiant,
-seemed to her so pitiful that, in spite of the
-other’s audacity, she had to summon her customary
-directness with an effort.</p>
-
-<p>“That wouldn’t be good economy, would it?”
-added Adèle.</p>
-
-<p>There was a pause; then Miss Frink spoke
-again: “I must tell you that I have discovered,
-quite by accident, that you are not the granddaughter
-of my dear friend. Her son married a
-lady with a little girl, a little pianist.”</p>
-
-<p>Color stole over Adèle’s pallor.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, Mr. Ogden is a regular god in the machine,
-isn’t he?” she said lightly. “Delightful
-man!”</p>
-
-<p>“My informant was unaware that he was
-telling me any news,” went on Miss Frink;
-“but, this being the case, I feel that it would be
-rather foolish for us to keep up the pose of aunt
-and niece.”</p>
-
-<p>“Especially,” returned Adèle “since you<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">[238]</a></span>
-have found some one with the right of blood to
-call you ‘Aunt Susanna.’”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink regarded her composed companion
-in silence. Not with her could she exchange
-words concerning her heart-warming miracle.</p>
-
-<p>“A few days ago,” she said, “I obtained the
-refusal for you of a room at the Coopers’: cousins
-of Leonard’s. If you decide to stay in Farrandale,
-he will take you over there to-day and
-introduce you. Mrs. Cooper is ready for you to
-take possession at any minute. They have a
-very good piano.”</p>
-
-<p>“I thought,” said Adèle, with unabashed
-eyes, “that I should like to go to the Duanes’.
-I hear they have such a pleasant garden, and I
-believe they are poor and might like a paying
-guest.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink regarded her incredulously. Was
-there, then, no limit to her audacity?</p>
-
-<p>“Colonel Duane was very nice to me last evening,”
-added Adèle. “Such a courtly old gentleman.”</p>
-
-<p>“They keep no maid and would not take any
-one,” said Miss Frink briefly.</p>
-
-<p>“I shouldn’t be any trouble, for I would help
-Miss Duane like one of the family.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink felt a sort of horror of the smooth,
-fair speaker. She had been prepared to be very<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">[239]</a></span>
-kind to the poor woman who had blundered so
-pitifully, but her own assurances to Hugh came
-back to her: the occurrence was no tragedy to
-Mrs. Lumbard, evidently to her while there
-was life, there was hope. To suggest going to
-the Duanes’! The image of Millicent rose before
-Miss Frink as the antithesis of all that
-Adèle represented.</p>
-
-<p>The latter smiled now, wan, but still unembarrassed.</p>
-
-<p>“If you are thinking that it will be awkward
-for me to meet Hugh, you are mistaken. He
-hasn’t lived all his life in a small town. He
-knows his way about. No man ever thought
-less of a woman for caring a lot for him, and
-Hugh and I will always be pals. I don’t think
-any the less of him for coming into your house
-under false colors. He carried his point.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s cheeks flushed. “Why, indeed,
-should you criticize him? You did the same.”</p>
-
-<p>“Only I didn’t carry my point. You never
-liked me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nor were you really my niece,” said Miss
-Frink briefly. “Adèle,” she added—and there
-was appeal in her voice—“in this nine days’
-wonder that is coming upon Farrandale I wish
-that, for the sake of such hospitality as I have
-shown you, you would help to give the true<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">[240]</a></span>
-explanation of Hugh’s manner of introducing
-himself here. It was Mr. Ogden’s idea entirely,
-inasmuch as I had not been friendly to Hugh’s
-family. The sequel you know.”</p>
-
-<p>Adèle’s stolid expression did not change, and
-she did not speak.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink sat, looking at her and waiting.</p>
-
-<p>“The truth generally comes out about everything,”
-said the young woman at last.</p>
-
-<p>“Adèle, Adèle,” said Miss Frink solemnly.
-“Why won’t you try to make your life measure
-up to the beauty of your art? What I heard
-last evening will be buried forever, as you know,
-unless you yourself force a remembrance of it.”
-She looked at her watch. “Leonard will take
-you over to Mrs. Cooper’s as soon as you are
-ready.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink went out and closed the door.
-For the first time in her life she quivered with
-feeling. Her cheeks were flushed.</p>
-
-<p>At the foot of the stairway she met John
-Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>“Just the lady I want to see!” he cried cheerfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Very well—my benefactor,” she said
-slowly.</p>
-
-<p>“Do my ears deceive me? How good that
-sounds!” He seized both her hands for a quick<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">[241]</a></span>
-moment. Her flushed face and subdued tone
-impressed him.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m afraid you’re very tired, Miss Frink.
-Too much excitement, perhaps.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; in this world we must accept the bitter
-with the sweet, but—nothing is any matter.
-What did you want of me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, I’m leaving for New York to-night,
-and I wish to ask a privilege before I go. I’ve no
-doubt there are numbers of gentle-folk in Farrandale,
-but I happen to have made the acquaintance
-of only two: Colonel Duane and his
-granddaughter. Tongues are going to buzz for
-a while now, and I would like to beat the gossips
-to it with those fine people. I should like to tell
-them my own part in what has taken place.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well; I have no objection. Open confession
-is good for the soul.” Miss Frink smiled
-wearily.</p>
-
-<p>“Now you go to bed, Miss Frink. Please
-do. Let Grimshaw run the city of Farrandale
-to-day.”</p>
-
-<p>“He is very soon going to escort Mrs. Lumbard
-to her new abiding-place at Mrs. Cooper’s.”</p>
-
-<p>“That will rest you, eh?” asked Ogden appreciatively.
-“She really intends to stay here
-and teach the young idea?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">[242]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know. Perhaps I ought not to let
-her,” returned Miss Frink, and her companion
-saw her hold her lip under her teeth to still its
-quivering. “I seem to be sponsoring her, you
-see.”</p>
-
-<p>“My dear Miss Frink, don’t you worry,” returned
-Ogden, speaking low but emphatically,
-for they were still standing at the foot of the
-stairs. “Don’t worry a minute. She won’t stick
-to that teaching a month.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink gave him a rather tremulous
-smile of gratitude; and, before Ogden took his hat
-to run out on his errand, he went up to Hugh’s
-room where the latter was busy with his books.</p>
-
-<p>“Say, boy,” he said, “I’ve just come from
-Miss Frink, and she had just come from a talk
-with your friend Ally; and I tell you she was
-all in.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh wheeled around in his chair and fixed a
-troubled look on his friend.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Miss Frink looked old and tired. Her
-pep was gone. Mrs. Re—Lumbard is leaving
-to-day, it seems.”</p>
-
-<p>“Leaving Farrandale?” asked Hugh, with an
-eagerness which his friend misunderstood.</p>
-
-<p>“No; don’t be afraid. I think Miss Frink is
-worrying about her being turned loose among
-the Farrandale lambs; and I just want to say,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">[243]</a></span>
-Hugh, that if you continue to pal with Mrs.
-Lumbard you’ll make a great mistake from
-every point of view. You owe it to Miss Frink
-to ease off and not encourage her. Miss Frink
-doesn’t want her coming here.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh continued his troubled stare. “I hope
-you didn’t tell her the damaging thing you told
-me—about the courts.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course not,” said Ogden impatiently;
-“but Miss Frink has the woman’s number all
-right. I don’t know what their good-bye talk
-was like, but this fine aunt of yours came out of
-it wounded. I tell you she was wounded; and
-you want to think of her and protect her, boy.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m going to, Ogden. Thank you,” replied
-Hugh, with a submissiveness that surprised his
-friend.</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden stared at him for a silent moment.
-“Well, then,” he said, vaguely, and
-left the room.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">[244]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XXI">CHAPTER XXI<br />
-<span class="smaller">PAVING THE WAY</span></h2>
-
-<p>Ogden went on thinking about the unusual docility
-with which Hugh had received his exhortation.
-Also there was the devotion to his studies
-at a moment when Ally was about to depart
-from the house. How about that?</p>
-
-<p>As he swung along he began to smile, his retrospective
-reflection visualizing that slipping
-away into the moonlight which he had witnessed
-and worried over last evening. After a
-minute in a rush of thought his smile broadened.
-It seemed probable that the siren, in the excited
-reaction from her performance, might
-have thrown a scare into the heir apparent. At
-what juncture had she slipped away from
-Hugh’s arm and Miss Frink slipped into it?
-Something had gone on, to flush Miss Frink’s
-cheeks and weary her eyes this morning. All the
-time that he himself was reading and fretting in
-his room last evening, things had been happening
-downstairs. Anyway, the net result had
-been a joyous one, as transpired unmistakably,
-later.</p>
-
-<p>As Ogden tramped along, he was roused from<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">[245]</a></span>
-his reverie to realize that many persons he met
-greeted him. Realizing that they remembered
-him as the busy master of ceremonies on the
-night before, he responded cordially, and at last
-a short man in a checked suit forced him to a
-standstill by his effusive manner.</p>
-
-<p>“Goldstein, Mr. Ogden. I. K. Goldstein.
-We had but a minute’s talk last night—”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, good-morning, Mr. Goldstein.” Ogden
-endeavored to edge away from the plump hand
-with the diamond ring, after yielding to its determined
-grasp.</p>
-
-<p>“I cannot let you go without speaking again
-of that won-derful evening. Such an artist you
-have there, that Mrs. Lumbard; she is amazing.
-In a town the size of Farrandale we are all one
-family. You put us all under obligation bringing
-such an artist here!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, not I at all; Miss Frink—”</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink! Oh, she is the genius of our
-city!” Mr. Goldstein made known by gestures
-and upturned eyes that Miss Frink’s glories
-were indescribable. “You come any time to see
-me, Mr. Ogden, and I wish you would bring
-Miss Frink, and I show you both all over the
-Koh-i-noor, our theater—”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you, Mr. Goldstein, but I am leaving
-town to-night—”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">[246]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“But can’t you spare a little time, a half an
-hour this afternoon?—it is a palace equal to
-any in the country. An organ—oh, such an organ
-I have installed!—we open in less than a
-month; you would be happy to see those velvet
-furniture in the lobby.”</p>
-
-<p>“No doubt I should; but I have—”</p>
-
-<p>“That young man at your house, the one
-who saved our wonderful Miss Frink’s life, he
-should be in the pictures, you must see that.
-There’s the story right there, too. I give him
-introductions; you send him to me.”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden disengaged the clinging hand from
-his lapel as best he could, and, mindfully thanking
-the manager of the Koh-i-noor, contrived to
-escape with an apology for his pressing business.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Goldstein called after him cordially as
-long as he could hear.</p>
-
-<p>Millicent Duane, enveloped in an apron, had
-brought out some vegetables to prepare for the
-noon dinner and was sitting on the porch with a
-large tin pan in her lap.</p>
-
-<p>Her grandfather, who had been as usual
-working about the garden, finally came slowly
-up the steps and sank restfully into his favorite
-chair with the calico cushion.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t get that last piece she played out of
-my head,” he said. “Mrs. Lumbard said it was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">[247]</a></span>
-a <i lang="fr">Marche Militaire</i>. I should say so.” The
-speaker drummed the rhythm on the arms of
-his chair.</p>
-
-<p>“It was splendid,” agreed Millicent. She had
-been hearing all the morning about the recital,
-and the English “fed up” but faintly described
-her satiation.</p>
-
-<p>The morning was so beautiful, the birds so
-tuneful, everything that had not unfolded was
-so busy unfolding, and the air so full of sweetness,
-Millicent could not understand why she
-felt at odds with a world that was so amiably
-putting its best foot forward. She forced herself
-to respond with ardor to her grandfather’s comments.
-She was glad he had had such an unusual
-treat. He had seen nothing but charm in
-Mrs. Lumbard’s manner; while Millicent still
-felt the perfunctoriness of the star’s response to
-her own effort to express her appreciation. Hugh
-had been beside her at the time, and as usual
-Mrs. Lumbard had implied, or at least Millicent
-felt the implication, that she was negligible, and
-the sooner she effaced herself the sooner could
-life really go on. And it had gone on. The stinging
-remembrance was that, before the Duanes
-left, Millicent had seen Hugh and the star disappear
-together. The girl’s annoyance, and resentment
-that she could feel it, made her an extra<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">[248]</a></span>
-lively and agreeable companion to her grandfather
-on the way home. He remarked affectionately
-on the good the evening had done her,
-and how she needed such outings; and she
-laughed and hugged him, then went to bed,
-strains of music flowing through her hot head,
-while her wet eyes buried in the pillow still saw
-the moonlight sifting through the great trees
-with their black shadows, shadows through
-which <em>they</em> were walking. She wanted—she
-knew now how desperately she wanted—to
-walk in the moonlight with Hugh herself, and
-her feeling that it was a contemptible wish did
-not help the situation in the least.</p>
-
-<p>Now, this morning, she sat there, enveloped
-in her pink checked apron, the bright tin pan in
-her lap and her hands busy, while her grandfather
-watched her fleeting smiles.</p>
-
-<p>“Seems to me you look sort of pale this morning,
-honey,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Dissipation,” she returned. “You know
-I’m a country girl.”</p>
-
-<p>“It wasn’t late,” he returned reminiscently,
-still evidently enjoying his memories. “How
-she did play the ‘Spring Song’! Simplest things
-are the best, aren’t they, Milly? I think you
-look sweeter in that pink apron than in your
-party dress,” he added.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">[249]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Didn’t I look nice last night?” asked the
-girl with unexpected gravity.</p>
-
-<p>“I should say so. Quite the up-to-date girl,
-standing there with Miss Frink in her august
-dignity.”</p>
-
-<p>“Grandpa, here comes Mr. Ogden.”</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Duane rose as the caller opened the
-gate, and came to the head of the steps to meet
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t you move now, Miss Millicent,” said
-Ogden as the girl started to put aside the big
-pan. “You make the most charming domestic
-picture.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t shake hands,” she returned, as he
-approached, and her cheeks matched the gay
-hue of her apron while her eyes welcomed him.</p>
-
-<p>“This is my P.P.C.” he remarked, taking the
-chair Colonel Duane offered.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, are you leaving us?” asked the old
-gentleman, returning to his calico cushion. “I
-don’t know what they’ll do without you at Miss
-Frink’s. That was a great treat she gave us last
-night. We haven’t talked about anything else
-this morning; and your announcements, and
-the general pleasant informality with which you
-managed the occasion, gave it the last touch of
-charm. How is that delightful, bright particular
-star, this morning?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">[250]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Lumbard? I haven’t seen her. She
-didn’t come down to breakfast.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, she certainly earned that luxury,” responded
-the Colonel, while Millicent’s gaze fell
-demurely to her busy hands. “I’d like to have
-Milly take some lessons of her,” he added.</p>
-
-<p>The girl flashed a quick glance up at the caller.
-“But I’m not going to,” she said. “You can’t
-teach an old dog new tricks.”</p>
-
-<p>The men laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“What makes you go away, Mr. Ogden?”
-she added.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, life can’t be all Farrandale, you know.
-There’s business waiting for me over there in
-the suburb of New York. I only came to see
-Hugh because he was ill.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hugh seemed quite proud of his brilliant
-friend last night,” remarked the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” thought Millicent, “will he ever get
-through talking about her!”</p>
-
-<p>“I shouldn’t blame him if he lost his heart—so
-handsome and so talented she is.”</p>
-
-<p>Down went the young girl’s gaze again to the
-contents of her pan.</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden saw the compression of her soft
-lips.</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Lumbard is leaving Miss Frink to-day
-also,” he said.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">[251]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Millicent looked up quickly again.</p>
-
-<p>“Why is that? Not leaving Farrandale, I
-hope,” said the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>“No. I heard some one say something about
-the Coopers’. Of course, Mrs. Lumbard has
-only been visiting Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p>“The Coopers’!” echoed Millicent. “Is Mrs.
-Lumbard going to live at the Coopers’?”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden shrugged his shoulders. “Don’t quote
-me. I may be all off, but I understood that.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course, they are Mr. Grimshaw’s cousins,”
-said the girl reflectively.</p>
-
-<p>“Another one of her satellites,” remarked the
-old gentleman, smiling. “It was easy to see
-last evening that Grimshaw’s steady head was
-all off its balance. I don’t believe you attractive
-bachelors are going to let that charmer
-teach very long. One of you will snatch her
-up.”</p>
-
-<p>“I had to leave her to my rivals last night,”
-said Ogden. “I probably lost out for good.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent’s grave large gaze was upon him,
-trying to discover whether he was serious. She
-liked Mr. Ogden, but she would have been perfectly
-willing he should snatch up Mrs. Lumbard.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re quite a matchmaker, Colonel,” he
-went on. “I don’t know how that rosebud over<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">[252]</a></span>
-there behind the tin pan escapes your machinations.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent threw a glance over her shoulder in
-evident search for the rosebud, and Ogden
-laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, she,” returned the old man regarding
-the girl with eyes of placid love; “she has a
-heart like a flint. We have a lot of the nicest
-boys you’d ever care to know, in Farrandale.
-She used to like them, Milly did. When she was
-in the store, I used to have to complain of the
-way she let them bother around and keep her up
-late; but now she has left the store, and could
-sleep in the morning if she wanted to, she won’t
-have a thing to do with them. They can’t do
-anything right. One laughs too loud, one brings
-his mandolin and she hates it, one parts his
-hair in the middle, and they all varnish their
-locks—”</p>
-
-<p>“Grandpa!” Millicent interrupted him with
-rather unnecessary severity, Ogden thought.
-“I don’t like to be discussed.”</p>
-
-<p>Her grandfather laughed toward her affectionately,
-and raised his eyebrows. “Gracious!”
-he exclaimed. “What a grown-up baby
-I have.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I must get at my business,” said the
-visitor. “I came this morning, not only to say<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">[253]</a></span>
-good-bye, but to let you nice people be the
-first to know something concerning our friend
-Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent’s collection of knives hit the tin pan
-and clattered to the floor. The pan so nearly
-fell after it that Ogden, springing forward,
-caught it just in time. The girl’s hands trembled
-as she grasped it, and murmured some inarticulate
-thanks.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, many a true word spoken in jest,” said
-the Colonel. “That is why the lovely pianist is
-leaving Miss Frink’s; but conventionality can
-be carried too far, I think.”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden was busy restoring Millicent’s
-goods, wares, and chattels to her lap, and he
-camouflaged her tremor by laughing allusion to
-Uncle Remus, and Brer Rabbit’s clatter with his
-seben tin plates, and seben tin cups.</p>
-
-<p>“No, nothing of that kind, Colonel Duane,”
-he said as he took his chair again. “This is a
-story that I will make brief. Long ago there was
-a feud in Miss Frink’s small family.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent tried to moisten her dry lips, and
-ceased attempting to use the knife which
-seemed determined to beat a rat-a-plan against
-the side of the pan.</p>
-
-<p>“She had a nephew, Philip Sinclair, whom
-she loved; but his opposition to her plans for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">[254]</a></span>
-him angered her to such a degree that it made a
-complete break. She never met his wife or
-children, and refused to know them. I was a
-friend of that family, and Hugh was one of the
-children. When he returned from the war, I
-hunted him up.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden glanced at Millicent. She was leaning
-back in her chair, her lips parted, her face very
-pale, and her eyes full upon him. He looked
-back at once to Colonel Duane, who was giving
-him similar fixed attention.</p>
-
-<p>“When I met Hugh, whom I had last seen as
-a child, you can understand what an impression
-he made on me, and how I thought of his lonely
-great-aunt whom I had come to know well in
-the way of business. Hugh was alone, and drifting,
-like so many of the returned boys, and a
-scheme came into my head which I suggested to
-him. It was to come here with a letter of introduction
-from me, and, using only his first two
-names, Hugh Stanwood, apply to Miss Frink
-for a job in Ross Graham Company. I knew
-there was no hope of her receiving him if she
-knew he was the son of the man who had so
-bitterly disappointed and offended her, and I
-trusted to his winning her esteem before the
-truth came out. I had a lot of difficulty in getting
-Hugh’s consent to this, but at last I succeeded.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">[255]</a></span>
-I fitted him out for the experiment,
-which, of course, put him under some obligation
-to me: an obligation which was my weapon to
-hold him to our compact. He has had times of
-hating me, because Hugh is essentially honest;
-and the remarkable coincidence which threw
-him into his aunt’s house as a guest, instead of
-allowing him to be an employe in her store,
-gave him many a weary hour of thought which
-he used mostly for condemnation of me and himself.
-I came on as soon as I learned of his illness,
-and found that Miss Frink had become very
-fond of the boy. When she at last experienced
-the shock of discovering who he was, she suspected
-me at once as being the instigator of the
-plan, and for a time she was torn: undecided as
-to whether I should be cannonaded or canonized.
-I judge she has decided on the latter
-course, for this morning she called me her benefactor.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden paused.</p>
-
-<p>“Extraordinary!” said Colonel Duane. “I’ll
-warrant the old lady is happy.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent said nothing; just gazed.</p>
-
-<p>“My reason for coming to tell you this”—Ogden
-addressed Millicent now—“is that, as
-the affair is known and discussed, Hugh is going
-to be misunderstood and condemned. Thoroughly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">[256]</a></span>
-disagreeable things are going to be said
-about him. He is going to be called a fortune-hunter.”</p>
-
-<p>“He was, wasn’t he?” broke in Millicent suddenly.</p>
-
-<p>“I was. It was I. Please remember that. I
-exacted from him at the time a promise that he
-would not reveal their relationship to Miss
-Frink until I gave him permission; so, chafe as
-he might and did, he kept that promise. He’s a
-fine youngster; and to my relief and pleasure
-his aunt realizes it, and they understand each
-other.”</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Duane nodded and smiled. “A story
-that ends well. Eh, Milly?”</p>
-
-<p>She assented with another of the fleeting
-smiles. This change in Hugh’s fortunes put him
-still farther away. No one could tell to what
-lengths Miss Frink’s pride and joy would go,
-and what advantages now awaited him.</p>
-
-<p>“What did you say Hugh’s name is?” asked
-the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>“Sinclair. Hugh Stanwood Sinclair, and one
-of the finest,” returned Ogden. “I hope I have
-set him right in your eyes and that you will defend
-him as occasion arises.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’re fond of Hugh,” returned the old gentleman
-quietly, “and I don’t think you need<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">[257]</a></span>
-dread unkind comments on him. You know the
-way of the world, and Miss Frink’s handsome
-heir is going to be <i lang="la">persona grata</i> to everybody,
-except, perhaps”—Colonel Duane laughed—“Leonard
-Grimshaw.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden smiled. “The nephew was introduced
-to him this morning at breakfast; and, except
-for a look which endangered the sweetness of
-the cream, he took it very calmly.”</p>
-
-<p>After the caller had departed, Colonel Duane
-came back to his chair.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, well,” he said. “So the hero wasn’t
-called Prince Charming for nothing, was he?
-A story that ends well. Eh, Milly? He’ll grace
-the position, eh? I like the idea. Indeed, I do.
-Isn’t it fine?”</p>
-
-<p>And Millicent said it was, and gathered up
-her paraphernalia and went into the house.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">[258]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XXII">CHAPTER XXII<br />
-<span class="smaller">ADJUSTMENTS</span></h2>
-
-<p>As soon as she had parted from John Ogden,
-Miss Frink went to her study. Her secretary
-was in his place. Could this possibly be the
-world of the barren yesterdays? The same
-world in which she and Leonard Grimshaw had
-sat at their adjoining desks in this room and
-opened mail, dictated letters, and considered
-investments, for so many years? Her welling
-sense of gratitude gave her a novel attitude of
-sympathetic comprehension. If her secretary,
-so long the sole partner and confidant of her
-days, were suffering now from being to a degree
-usurped, it would not be surprising. She felt a
-sort of yearning toward him.</p>
-
-<p>He rose at her entrance, grave and businesslike
-as usual. She took her customary place beside
-him, and he seated himself, drawing toward
-him the morning’s mail.</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind that now, Grim. We will attend
-to it this afternoon, if I can keep awake.”
-She gave a little laugh.</p>
-
-<p>He glanced around at her. Miss Frink,
-flushed and laughing, unmindful of the mail!
-From bad to worse!</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">[259]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“The gayety of last evening too much for
-you?” he responded, with a gravity so portentous
-as to be a rebuke.</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose so. Say, Grim, how did Goldstein
-get in here?”</p>
-
-<p>“I asked him. I knew your desire not to
-have anybody overlooked.”</p>
-
-<p>“But we have never had any contact with
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw cleared his throat, and drew forward
-a bunch of pencils and put them back
-again.</p>
-
-<p>“He is one of our stirring citizens,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I know he stirs me,” remarked Miss Frink.</p>
-
-<p>“He enjoyed the evening greatly,” declared
-Grimshaw.</p>
-
-<p>“All right; but, if he ever comes to make his
-party call, remember he is your guest.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well, Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p>“Now, my dear boy,” she went on, and she
-laid a hand on her secretary’s arm. He regarded
-it under dropped lids. “I feel I want to
-say a few things to you in this great change that
-has come into my life.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have anticipated it,” he returned. “You
-wish to dispense with my services?”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink withdrew her hand. “What
-could put such a wild idea into your head,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">[260]</a></span>
-Grim? So far from dispensing with you, I feel it
-an occasion to speak of my appreciation of your
-faithful service. In the great joy that has come
-to me I long to give happiness. If it pleases you
-to know that your efficient work is not taken for
-granted, but that it is given its full value, I want
-you to realize that I thank you.” She paused
-and the secretary bowed silently.</p>
-
-<p>“In the changes that will result from the discovery
-of my nephew, I want you to know also
-that none will affect you. You are mentioned in
-my will, and nothing regarding you in that will
-be changed.”</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw did not alter his position, but some
-pulse leaped to his throat. It was not a leap of
-gladness. If that were the case, then his employer’s
-plans for him had fallen below expectations.</p>
-
-<p>“In short,” said Miss Frink, “since this great
-blessing that has come to me should make me a
-better woman, I hope to be a better friend to
-you and to all.” As her companion did not
-break the pause that followed this, she added:
-“I hope you don’t begrudge it to me, Grim?”</p>
-
-<p>“By no means, Miss Frink,” he responded,
-without looking up. “Pardon me for a moment,
-I am much moved.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink was touched. “The good boy!”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">[261]</a></span>
-she thought. “Probably constant contact with
-me has made it impossible for him to express
-any feeling that does not regard dollars and
-cents.”</p>
-
-<p>“My narrow life could not fail to narrow
-you,” she said humbly. “I hope we may both
-expand after this.”</p>
-
-<p>Neither spoke for a minute. Grimshaw continued
-to look down, one hand toying with a
-paper-cutter.</p>
-
-<p>At last she spoke: “I told Adèle you would
-take her over to Mrs. Cooper’s as soon as she
-was ready.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall be glad to,” he returned. “Adèle
-made a great impression last night.”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, she did. There is no doubt that she
-can teach here if she wishes to. I have just been
-saying to her that I hope, when the subject
-comes up, she will aid in letting it be known
-what a passive part Hugh played in the camouflaged
-way he came to Farrandale. Mr. Ogden
-was the motive power of it all, and you must
-help, too, Grim, in giving the right impression.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary turned to her with a strange
-smile. “Do you think that your nephew and
-heir will need any apologies?” he asked slowly.
-Miss Frink felt uncomfortably the inimical attitude<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">[262]</a></span>
-back of the words. “If he does, he will
-never know it, and you will never know it.
-That is the advantage of being the Queen of
-Farrandale.”</p>
-
-<p>“The boy is jealous!” she thought.</p>
-
-<p>“I hope,” he continued, “that your absorption
-is not so great that you cannot use your influence
-to help Adèle, even though she is leaving
-your house.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink felt the criticism in this. She was
-silent for a space.</p>
-
-<p>“Adèle came here camouflaged also, Grim,”
-she said quietly. “She will tell you about it.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary flashed a quick look around at
-her. “Perfectly innocent in one case, I suppose,”
-he said, “and unpardonable in the other.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink was too deeply troubled about
-Adèle’s future in Farrandale to be ruffled by
-this. “It was her own idea,” she said. “That
-makes some difference. I am glad she has a
-friend in a truly upright man like you, Grim.
-Help her to be a good woman.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary frowned in surprise at the earnestness
-of this appeal; but, before he could
-speak, Adèle entered the room dressed for driving,
-smiling, and with head held high.</p>
-
-<p>Her departure with Grimshaw a few minutes
-later was decorous. Miss Frink was at the door.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">[263]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Hugh will want to say good-bye to you,”
-she said. “Won’t you call him, Grim?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no,” interrupted Adèle. “He is at his
-studies. Don’t disturb him. We shall always be
-meeting.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink stood on the veranda and watched
-the motor drive away. She drew a long breath
-of the sweet air. Whatever should come now,
-Adèle was gone from the house. The relief of it!</p>
-
-<p>In the motor, the two, sitting side by side,
-exchanged a mutual regard.</p>
-
-<p>“It was very, very sweet of you to write me
-that note,” said Grimshaw.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought it would help.”</p>
-
-<p>“There has been some trouble between you
-and Miss Frink,” he pursued.</p>
-
-<p>Adèle lifted her eyebrows and gave a little
-laugh. “Yes. Mr. Ogden kindly tipped her off
-that I was merely the step-grandchild of her beloved
-chum.”</p>
-
-<p>“Step-grandchild?” repeated Grimshaw.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. Complicated, isn’t it?—and not
-worth while trying to understand. It served her
-as well as anything else as an excuse to get rid of
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw frowned. He was angry with his
-employer for sending this lovely creature away
-from the luxurious home, the Steinway grand,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">[264]</a></span>
-and himself; but Miss Frink’s novel gentleness
-in their interview chained his always cautious
-tongue; then, if Adèle had really deliberately
-misrepresented facts, he knew how that must
-have offended Miss Frink’s rigorous principles.</p>
-
-<p>“You will find the change to the simplicity of
-the Cooper home rather hard, Adèle.”</p>
-
-<p>“No harder than your discovery that henceforward
-you are second-best in your home,”
-she returned; but her voice was sympathetic,
-even tender. “Perhaps you will have to go
-away.”</p>
-
-<p>“No; she doesn’t want me to leave,” he answered
-dispiritedly. He turned again suddenly
-to his companion: “You must tell me, Adèle,
-how I can help you. How about this teaching
-business?”</p>
-
-<p>She smiled at him, her sweetest. “Leonard,
-can you see me trudging around in all weathers
-and teaching youngsters how to play scales?”</p>
-
-<p>He shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“Hu—somebody said it was like harnessing
-a blooded horse to a coal wagon to make me
-teach.”</p>
-
-<p>Color rushed to Grimshaw’s face. “Adèle, it
-can’t be! You know I—”</p>
-
-<p>She interrupted him with a laugh. “Look out!<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">[265]</a></span>
-You nearly ran into that Mr. and Mrs. Rube in
-their light wagon. Now, I’ll talk to the motor
-man if he doesn’t look at me.” Grimshaw kept
-eyes ahead, and she continued. “I never had
-the dimmest idea of teaching. I knew something
-would turn up, and it has. Did you notice Mr.
-Goldstein draw me aside for a few minutes last
-night?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; confound his impudence, keeping
-everybody else waiting.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not at all. Mr. Goldstein is a highly important
-friend. He wants me to take charge of the
-music at the Koh-i-noor. He’s mad about the
-new organ, and he says I’m just the person they
-have been looking for.”</p>
-
-<p>“Can you play the organ?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, I’ve played one; and I have three
-weeks before they open. He wants to add an
-orchestra later, and he wants me to take full
-charge of the musical end of the theater.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty fine—but Miss Frink—”</p>
-
-<p>“Who is Miss Frink?” asked Adèle saucily.
-“Leonard”—she leaned toward him, and her
-pressure thrilled him—“you and I have our
-own lives to live.”</p>
-
-<p>“That arrangement would make you very
-independent, Adèle.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can never be independent of the people<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">[266]</a></span>
-I’m fond of,” she answered softly, and withdrew
-from him.</p>
-
-<p>“Strange that Goldstein should be the one to
-approach you just now. I have had some business
-dealings with him, and he is all right; he
-has big, generous ideas. There is nothing small
-about Goldstein. He is after me now to put
-through a deal for him, but I don’t know. He
-makes it very tempting for me, but I’m afraid
-Miss Frink—”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, don’t be tied to her apron-string. What
-is the deal?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, then, mum’s the word,” said Grimshaw,
-smiling.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, mum as an oyster,” she returned.</p>
-
-<p>“He wants to buy that place where the
-Duanes live.”</p>
-
-<p>Adèle’s heart leaped. “What does he want of
-that little shanty?”</p>
-
-<p>“He wants to tear it down and put up a flat
-building to cover the whole lot.”</p>
-
-<p>“Splendid idea,” responded Adèle. “It’s
-high time Farrandale had something handsome
-in the way of an apartment building,
-and Mr. Goldstein would do something with
-class.”</p>
-
-<p>“But Colonel Duane’s garden. He is wrapped
-up in the place, and they haven’t any money<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">[267]</a></span>
-for another. It just happened that the cottage
-fitted their needs and was cheap.”</p>
-
-<p>Color brightened Adèle’s pale face. Lady
-Luck was coming her way. To get rid of Millicent
-Duane was a rosier prospect than even the
-music at the Koh-i-noor.</p>
-
-<p>“They could find a place in the country,”
-she said. “It would be something new if Miss
-Frink wanted to throw over such a chance to
-turn a few honest thousands. You ought not to
-let her. You ought to look after her better than
-that.”</p>
-
-<p>“I told Goldstein that there was a probability
-that sentiment might enter into this matter;
-and he has offered to make it very much worth
-my while to put the sale through. It is the biggest
-temptation I ever received.” The speaker’s
-eyes shone.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll give you another,” said Adèle, leaning
-toward him again. “If you will put through the
-sale of the Duane place, I will—forget that
-there is another man in the world but you.”</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw flushed, and the road being clear
-just then, he met her soft gaze.</p>
-
-<p>“Is that a promise, Adèle?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“A solemn promise,” she answered.</p>
-
-<p class="tb">John Ogden returned to his hostess in time<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">[268]</a></span>
-for luncheon. Leonard Grimshaw had remained
-for lunch at his cousin’s, for Adèle wanted him to
-go with her afterward to see Mr. Goldstein and
-talk over her contract. So it was that the three
-who felt very close to one another to-day sat at
-the table alone. Stebbins was dismissed, to his
-regret, for he had found breakfast very interesting
-and he wished to continue gathering data.</p>
-
-<p>Ogden noted that the flush on Miss Frink’s
-cheeks, and Hugh’s subdued manner, persisted.</p>
-
-<p>“I had a delightful call this morning,” he
-said in his usual cheerful tone. “I dropped my
-little bomb on the Duanes’ piazza with great
-effect.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh glanced up at him sharply.</p>
-
-<p>“I do like those people. They have a distinctly
-pleasant atmosphere. Colonel Duane,
-always looking like somebody in particular, and
-so hospitable, and Miss Millicent more like a
-rosebud than ever this morning in a pink apron,
-delving in a big tin pan.”</p>
-
-<p>“He went to tell them what a happy woman
-I am,” explained Miss Frink, looking across at
-Hugh. He met her eyes, and smiled acknowledgment,
-the more gently for the mutiny
-within. At last he was honest, but he was more
-than ever conspicuous and discussed. He hated
-it. His ears burned now.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">[269]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I suppose they nearly fainted,” he remarked.
-“I’m sure you told them that I was a puppet
-and you pulled the wires.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t put it that way, Hugh,” pleaded Miss
-Frink.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t help it, Aunt Susanna! It’s a mess!”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t say so, dear boy.” Hugh met her
-bright, speaking eyes. “I have always been a
-successful woman, that’s what the world calls it;
-but I never was a happy one until last night.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not much to make you happy,” said
-the boy restively. “Just a pawn in a game, not
-a penny in the world of my own, in debt to Ogden,
-and a sneak in the eyes of your town—”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, my boy! Oh, Hugh!” There was such
-pain and longing in Miss Frink’s tone that it
-checked him. Beside all that he expressed was
-the constant irritation and humiliation that remained
-from the scene with Adèle.</p>
-
-<p>“Hugh, you told me last night that you—”
-Miss Frink stopped because something rose in
-her throat. No one broke the silence. “I know
-how your young pride is hurt,” she went on at
-last, “but it will be restored.”</p>
-
-<p>“Colonel Duane said,” put in Ogden, “that
-there would be very little talk: that wherever
-you went, Miss Frink’s nephew would be always
-welcome.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">[270]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“That is true,” she agreed; “and, Hugh, if
-you can be so unselfish, don’t spoil this great
-joy of mine—a child belonging to me; but take
-it as if we had known all along that you were
-mine. In perfect frankness let me do for you
-what it is my right to do. In the presence of Mr.
-Ogden, who has accomplished such wonders for
-us, let me say that he and I shall together settle
-such of our obligation to him as can be paid, and
-then you, Hugh, until you are admitted to the
-bar, will accept from me your education, and
-your allowance, without a thought of dependence—”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh regarded the earnest speaker with a
-mixture of resistance and appreciation.</p>
-
-<p>“Ross Graham Company—” he began—</p>
-
-<p>“Can take care of itself,” said Miss Frink
-with a return of her brisk, curt manner. “You
-can always get competent managers.” John
-Ogden’s mind took a leap back to the day when
-he told Hugh that the department store might
-belong to him. “Now I know,” went on Miss
-Frink, “that you’re a bit afraid of your old
-aunt, a little afraid that in my pride I may want
-to put you into a velvet suit and lace collar à la
-Fauntleroy, or its equivalent; but you needn’t
-be afraid. I haven’t lived seventy-two years for
-nothing, and I didn’t make a mess of my treatment<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">[271]</a></span>
-of your father for nothing. Neither am I
-in my second childhood. I have all my faculties,
-and, with so much now to live for, I expect to
-keep them until I’m one hundred. I don’t want
-to make an idol of you. I want you to be a man
-among men, and stand on your own feet; but
-it’s my right to give you a start, and I like to
-believe that you have enough common sense to
-accept it in the spirit in which it is offered, without
-any fuss or foolish hair-splitting.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh looked around at Ogden, who nodded
-at him.</p>
-
-<p>“Put that in your pipe and smoke it,” remarked
-Ogden.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh, pushing back his chair, rose and came
-around to Miss Frink.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s only one answer a fellow can make
-to all that, Aunt Susanna,” he said, and, stooping,
-he kissed her.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, then,” she, too, rose, “please go on
-the veranda and watch for Millicent. I want to
-see Mr. Ogden a few minutes in the study, and
-I’ll let her know when I’m ready for her.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh wandered through the hall, pausing between
-the portières of the drawing-room and
-looking at the piano. Was it only last evening
-that Ally had done her brilliant work? He
-shook his head, went out to the piazza, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">[272]</a></span>
-started to take the swinging seat, but changed
-his mind, and, throwing himself on a wicker
-divan, lighted a cigarette. He was conscious of
-a deep soreness in the thought of Adèle. What a
-series of foolish moves her life had been! He
-shrank in distaste from it all.</p>
-
-<p>What a different specimen of girlhood was
-Millicent Duane! Of course, she was nothing
-but a child, with her ready tears and blushes;
-still, it was better to be crude, and sweet, and
-pure, than sophisticated and audacious. He
-wished he could have seen her face when Ogden
-told them his news. A certain looking up to
-himself which the girl had evinced in their daily
-meetings, he suddenly found was valuable to
-him. Colonel Duane had said Miss Frink’s
-nephew was always sure of a welcome. He knew
-what that meant, and the implication again
-stirred his rebellion. He would know when he
-saw Millicent to-day if he had much to live
-down in her transparent soul.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">[273]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XXIII">CHAPTER XXIII<br />
-<span class="smaller">MILLICENT</span></h2>
-
-<p>Very soon Millicent’s familiar figure appeared
-at the iron gate. Before she started from home
-she had talked with her grandfather.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re sending a message to Hugh by me
-that it will be more convenient for you to see
-him in the morning after this,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“But it wouldn’t.” Colonel Duane looked
-surprised.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, it will be,” returned Millicent firmly.</p>
-
-<p>The old gentleman blinked. “What’s this?
-Tired of the walks over here together?”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind details, dear.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re a funny child, Milly. Hugh will feel
-something unfriendly in the change, just at the
-present time.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent seized her grandfather’s arm.
-“Dearest, everything wonderful is going to
-come to Hugh, now,” she said earnestly, “and I
-would like to be out of it. I don’t want to hear
-him talk about it. Hugh Sinclair isn’t Hugh
-Stanwood. He won’t be anything to us; not
-even a friend except at long intervals and—can’t
-you understand? I’d rather be the one to
-do the dropping.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_274" id="Page_274">[274]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>She released him suddenly and ran out of the
-house. Her grandfather stood in the same spot
-for some minutes, considering.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s the most natural thing in the world,” he
-said to himself at last. “I don’t see how she
-could help it; but Milly has plenty of spirit, and
-I’ll take the hint till he goes away. Of course,
-he’ll be going away to law school.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, as Millicent entered Miss Frink’s
-grounds and discerned Hugh on the porch, she
-saw him rise and throw away his cigarette. He
-came down the steps to meet her, looking unusually
-grave. His eyes studied her as if he must
-know her attitude before she spoke. She put her
-hand in the one he offered.</p>
-
-<p>“How now that the cat is out of the bag?”
-he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“What difference can it make to me?” she
-returned with a coolness that did not satisfy
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m glad if it doesn’t make any. I thought
-perhaps there wouldn’t be any route sufficiently
-roundabout for you to take me home this afternoon.”</p>
-
-<p>His gaze continued to study her as they ascended
-the steps.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I was to tell you that Grandpa can’t
-have you to-day. He will be glad to see you to-morrow<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_275" id="Page_275">[275]</a></span>
-morning if you can come—and always
-in the morning hereafter.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh nodded. Millicent started to go into
-the house.</p>
-
-<p>“Sit down a few minutes,” he said. “Aunt
-Susanna and Mr. Ogden are busy in the study.
-He is leaving to-night. She said she would call
-you as soon as she was ready.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent seated herself in the swinging couch
-and Hugh promptly took the place beside her.</p>
-
-<p>“So our walks are over, are they?” he asked,
-still grave.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. Life is just like chapters in a story,
-isn’t it?” she replied hurriedly. “One closes and
-another begins. This swing makes me think of
-Mrs. Lumbard. Grandpa is perfectly wild about
-her ever since last night. Mr. Ogden said she
-was going to live at the Coopers’, and on my
-way over here I met a friend who said he had
-heard that the manager of the Koh-i-noor is going
-to try to get her to provide their music.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh nodded. “That would solve a problem
-for her,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>There was nothing natural about Millicent
-to-day, and he had seen her shrink when he took
-the place beside her in the swing.</p>
-
-<p>She went on: “Something big like that would
-seem more fitted to Mrs. Lumbard than teaching.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_276" id="Page_276">[276]</a></span>
-I wonder if she will take the position.
-You’ll miss her here, won’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, another of those chapters that close
-while another begins. If only the story grows
-more interesting as life goes on.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure it will for you.” That was too personal.
-She hurried headlong. “And I think it
-does for all of us. You talked to that cute girl
-Damaris Cooper last night. She will be delirious
-with Mrs. Lumbard living there, and playing
-at the Koh-i-noor. Who said Farrandale was
-dull!” Millicent laughed.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh had not smiled since she came, and she
-was so uncomfortable under his questioning
-eyes that she welcomed the opening of the door
-and the appearance of John Ogden who took
-in the deceptively intimate appearance of the
-swing.</p>
-
-<p>“Your sleepy lady awaits you, Miss Duane,”
-he announced, “and you certainly will do a
-missionary act to make her rest. She needs it.”
-Millicent sprang up. “So I’ll say good-bye once
-more.” He held out his hand, and the girl gave
-him hers.</p>
-
-<p>“Farrandale will be very glad to see you back
-some day, Mr. Ogden.” She vanished into the
-house.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s just as I expected,” said Hugh gloomily.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_277" id="Page_277">[277]</a></span>
-“Millicent is entirely changed, and Colonel
-Duane can see me only in the mornings after
-this. It’s significant of the whole spirit that I
-shall have to meet.”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden viewed the downcast gaze.</p>
-
-<p>“You crazy—” he began—“I’ll say I hate
-to leave you. You’ll be deserting Miss Frink
-between two days, as likely as not.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, I won’t,” returned Hugh decidedly.
-“I’ve made up my mind to stay with her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’m glad to hear that.”</p>
-
-<p>“But it makes me—if Millicent had cried or
-done anything natural, I could stand it; or if
-she would say right out that she is disgusted, I
-could stand it; but to have her feel that it is too
-bad to talk about; that gets me because what
-she feels is what everybody worth caring about
-will feel.”</p>
-
-<p>John Ogden regarded the boy as he sat there
-in the swing, dejected, and his own lips twitched.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh looked up suddenly. “Don’t you think
-she’s a fine girl, Ogden?”</p>
-
-<p>“I do. Pure as a drop of dew; fine as a rose-leaf,
-softly iridescent as a bird’s wing, transparent
-as crystal—”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh frowned in displeased surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish you could do anything but chaff,” he
-said.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_278" id="Page_278">[278]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I’m not chaffing,” replied Ogden; “but I
-must modify that a little, I should have said,
-<em>sometimes</em> as transparent as crystal.”</p>
-
-<p>“Are you in love with her?” blurted out
-Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps I should be if I hadn’t known
-Carol. The man that she loves will be in luck,
-for though tender as a flower she’s as stanch as
-an oak tree.”</p>
-
-<p>“You should write poetry,” said Hugh dryly.
-“After all that, you can’t blame me for preferring
-that that sort of person should approve of
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>Ogden, sitting in a hammock and swinging his
-foot, regarded the other quizzically for a silent
-moment.</p>
-
-<p>“Your lions in the way are going to turn into
-kittens, boy,” he said at last. “And if they
-didn’t, isn’t it worth something to have transformed
-the life of another human as you have
-Miss Frink’s? Isn’t it worth meeting with some
-annoyance?”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh shrugged his shoulders in silence.</p>
-
-<p>When Millicent entered her employer’s room,
-the lady was not lying down as usual. She met
-the girl with a sort of smiling exaltation.</p>
-
-<p>“Do I look any different to-day?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p>“You do look different. You have such pink<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_279" id="Page_279">[279]</a></span>
-cheeks. I suppose you are still excited from last
-night.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps so.” As she spoke, Miss Frink
-drew the girl down beside her on the divan and
-looked blissfully into her face. “What a comment
-it is on me, Millicent, that you are the
-only woman friend I have to pour out to at a
-time like this—and you not a woman yet, just
-a little girl who can’t appreciate happiness, because
-you’ve never had anything else.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I have, Miss Frink, I’ve been terribly
-unhappy—is it because you’re happy that you
-look so rosy?” Millicent’s heart beat under the
-full, bright gaze bent upon her.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, all at once. The last time you saw me
-I was nobody. I was grubbing along the way
-I have all my life, nobody caring about me
-except to get the better of me in a business
-deal, and now to-day—do you wonder my
-cheeks are pink? I’m a grandmother, Millicent.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are!” The girl’s lips were parted.</p>
-
-<p>“You know it’s even nicer than being a
-mother. Everybody knows that grandmothers
-have the best of it. Mr. Ogden has told you
-that Hugh belongs to me, and at midnight last
-night we, Hugh and I, were alone together, and—and
-we talked of it. He seemed to be glad.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_280" id="Page_280">[280]</a></span>
-He kissed me like a real grandchild. Millicent,
-it seemed too wonderful for words that I should
-be really happy! Those young arms around me
-made me feel richer than—doubling my money
-on a corner lot.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent began to swallow fast.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m so—so gl-glad,” she said. “I’ll try—not
-to cry.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re very sweet to care, child. You and
-Hugh are so well acquainted I feel you will always
-take an interest.”</p>
-
-<p>“It was wonderful!” said Millicent. The
-eagerness in the bright eyes impelled her on.
-“Hugh is—my grandfather thinks he is an unusual
-fellow. He has always seemed so frank,
-and kind, and simple. He takes an interest in
-Grandpa’s garden and is so nice about it. He
-often says he wishes he owned a little place just
-like ours.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, he does, does he?” returned Miss Frink
-dryly. “Well, you’re ahead of me. I have never
-heard him express a wish for anything.”</p>
-
-<p>“Now, Miss Frink, you must lie down,” said
-the girl. “Mr. Ogden told me to be sure to make
-you rest.” She arranged the pillows just as her
-employer liked them, persuaded her to change
-her dress for a negligée, and soon the happy
-woman was settled on the couch.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_281" id="Page_281">[281]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“You’ll guarantee I won’t wake up and find it
-all a dream?”</p>
-
-<p>“I promise it,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh was still on the piazza and alone when
-she went out. He rose at sight of her. She had
-never seen him look so serious. He did not advance,
-just looked at her in silence. She went to
-him, her hands outstretched.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve been talking with her,” she said. Her
-own repressed feelings, the remembrance of
-Miss Frink’s exaltation, and the wonder of
-Hugh, himself, overcame her. She could not
-speak; but her smile and her suddenly flooded
-eyes made his gravity break into sunshine.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s all right, then, is it, Millicent?” he
-asked eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>She tried to pull a hand away to get her handkerchief,
-but he held it fast and, seeing the corner
-of linen protruding from the low neck of her
-dress, he took it out and dried her eyes himself.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not going to cry—much,” she said,
-smiling, “but she is so happy.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m a lucky dog, Millicent—if you think I
-am,” he answered. “It hasn’t been easy.” His
-eyes clouded.</p>
-
-<p>“I know it, Hugh. I can see it all, now.”</p>
-
-<p>“And I mustn’t walk home with you?”</p>
-
-<p>She hesitated. “I suppose you shouldn’t<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_282" id="Page_282">[282]</a></span>
-leave Mr. Ogden alone. He goes so soon and
-Miss Frink is asleep.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh smiled down at her. She wished he
-wouldn’t. She could hardly bear it. “A good
-excuse for you not to have to try to hide me,”
-he returned.</p>
-
-<p>“No; I shall never wish to hide you again,”
-she said.</p>
-
-<p>“You think I’m all right, then, eh, Millicent?”</p>
-
-<p>“I know you are,” she answered, and, releasing
-herself and giving him an April smile, she
-ran down the steps.</p>
-
-<p class="tb">It was no small undertaking for Miss Frink,
-in the days that followed, to keep her word
-about not idolizing her grand-nephew. What
-she did for him she tried to clothe in such a matter-of-fact
-manner as to disarm him. Almost at
-once invitations began to come to Hugh from
-the young people of Farrandale for tennis parties,
-dances, picnics, and so on. Miss Frink saw
-that he was declining them all. She went to his
-room one morning with another envelope in her
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>“This has just come from the Tarrants,” she
-said, “and I suppose it is another invitation. I
-hope you will accept, Hugh, for they are among
-our best people.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_283" id="Page_283">[283]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know much about society, Aunt Susanna.
-I’d rather keep off the grass if you don’t
-mind.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I do mind,” she answered pleasantly.
-“People will misunderstand if you refuse to mix.
-They will think that either you don’t know how,
-or else that you feel superior.”</p>
-
-<p>“Both of them correct,” replied Hugh, laughing.</p>
-
-<p>“Neither of them correct,” returned Miss
-Frink. “The first thing for you to do is to get
-suitable clothes for the different sorts of things.
-Sports clothes, evening duds, and so on.”</p>
-
-<p>“Remember, Aunt Susanna. It was agreed.
-No Lord Fauntleroy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Exactly,” she returned briskly. “Don’t get
-a velvet suit. I forbid it; but please order the
-other things at once. Then, if you want to decline
-an invitation, it won’t be because you
-haven’t the proper things to wear.”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t know you were so vain.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am, very. Now here is your bank book.”
-She laid the little leather book on the table.
-“And here is your check book.” Hugh stepped
-toward her. “Now, not a word,” she warned.
-“You know that was agreed upon. The first of
-every month I shall deposit your allowance to
-your account.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_284" id="Page_284">[284]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Hugh had reached her now. He put his arm
-around her and kissed her cheek.</p>
-
-<p>“And this afternoon I want you to go on an
-errand with me. I’ve waked up lately to what a
-hidebound person I’ve always been: unwilling
-to move with the world. I’ve decided that I
-want an automobile.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh raised his eyebrows. “Well, I can’t
-see Rex and Regina thrown into the discard.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, neither can I; but there are times when
-the convenience of a motor cannot be gainsaid.
-I borrow Leonard’s occasionally, and it is absurd,
-when you come to think of it, to let a foolish
-prejudice deprive one of a convenience. A
-motor is a great convenience.”</p>
-
-<p>“It can’t be denied,” said Hugh, restraining
-himself from claiming to smell a large and obvious
-mouse. She was having such a good time.</p>
-
-<p>He hugged her once more, and she left the
-room as one whom business is driving. He looked
-at the record in his bank book and gave a low
-whistle.</p>
-
-<p>When the rumor of Adèle’s new position
-reached Miss Frink, she did not have to assume
-approval in speaking to her secretary about it.
-The fact that the young woman was going to
-play to the young people of Farrandale from
-a distance, instead of standing toward them in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_285" id="Page_285">[285]</a></span>
-the intimate relation of a teacher, was a distinct
-relief. She still felt that new kindness toward
-Grimshaw which came from the belief that he
-felt usurped, and, perceiving in him a champion
-of Adèle, she took pains to express herself pleasantly,
-as they sat together at their desks.</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose the Koh-i-noor engagement will
-be a good arrangement for Adèle,” she said. “It
-comes as a surprise.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I don’t think she is fitted for the drudgery
-of teaching,” he returned.</p>
-
-<p>“No one is who considers it drudgery,” declared
-Miss Frink. “When is the theater to
-open?”</p>
-
-<p>“A week from to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, they have secured a real musician.”</p>
-
-<p>“Adèle will be glad to hear that she has your
-approval,” said Grimshaw. He took from his
-pocket an envelope. “Mr. Goldstein asked me
-to give you these tickets for the opening. He
-hopes you will honor him with your presence.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink took the offered envelope. Across
-it was written: “For the Queen of Farrandale.”</p>
-
-<p>“You know I don’t go to the movies, Grim.
-Why didn’t you tell him so?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because this is different. He intends to
-give only artistic entertainment. Everybody
-will go.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_286" id="Page_286">[286]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I—I don’t expect to be in town a week
-from to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah? I didn’t know you were planning to
-leave. Is Mr. Sinclair accompanying you?”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary always clung to the formal title.</p>
-
-<p>“No, he isn’t. You and he can divide these
-tickets and take your best girls. Perhaps he will
-have one by that time.”</p>
-
-<p>She put the envelope back on Grimshaw’s
-desk.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_287" id="Page_287">[287]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XXIV">CHAPTER XXIV<br />
-<span class="smaller">A SHOCK</span></h2>
-
-<p>Miss Frink had instinctively felt that during
-the first weeks of his new status in the town
-Hugh would not wish to be seen driving with
-her in her well-known equipage, and she had
-desisted from asking him; but to-day he was beside
-her as the handsome bays jingled toward
-that large salesroom where reposed their hitherto
-unsuccessful rivals.</p>
-
-<p>“Now I have picked out a car,” said Miss
-Frink as they neared their goal, “but I didn’t
-want to buy it without your approval because,
-of course, I hope you would like to drive me a
-good deal.”</p>
-
-<p>“I understand,” replied Hugh. “I certainly
-should like to.”</p>
-
-<p>As they entered the salesroom, a man came
-forward to welcome them eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Godfrey, this is my nephew, Mr. Sinclair,
-and I want him to see that roadster I was
-looking at.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Miss Frink, I’ve been watching for
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>He led the way to where a low, rakish, canary-colored
-machine shone gayly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_288" id="Page_288">[288]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Hugh stared at it.</p>
-
-<p>“Is this the one, Aunt Susanna?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” she replied, rather defiantly. “You
-know I don’t do things by halves. If I’m going
-to have a motor, I want to go the whole figure.
-I told Mr. Godfrey I wanted a snappy, classy
-car: even if it was extreme: even if it was to cars
-what jazz is to music.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh looked at the salesman, but no sense of
-humor could be discerned in his earnest countenance.
-Hugh struggled with his own risibles
-and also with a desire to hug his aunt in public.
-It seemed the only way to deal with her.</p>
-
-<p>“How were you going to get into it, Aunt
-Susanna?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>She gazed at the machine, observing for the
-first time that it had no doors.</p>
-
-<p>“I—why—” she began.</p>
-
-<p>“You wouldn’t want to turn a somersault
-every time you went for an outing, would you?”</p>
-
-<p>She looked at him helplessly. “Don’t you
-like it, Hugh?” she asked faintly.</p>
-
-<p>He looked again at the salesman to see if
-he was human. Apparently the depth of Miss
-Frink’s pocketbook was the only feature of the
-transaction which he was taking in.</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s find something a little less sporty,” he
-continued. “You’ve a fine assortment here.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_289" id="Page_289">[289]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“That’s right, Hugh, you choose,” said Miss
-Frink, her spirits rising, “and don’t think too
-much about me. One that you would like to
-drive is what I want.”</p>
-
-<p>They chose one at last. It was very dark
-blue, and very shiny, and low hung, and very
-expensive, and it had embryo doors, and could
-be delivered promptly, and Hugh’s eyes shone
-at the prospect of being its chauffeur. Miss
-Frink was tremulous with happiness at seeing
-his pleasure, and they returned home to dinner,
-her hand in his.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know what to do with you, Aunt
-Susanna,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, Hugh, you’re doing me injustice,” she
-returned firmly. “I do want to drive in an auto.
-I want to progress, and not be a clam. Besides,
-I’m going away, and I thought you could learn
-all about the machine while I am gone.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where are you going?”</p>
-
-<p>“To Waveland Beach. It is only a few hours
-from here. I guess I’m tired. At any rate, I’m
-not sleeping very well, and I’ll get down there
-and not hear a word about business for a few
-weeks.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry you’re not feeling all right. Can’t
-I do something? Don’t you want me to go with
-you?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_290" id="Page_290">[290]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Of course, she did, but she denied it. “No,
-you stay here and go on with Colonel Duane.
-Shan’t you choose Columbia in the fall? I’ve
-been writing to Carol and telling her we are
-going to have a full-fledged lawyer of our own
-pretty soon.”</p>
-
-<p>So a few days later Miss Frink departed to
-her resort, and it fitted in so well with Leonard
-Grimshaw’s plans that she should go away, that
-he was quite affable about the new automobile,
-and in his first tête-à-tête dinner with Hugh was
-less taciturn than usual.</p>
-
-<p>He talked of the cleverness with which Adèle
-handled the Koh-i-noor organ. He gave him
-the tickets for the opening of the Cinema Palace,
-and Hugh took Millicent and her grandfather
-and Damaris Cooper, and they had a delightful
-party. They talked with Adèle afterward. She
-was in the highest spirits, and Leonard Grimshaw
-stood beside her with an air of proprietorship
-which Hugh discerned with satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p>The secretary had not yet qualified for that
-reward of hers, promised when he should have
-evicted the Duanes; and seeing Millicent with
-Hugh to-night created in Adèle a tigerish eagerness
-for its fulfillment.</p>
-
-<p>“Have patience,” Leonard told her when
-the others had gone. “Everything is working<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_291" id="Page_291">[291]</a></span>
-toward the desired end; but why are you so
-interested?” he added.</p>
-
-<p>“Can you ask?” she returned with one of the
-looks he dreamed about. “Is it nothing to—to
-us that Goldstein wishes to be so generous?”</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw smiled. “We may be living in
-that apartment house ourselves, Adèle. Who
-knows?”</p>
-
-<p>One afternoon there appeared in Colonel
-Duane’s garden an alien growth in the shape
-of the manager of the Koh-i-noor. The owner
-saw him walking along the garden paths and in
-surprise went out to meet him.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Goldstein held out his hand. “It looks
-like intrusion, I’m sure, Colonel Duane, but
-you excuse me if I look this ground over; I have
-a strong personal interest.”</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Duane mechanically shook hands.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; I am about to buy this property.” The
-visitor smiled into the old gentleman’s startled
-face.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve heard nothing of this,” said the Colonel,
-and his voice was not steady. “Miss Frink is
-away.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, who so progressive as Miss Frink!”
-said Goldstein devoutly. “This property is too
-valuable for its present use. I will put an apartment<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_292" id="Page_292">[292]</a></span>
-building here that you will be proud to live
-in—proud, Colonel Duane.”</p>
-
-<p>“I—I can’t realize that what you say is
-true.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, there is nothing to worry you,” said
-Goldstein soothingly. “You will not be required
-to leave before the autumn. I’m sure we would
-not do anything to disturb or annoy so respected
-a citizen.” The speaker’s eyes wandered afield.
-“I wanted to see what the chances would be of
-retaining that old elm in the corner there. You
-know, Colonel Duane, to me a fine tree is an asset.
-There is something money cannot buy. It
-is worth a sacrifice to retain it. It is a thing that
-the years only can produce. It is—” He turned
-to face his companion, but the old gentleman
-had gone.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Duane entered the room where his
-granddaughter was, and Millicent started up in
-alarm.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it Grandpa? Are you ill?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve had a shock, Milly. Miss Frink is going
-to sell our place.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I can’t believe it! Not without any
-warning.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Goldstein, of the Koh-i-noor, is going
-to buy it. He is out there now, looking the
-ground over.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_293" id="Page_293">[293]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Millicent ran to the window. She could see
-the purchaser, his hands folded behind him
-looking up at the fine old tree. She turned back
-to her grandfather with eyes that flashed. Her
-soft lips set in a hard line.</p>
-
-<p>“How can she do it with all her money! How
-can she take your garden away, Grandpa?”</p>
-
-<p>“He is going to put up a flat building.” Colonel
-Duane sank into a chair. “We can’t expect
-the world to stand still for us, Milly. Business
-is business. Mr. Goldstein says this land is too
-valuable to be left for an old man to go puttering
-about in.” He smiled pitifully.</p>
-
-<p>“That is why she has gone away,” said Millicent
-acutely. “She was ashamed to do this to
-you, Grandpa.”</p>
-
-<p>“Being ashamed is not in Miss Frink’s line,”
-he answered, and his pale, still face gave the
-girl the heartache. “It is the habit of her life
-to take advantage of business opportunities.
-Here came along a man with the money, and
-the plan. I suppose it was the natural move for
-her to make.”</p>
-
-<p>“But she knows you, Grandpa. She knows
-what it will mean to you. I tell you she went
-away because she was ashamed to own it.
-There he goes, the mean thing.” Millicent
-watched the future owner’s departure up the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_294" id="Page_294">[294]</a></span>
-street, and at once from the other direction appeared
-Hugh Sinclair driving the very new, very
-blue, very shiny roadster.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, there is Hugh!” she exclaimed, her
-hands clasping together. “He has come to
-take me driving, Grandpa. Your news put it
-out of my head.”</p>
-
-<p>The horn of the motor sounded, and the
-girl waved her hand toward Hugh’s blowing
-hair.</p>
-
-<p>“Now be very careful, Milly,” said Colonel
-Duane. “You’re excited, and you’re liable to say
-the wrong thing to Hugh. This property is Miss
-Frink’s, and she has a right to do just what she
-pleases with it. Don’t make Hugh unhappy
-over a matter he can’t do anything about.”</p>
-
-<p>The girl caught the speaker in her strong
-young arms and kissed him.</p>
-
-<p>“Promise me, Milly.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, dear, yes,” she said breathlessly, and
-ran out to the waiting motor.</p>
-
-<p>“My word, you’re all lit up, Millicent,”
-laughed Hugh at sight of her sparkling eyes.
-“You must like this little gas buggy as much as
-I do.”</p>
-
-<p>They were off before she answered. “Yes, I
-love it; but I wanted, I needed, so much to see
-you, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_295" id="Page_295">[295]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I like that all right. What do you want of
-little Johnny-on-the-spot?”</p>
-
-<p>“Just to talk to you. Of course I know you
-can’t do anything, and Grandpa told me to be
-very careful and not make you unhappy—”</p>
-
-<p>“It can’t be done, Millicent. An afternoon
-like this, and the car, and you. What’s going to
-make me unhappy?”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps it won’t, but—we’re going to lose
-our home, and Grandpa’s garden.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh met her bright, dry eyes. Tears
-wouldn’t do this subject justice.</p>
-
-<p>“How are you going to lose it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink is selling it to Mr. Goldstein. He
-has just been in the garden looking it over. He
-told Grandpa, and when Grandpa came in to
-me he looked old. I never saw Grandpa look old
-before.”</p>
-
-<p>“There must be some mistake.”</p>
-
-<p>“No. Mr. Goldstein is going to put up a flat
-building.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh’s brow was puckered in a puzzled
-frown. “Aunt Susanna would have spoken of it
-to me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, think what a wonderful business woman
-she is. She wouldn’t talk of her business deals to
-any one, would she?”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps not,” returned Hugh.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_296" id="Page_296">[296]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“But Miss Frink likes Grandpa. I believe
-she would be sorry for us, and I think, Hugh, it
-really makes me more sure that she is selling us
-out, that she has gone away.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, pshaw, Millicent. Aunt Susanna isn’t
-any coward.”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” agreed the girl ruefully, “the Queen of
-Farrandale doesn’t have to be; but she seemed
-to like us, and I feel she would be sorry and perhaps
-would rather be away.”</p>
-
-<p>“My opinion is that Goldstein was talking
-through his hat. He probably wants the place—but
-so do I.” Hugh turned with the Prince
-Charming smile to his companion. “Not for
-his purpose, though. I want it always to stay
-full of apple blossoms and nice girls in blue
-gowns.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Hugh, it’s like a bad dream.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let us pretend it is a nightmare until I see
-Grimshaw at dinner. He will know the inside
-facts, and I will run over this evening and tell
-you all about it.”</p>
-
-<p>There had been a humorous side, to Hugh, to
-the tête-à-tête meals he and the secretary had
-been obliged to take in Miss Frink’s absence.
-They seldom met at breakfast or luncheon, but
-at the formally correct dinners Hugh comported
-himself with care not to be irritating.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_297" id="Page_297">[297]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>To-night he approached the subject on his
-mind with circumspection.</p>
-
-<p>“I heard to-day that Mr. Goldstein wants to
-purchase the Duane place,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw nodded. “Yes; it will be a very
-advantageous move for Miss Frink. The ground
-is too central to be used any longer in the present
-fashion.”</p>
-
-<p>“You have charge of the transaction?” ventured
-Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw did not lift his eyes from his plate.
-“Naturally. I have charge of all Miss Frink’s
-business moves. I am always watching her interests.”</p>
-
-<p>“That sale would work something of a hardship,”
-remarked Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” agreed Grimshaw, with a nonchalant
-rising inflection; “but there would be nothing
-sudden or violent about it. There are plenty of
-places farther out where the Duanes can go, and
-it is my duty to think only of Miss Frink.”</p>
-
-<p>“You have her full authority?”</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly. I have her full authority.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is a little strange,” said Hugh, “that she
-never mentioned the proposition of this sale to
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>“You think it strange?” returned Grimshaw,
-and there was a scarcely veiled sneer in the retort.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_298" id="Page_298">[298]</a></span>
-“I believe Miss Frink has not considered
-you on the business side as yet.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh said no more; but less than an hour
-later he ran up on the Duanes’ piazza. The evening
-was warm, and they were sitting out.</p>
-
-<p>Millicent jumped up eagerly at sight of him
-and he grasped her outstretched hand and
-held it.</p>
-
-<p>“I am not satisfied, Colonel Duane, with my
-talk with Grimshaw,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>The old gentleman looked up, patiently.</p>
-
-<p>“Shall you wire Miss Frink?” asked Millicent
-eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course not,” said Colonel Duane. “Hugh
-shouldn’t interfere.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I shall, to the extent of finding out
-what’s what.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent released her hand and sat down.</p>
-
-<p>“The thing to do is for Millicent and me to
-motor down to Waveland to-morrow. I learn
-that we can do it in four hours. We’ll talk with
-Aunt Susanna, and, if we find that she is content
-to let Grimshaw do his darndest, we’ll
-motor back again; but if it turns out that she is
-from Missouri, we three will come back on the
-train.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s fair enough, Grandpa?” asked Millicent
-anxiously.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_299" id="Page_299">[299]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know that it is. Miss Frink has gone
-away to rest and probably left instructions with
-her secretary, and for you to go, Milly, and
-throw yourself on her sympathy—”</p>
-
-<p>“She shan’t throw herself on anything, Colonel
-Duane. I promise it; but it will be so much
-more satisfactory for Millicent to see Aunt
-Susanna face to face, and hear just what she
-says—”</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Duane was thoughtful. “If Miss
-Frink does not return with you, I don’t like
-the idea of your motoring back here late in the
-evening. It would be midnight, probably.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll see to that,” returned Hugh. “If Aunt
-Susanna doesn’t return with us, she has two
-rooms down there, and Millicent will spend the
-night with her; and I’ll wire you. We’ll motor
-back the next morning.”</p>
-
-<p>“You wish to do it, Milly?” asked Colonel
-Duane.</p>
-
-<p>“It seems as if I should fly out of my skin if
-I couldn’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“If we come back on the train with Aunt
-Susanna, it will be late, and Millicent will spend
-the night at our house.”</p>
-
-<p>“No!” exclaimed the old man. “Bring her
-home, whatever hour it is.”</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_300" id="Page_300">[300]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CHAPTER_XXV">CHAPTER XXV<br />
-<span class="smaller">JOURNEY’S END</span></h2>
-
-<p>Miss Frink was sitting on the porch of the Sea
-View Hotel, rocking as all good Americans do,
-and thinking, as usual, of Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>The expanse of ocean lay before her, and, as
-she watched the sailboats careening, she wondered
-if her nephew cared for sailing and if he
-was a good swimmer. She thought of the desirable
-girls in Farrandale. Some of them had had
-European educations. She hoped Hugh would
-accept the Tarrant invitation. As Miss Frink
-passed in review the young people she had seen
-grow up without noticing them, Inez Tarrant
-stood out in her mind as the most attractive.
-She shook her head as a memory of Hugh’s
-father struck athwart her thought.</p>
-
-<p>“I won’t,” she reflected. “I won’t interfere
-this time, whatever the boy does. He shall
-never think of his old aunt as a wet blanket.
-Never!”</p>
-
-<p>She was in a blissful dream when suddenly
-a car drew up before the hotel porch directly
-in front of her rocking-chair. She didn’t recognize
-it at first. All its shiny blueness was
-dust-laden. So were its occupants. One of them<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_301" id="Page_301">[301]</a></span>
-saw her instantly, and waved his cap. Millicent
-was out as quickly as Hugh, pulling off her veil
-and looking up with a beating heart at Miss
-Frink, who started to her feet.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve come to lunch with you, Aunt Susanna.”
-Hugh embraced her, and she took Millicent’s
-timid hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, if this isn’t fine of you children! What
-sights you are! Take the car to the garage,
-Hugh, while I help Millicent to brush up. You
-must have started very early,” she added to the
-girl when they had reached her room.</p>
-
-<p>“We did, and it has been such a beautiful
-morning. The car runs like velvet.”</p>
-
-<p>“You look tired, child. Are those shadows
-under your eyes, or is it all dust? Now I’ll leave
-you here. Make yourself at home. Don’t hurry.
-There’s plenty of time. Come down to the porch
-when you’re ready.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink returned to her rocking-chair, and
-soon Hugh joined her, washed and brushed to
-her heart’s desire.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m your letter to-day, Aunt Susanna,” he
-said, pulling up a chair beside her.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’ll take you”—she regarded the
-vital light in his eyes—“and read you, too.”</p>
-
-<p>“The X-ray still working?” he laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly. Here is a very happy boy.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_302" id="Page_302">[302]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“With everything to make him happy,” he
-returned.</p>
-
-<p>“The car pleases you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Perfect. The company, too.”</p>
-
-<p>“Me or Millicent?” Miss Frink’s lips
-twitched. “My! That girl’s hair was pretty
-when it tumbled down just now, upstairs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Both of you,” replied Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Have you accepted Miss Tarrant’s invitation?”</p>
-
-<p>“No—yes—Oh, yes, I remember now, I
-did, to please you.”</p>
-
-<p>“It will be to please yourself, later.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh gave her a brilliant smile in which eyes
-and lips coöperated with great effect.</p>
-
-<p>“It won’t matter much, Aunt Susanna. There
-is only one perfect girl in Farrandale, and I’ve
-found her.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink grasped the arms of her chair.</p>
-
-<p>“Hugh Sinclair!” she gasped. “Why, I
-never even thought of Millicent Duane!”</p>
-
-<p>He leaned toward her and spoke low. The
-smile vanished under his aunt’s aghast eyeglasses.</p>
-
-<p>“Set your X-ray going, Aunt Susanna. See
-the modesty, the honesty, the purity, the frankness,
-the unselfishness, the charm of total goodness—”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_303" id="Page_303">[303]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Did you come down here to tell me this?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. I never said a word to her until this
-morning on the way; and she refused me. She’s
-afraid of you. She believes herself too humble
-and obscure to suit you, and she says she’d
-rather die than marry me if it didn’t please you.
-She loves you, too, Aunt Susanna. She appreciates
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s firm resolution of an hour ago
-recurred to her. Her surprise was so absolute
-that she leaned back in her chair, speechless.</p>
-
-<p>“We just made up our minds suddenly last
-night to come, and it has been a most lovely
-drive.”</p>
-
-<p>“H’m. Millicent looks as if she had been
-through the war.”</p>
-
-<p>“She has. We’ll tell you about it, later.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent appeared from the doorway, and
-Miss Frink noted the expression in Hugh’s face
-as he started up to meet her.</p>
-
-<p>“I know you are both famished,” she said.
-“Let us go right in to lunch.”</p>
-
-<p>Poor Millicent, with her double burden of apprehension
-and embarrassment, made a valiant
-attempt to eat, and Hugh saved her from the
-necessity of talking by keeping up a busy conversation
-with his aunt. As for Miss Frink, she
-was constantly fighting a sense of resentment.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_304" id="Page_304">[304]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Just like me,” she thought. “Just because I
-didn’t plan it, I suppose I can’t approve it.
-Just because I can’t have him all to myself, I
-suppose I wouldn’t like it, whoever it was. Just
-like you, Susanna Frink. Just like you!”</p>
-
-<p>When they rose from the table, Hugh spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“We did come down here on an errand, Aunt
-Susanna. Is there some place where we can be
-entirely by ourselves?”</p>
-
-<p>“We will go up to my room,” she returned.
-What could their errand be if it was not on that
-rending subject?</p>
-
-<p>“She didn’t eat anything,” reflected Miss
-Frink as they went up in the elevator. “I suppose
-they don’t when they’re in love.”</p>
-
-<p>Her heart pleaded a little for Millicent, just
-then. Even if it were presumptuous for the girl
-to fall in love with Hugh, was it within youthful
-feminine human nature to help it when they had
-been thrown together daily for so long? What
-had been nearly superhuman was to refuse him,
-shut in with him in that very new, very blue,
-shiny roadster with all the early summer surroundings
-of romance. The girl had some
-strength, anyway. And how sweetly she had
-sympathized with herself at the exciting time
-of the discovery!</p>
-
-<p>She sat down now, however, with an entirely<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_305" id="Page_305">[305]</a></span>
-non-committal expression, and Millicent took
-a place facing her. Apparently she was the one
-with the message. Hugh wandered to a window
-overlooking the sea.</p>
-
-<p>How pale the girl was! The shadows under
-her hazel eyes had not been dust. Those eyes
-had apparently started out to be brown, but
-thought better of it. They were surpassingly
-clear, and they looked now directly into Miss
-Frink’s.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know even yet if it was right for
-me to come,” she began. “Grandpa thought it
-wasn’t, for we haven’t the least right to trouble
-you in your affairs; but it means so much to
-Grandpa I couldn’t content myself without
-knowing from your own lips if you are selling
-our home.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s face continued set. A little
-frown came in her forehead.</p>
-
-<p>“Not that we wouldn’t get used to the
-thought, but—just at first, it—he made
-Grandpa look so old—”</p>
-
-<p>“Who did?”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Goldstein. He wants to put up an
-apartment house and he was looking the ground
-over to see if he could save the elm.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes. Mr. Goldstein. He is Adèle’s—Mrs.
-Lumbard’s employer, I believe.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_306" id="Page_306">[306]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Miss Frink”—the hazel eyes searched
-the bright eyeglasses—“did Mrs. Lumbard
-ask you to sell the place?”</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly not. Why do you ask such a question?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because—I’m ashamed to say so, but I’ve
-thought so much about it. Mrs. Lumbard
-hates me. I can’t imagine why. I’ve met her on
-the street. Nobody ever looked at me the way
-she does.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink threw a quick glance over her
-shoulder at Hugh, who came back from the
-window, and stood near Millicent.</p>
-
-<p>“This only came to light yesterday,” he said.
-“Of course, if you are selling the place, it is all
-right; but I talked with Grimshaw last night at
-dinner, and I was not satisfied with his replies,
-although he claimed to have your authority.
-If there was anything for you to look into, I
-thought it best for us to come in person; but, if
-everything is being done by your order, there is
-nothing for us to do but kiss you and leave you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose,” Millicent’s voice wavered, “I
-suppose it would be dreadful to ask you to
-change your mind, but Grandpa—I don’t know
-what he will do. He loves every little sprout,
-and—and there isn’t any other place—”</p>
-
-<p>“Your grandfather seems to be your whole<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_307" id="Page_307">[307]</a></span>
-thought,” said Miss Frink. She was definitely
-frowning now, and her expression was severe.</p>
-
-<p>“He is. I’d do anything—I’m doing something
-almost disgraceful now in begging you—”
-The voice stopped, and color came up in the
-pale cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh watched his aunt, but there was no
-change in her expression.</p>
-
-<p>“We thought if there was any question in your
-mind,” he said, “that we would leave the car
-here, and you would return with us on the train.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink looked at her watch. “The train
-went while we were eating,” she said. “There
-isn’t another until evening, but I think I will
-go back with you. Meanwhile”—her set face
-lightened—“I suggest that this girl lie down
-and rest while you take me for a drive.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’ll be bully!” agreed Hugh.</p>
-
-<p>Millicent tried to control her trembling lips
-as she followed Miss Frink’s movement and
-rose. The latter went into the next room to put
-on her hat.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh took the young girl’s hands, and she
-drew them away gently. “Don’t you see,” he
-said softly, “that that is hopeful?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know. Oh, she looked so hard. I’m
-afraid of her when she is the Queen of Farrandale.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_308" id="Page_308">[308]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“But she wouldn’t go with us if it were settled.
-You see that?”</p>
-
-<p>“Then, why couldn’t she say one encouraging
-word?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because she doesn’t know how far Grimshaw
-has gone. He said he had full authority.
-Perhaps now she wishes she hadn’t given it to
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink came back. “Think how many
-times you’ve put me to sleep, Millicent. Now
-you let the ocean do the same for you. Go right
-into that room and make yourself comfortable.
-Lie down on my bed and don’t think about anything
-but the waves.”</p>
-
-<p>They left her, and Miss Frink looked at the
-car admiringly as Hugh drove it around to
-the hotel steps. It had been cleaned into new
-blueness again, and she sank into the low seat
-and breathed a sigh of satisfaction as it rolled
-smoothly away.</p>
-
-<p>“Poor Millicent,” said Hugh. He meant it
-as a gentle hint that now they were alone his
-aunt might confide in him on the affair that had
-brought them. Evidently nothing was further
-from her intention.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I hope she gets to sleep,” she returned.
-“Could anything run smoother than this,
-Hugh?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_309" id="Page_309">[309]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The brisk ocean breeze swept past them.
-Hugh accepted the dismissal of his little love.
-He glanced around at his companion’s strong
-features, set now in perfect contentment.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m the lover she never had,” he reflected,
-“and the husband she never had, and the son
-she never had, and the grandson she thought
-she had, but he comes right away and tells her
-he loves somebody else. Tough, I’ll say.”</p>
-
-<p>They were speeding along the road near the
-sea, and passing summer homes set far apart.</p>
-
-<p>“You will like to have the car in New York
-this fall, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p>“It sure would be a big luxury.”</p>
-
-<p>“You and Mr. Ogden would enjoy it—when
-I wasn’t there.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink looked around at her chauffeur and
-smiled, and he smiled back, valiantly, though he
-was thinking that Millicent was probably not
-asleep, but staring at the sea with dry, troubled
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“You will come, of course, Aunt Susanna, if I
-go to law school there?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I think I should cultivate quite an
-intimacy with New York under those circumstances.
-I’d bring her with me sometimes, too.”
-Again she met Hugh’s eyes, and the sudden light
-in them rewarded her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_310" id="Page_310">[310]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>There was no other reference to Millicent
-during the long drive, and they returned to find
-the girl sitting on the porch. Her white face
-pulled on Hugh’s heartstrings.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink asked her if she had slept, and she
-replied that she had had a fine rest; and she
-asked interested questions about the drive until
-Miss Frink went into the house to pack her
-bag.</p>
-
-<p>“Did she say anything more?” asked the girl
-eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing—except that when I am in New
-York at the law school she will bring you to see
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>Millicent’s questioning expression faded. “I
-shan’t be there to bring,” she said quietly; “we
-shall have to move away into the country somewhere.”</p>
-
-<p>“But that showed that she likes you, Millicent—that
-all those absurd ideas about your
-not satisfying her don’t amount to anything.
-I told her. She knows what I want.”</p>
-
-<p>“I understand better than you do.” Millicent
-smiled faintly. “She knows you haven’t
-met girls of your own kind yet, and what
-changes a year may bring; but she wants to
-keep you happy.”</p>
-
-<p>They were able to get a chair car on the train<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_311" id="Page_311">[311]</a></span>
-that night. Miss Frink and Hugh sat in adjoining
-seats, and Millicent in the third leaned back
-with closed eyes and thought of her grandfather,
-and tried to make plans for their future. She
-worked to exclude the radiant possibility which
-had dawned on her in the wonderful ride of the
-morning. Every joy she had ever dreamed of
-was embraced in the thought of a life with Hugh;
-but it was too sudden, he was too young to
-know what he wanted, and she was sure that
-Miss Frink’s plans and ambitions for him made
-the idea of little Milly Duane an absurdity. The
-Queen of Farrandale should see that her attitude
-was completely shared by Millicent herself.</p>
-
-<p>The train was late in starting, and, by reason
-of detention along the way, it was after eleven
-o’clock when it pulled into Farrandale. They
-took a station taxicab and drove to Miss Frink’s
-house, intending that, after the lady had entered,
-Hugh, mindful of Colonel Duane’s exhortation,
-would take Millicent home; but as they approached,
-they were surprised to see the lower
-floor of the house brightly lighted, and an automobile
-parked before it.</p>
-
-<p>“Come in with us, Millicent,” said Miss
-Frink. “We may as well see what this illumination
-means before you go home.”</p>
-
-<p>Hugh let them into the hall with his latch-key,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_312" id="Page_312">[312]</a></span>
-and laughter from the end of the corridor
-showed that the study was occupied. Miss
-Frink led the way and was first to enter the
-room. She stood for a moment while the gay
-laughter died on the lips of her secretary and
-Adèle Lumbard as they stared at the apparition.
-Mr. Goldstein was standing by Miss Frink’s
-flat-topped desk, and apparently had just laid
-upon it a handful of gold pieces. Millicent
-would have shrunk back, but Hugh held her
-firmly by the arm and they followed Miss Frink
-as she moved into the room.</p>
-
-<p>Besides herself, Mr. Goldstein was the only
-unembarrassed member of the company.</p>
-
-<p>“In the nick of time, Miss Frink,” he said,
-advancing with an air of cordial welcome. He
-made a move toward shaking hands, but the
-expression on the face of the Queen of Farrandale
-discouraged him.</p>
-
-<p>There succeeded a silent space while she
-walked to the desk and picked up a paper bearing
-her signature.</p>
-
-<p>Her dark, bright gaze jumped to Grimshaw.</p>
-
-<p>“I just wondered,” she said. The secretary
-had grown very pale, and it was difficult to face
-her; but he did so. Adèle stepped nearer to him.
-“So you did use your power of attorney,” she
-added.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_313" id="Page_313">[313]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Certainly,” replied Grimshaw, with all the
-dignity he could command. “As you know, I
-am always looking out for advantageous business
-moves for you. Here was one that was extraordinary.
-The sale of that corner where the
-Duanes have been living, to be used for an
-apartment house, could only be made to a man
-of Mr. Goldstein’s means—”</p>
-
-<p>“And generosity.” Miss Frink’s interruption
-was curt to fierceness. She grasped the gold
-coins and let them jingle back on the desk.</p>
-
-<p>The purchaser spoke cheerfully. “Oh, it was
-all the same to me,” he said. “Mrs. Lumbard,
-she is the lady that loves the gold.” He laughed
-toward Adèle and wagged his head. “She likes
-her salary in those good little solid pieces. Isn’t
-it so, lovely lady?”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s glance flashed at Adèle. “But
-this is not her salary, I judge.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Goldstein shrugged deprecatingly. “Oh,
-no, Mr. Grimshaw has been very obliging.”</p>
-
-<p>“Leonard, I feel that you had help in all this.”
-The speaker regarded her secretary with deep
-feeling. “You would not have done it, alone.”</p>
-
-<p>Grimshaw could not speak; and Adèle saw it.
-She cast a defiant, angry glance at Hugh and
-Millicent, silent spectators of the scene. The girl’s
-hands were unconsciously on her heart as hope<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_314" id="Page_314">[314]</a></span>
-sprang in it for her grandfather’s deliverance.</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Frink,” cried Adèle, “you have no
-right to be speaking to Leonard as though he
-were a criminal when he never thinks of anything
-but your good. You were not here, and he
-acted for you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, madam,” said Mr. Goldstein, grave
-now that he saw the transaction was displeasing,
-“I certainly understood that everything
-was correct. I have acted in good faith.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have no doubt of it,” returned Miss Frink.
-“Gather up that gold, if you please. My employes
-do not receive bribes.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Goldstein mechanically obeyed, and his
-troubled gaze rested on her.</p>
-
-<p>“But I have paid good money down to clinch
-this bargain,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Frink’s genuine distress at her secretary’s
-sordid action lightened at some thought.</p>
-
-<p>She smiled at her young people, and Grimshaw
-cast a baleful look at Hugh who had precipitated
-this scene. Anxiety again clutched at
-Millicent’s heart. Miss Frink had not been
-mercenary. She had not ignored the love of
-Colonel Duane for his simple, happy life, and
-she was powerful. The girl studied her face now
-for encouragement that, no matter how far matters
-had gone, she could save them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_315" id="Page_315">[315]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“You should not withdraw from this, Miss
-Frink,” said Grimshaw, inspired by a fiery look
-from Adèle. “Indeed, it is not at all certain
-that you can do so, legally.”</p>
-
-<p>The lady’s smile faded. “You didn’t delve
-into this matter quite far enough, Grim. Had
-you happened to examine my deposit box, you
-and I would both have been spared something.
-Mr. Goldstein”—the speaker turned to the
-would-be purchaser—“your money will be returned
-to you. Mr. Grimshaw was unaware
-that the Duane homestead does not belong to
-me any longer. I learned rather recently that
-some one dear to me had expressed admiration
-for it, and the last thing I did before leaving
-town was to transfer that property. I did not
-speak of the transaction to any one: not even
-to the new owner.”</p>
-
-<p>The secretary’s spectacles regarded her, shining
-in a very white face.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Goldstein returned to the charge. “Then
-the property might still be for sale,” he said argumentatively.</p>
-
-<p>“I think not,” returned Miss Frink. “I have
-reason to believe that it will be held for—well,
-it will not be regarded commercially. I am
-sorry for your disappointment, Mr. Goldstein,
-and I will bid you good-night.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_316" id="Page_316">[316]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Good-night, then, madam, and I shall hope
-for a more fruitful meeting some day,” he returned.</p>
-
-<p>Hugh and Millicent were blind to the exit of
-the three, who moved quickly out of the room.</p>
-
-<p>In that minute Hugh’s heart leaped, for the
-Queen of Farrandale, who never did anything
-by halves, drew Millicent away from him and,
-passing an arm around her, held her close. The
-girl flushed with pleasure in the loving caress,
-for the bright old eyes that met hers were
-blurred.</p>
-
-<p>“Come here, Hugh.” Her free hand drew
-him. “He is your landlord now, Millicent. I
-hope he will be a good one.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy threw his arms around the pair, and
-held them. “I don’t know what to do with you,
-Aunt Susanna,” he said unsteadily.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, of course, I had to give you an engagement
-present,” she returned.</p>
-
-<p>The surprise and relief of the moment seemed
-to center in the radiant young creature whose
-rosy cheek Miss Frink’s lips were pressing.</p>
-
-<p>“Millicent!” cried the lover softly, and there
-was a wealth of joy present, and joy to come, in
-the exclamation. “Millicent!”</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<hr class="full" />
-<p>***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE QUEEN OF FARRANDALE***</p>
-<p>******* This file should be named 60983-h.htm or 60983-h.zip *******</p>
-<p>This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:<br />
-<a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/6/0/9/8/60983">http://www.gutenberg.org/6/0/9/8/60983</a></p>
-<p>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.</p>
-
-<p>Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</p>
-
-<h2>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<br />
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</h2>
-
-<p>To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.</p>
-
-<h3>Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works</h3>
-
-<p>1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.</p>
-
-<p>1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.</p>
-
-<p>1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.</p>
-
-<p>1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.</p>
-
-<p>1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:</p>
-
-<p>1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:</p>
-
-<blockquote><p>This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United
- States and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost
- no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
- it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with
- this eBook or online
- at <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this
- ebook.</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that</p>
-
-<ul>
-<li>You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."</li>
-
-<li>You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.</li>
-
-<li>You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.</li>
-
-<li>You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause. </p>
-
-<h3>Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm</h3>
-
-<p>Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.</p>
-
-<p>Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org.</p>
-
-<h3>Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation</h3>
-
-<p>The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.</p>
-
-<p>The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact</p>
-
-<p>For additional contact information:</p>
-
-<p> Dr. Gregory B. Newby<br />
- Chief Executive and Director<br />
- gbnewby@pglaf.org</p>
-
-<h3>Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation</h3>
-
-<p>Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.</p>
-
-<p>The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/donate">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.</p>
-
-<p>While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.</p>
-
-<p>International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.</p>
-
-<p>Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate</p>
-
-<h3>Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.</h3>
-
-<p>Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.</p>
-
-<p>Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.</p>
-
-<p>Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org</p>
-
-<p>This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.</p>
-
-</body>
-</html>
-
diff --git a/old/60983-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/60983-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ed0f3b1..0000000
--- a/old/60983-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60983-h/images/dots.jpg b/old/60983-h/images/dots.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 95f6877..0000000
--- a/old/60983-h/images/dots.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60983-h/images/tp.jpg b/old/60983-h/images/tp.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 4320748..0000000
--- a/old/60983-h/images/tp.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ